enough_o s._n matthew_n add_v these_o word_n also_o of_o our_o saviour_n 20._o teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o which_o contain_v all_o good_a work_n and_o the_o whole_a justice_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n 17._o these_o sign_n shall_v follow_v miracle_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v that_o all_o christian_n or_o true_a believer_n shall_v do_v miracle_n but_o that_o some_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o shall_v have_v that_o gift_n the_o which_o be_v the_o grace_n or_o gift_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n execute_v by_o certain_a for_o the_o edification_n and_o profit_n of_o the_o whole_a the_o argument_n of_o s._n luke_n gospel_n s_o luke_n gospel_n may_v be_v divide_v into_o five_o part_n the_o first_o part_n be_v of_o the_o infancy_n both_o of_o the_o precursor_n and_o of_o christ_n himself_o chap._n 1_o and_o 2._o the_o second_o of_o the_o preparation_n that_o be_v make_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n chap._n 3_o and_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o 4._o the_o three_o of_o christ_n manifest_v himself_o by_o preach_v and_o miracle_n special_o in_o galilee_n the_o other_o piece_n of_o the_o 4_o chap._n unto_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o 17._o the_o four_o of_o his_o come_n into_o jury_n towards_o his_o passion_n the_o other_o piece_n of_o the_o 17_o chap._n unto_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o 19_o the_o five_o of_o the_o holy_a week_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o jerusalem_n the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o 19_o chap._n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n s._n luke_n be_v sectator_n say_v s._n hierome_n that_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n catalago_n and_o a_o companion_n of_o ãâã_d his_o peregrination_n and_o the_o same_o we_o see_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o from_o the_o 16_o chap._n s._n luke_n put_v himself_o in_o the_o train_n of_o s._n paul_n writing_n thus_o in_o the_o story_n forthwith_o we_o seek_v to_o go_v into_o macedonia_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o first_o person_n common_o through_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o book_n of_o he_o and_o his_o gospel_n s._n hierom_n understand_v this_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n we_o have_v send_v with_o he_o the_o brother_n who_o praise_n be_v in_o the_o gospel_n through_o all_o church_n 8._o where_o also_o he_o add_v some_o suppose_v so_o often_o as_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n say_v according_a to_o my_o gospel_n that_o he_o mean_v of_o luke_n book_n and_o again_o luke_n learn_v the_o gospel_n not_o only_o of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n who_o have_v not_o be_v with_o our_o lord_n in_o flesh_n but_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n which_o himself_o also_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n declare_v 2._o say_v as_o they_o deliver_v to_o we_o who_o themselves_o from_o the_o beginning_n see_v and_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n it_o follow_v in_o s._n hierome_n therefore_o he_o write_v the_o gospel_n as_o he_o have_v hear_v but_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o compile_v as_o he_o have_v see_v 14._o s._n paul_n write_v of_o he_o by_o name_n to_o the_o colossian_n 21._o luke_n the_o physician_n salute_v you_o and_o to_o timothee_n luke_n alone_o be_v with_o i_o catalogo_fw-la final_o of_o his_o end_n thus_o do_v s._n hierome_n write_v he_o live_v fourscore_o and_o four_o year_n have_v no_o wife_n he_o be_v bury_v at_o constantinople_n to_o which_o city_n his_o bone_n with_o the_o relic_n of_o andrew_n the_o apostle_n be_v translate_v out_o of_o achaia_n the_o twentieth_o year_n of_o constantius_n constantinus_n 2._o and_o of_o the_o same_o translation_n also_o in_o another_o place_n against_o vigilantius_n the_o heretic_n it_o grieve_v he_o that_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o martyr_n be_v cover_v with_o precious_a cover_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o either_o tie_v in_o clout_n or_o throw_v to_o the_o dunghill_n relic_n why_o be_v we_o then_o *_o sacrilegious_a when_o we_o enter_v the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v constantius_n constantinus_n '_o the_o emperor_n sacrilegious_a who_o translate_v to_o constantinople_n the_o holy_a relic_n of_o andrew_n luke_n and_o timothee_n at_o which_o the_o devil_n roar_n and_o the_o inhabiter_n of_o vigilantius_n confess_v that_o they_o feel_v their_o presence_n his_o sacred_a body_n be_v now_o as_o padua_n in_o italy_n wither_v it_o be_v again_o translate_v from_o constantinople_n the_o holy_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o luke_n chap._n i._n the_o annunciation_n and_o conception_n first_o of_o the_o precursor_n himself_o 26_o and_o six_o month_n after_o of_o christ_n also_o himself_o 39_o the_o visitation_n of_o our_o lady_n where_o both_o the_o mother_n do_v prophecy_n 5â_n the_o nativity_n and_o circumcision_n of_o the_o precursor_n where_o his_o father_n do_v prophesy_v 80_o the_o precursor_n be_v from_o a_o child_n a_o eremite_n verse_n 1_o because_v many_o have_v go_v about_o to_o compile_v a_o narration_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v accomplish_v among_o we_o â_o verse_n 2_o according_a as_o they_o have_v deliver_v unto_o we_o who_o from_o the_o beginning_n themselves_o saw_n and_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n â_o verse_n 3_o it_o seem_v good_a also_o unto_o i_o â³_o have_v diligent_o attein_v to_o all_o thing_n from_o the_o beginning_n to_o write_v to_o thou_o in_o order_n 1._o good_a *_o theophilus_n â_o verse_n 4_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v the_o verity_n of_o those_o word_n where_o of_o thou_o have_v be_v instruct_v â_o verse_n 5_o there_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o herod_n the_o king_n of_o jewrie_n baptist_n a_o certain_a priest_n name_v zacharie_n 10._o of_o the_o *_o course_n of_o abia_n and_o his_o wife_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o aaron_n and_o her_o name_n elizabeth_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o they_o be_v both_o â³_o just_a before_o god_n walk_a â³_o in_o all_o the_o commandment_n â³_o and_o iustification_n of_o our_o lord_n without_o blame_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o they_o have_v no_o son_n for_o that_o elizabeth_n be_v barren_a and_o both_o be_v well_o strike_v in_o their_o day_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o he_o execute_v the_o priestly_a function_n in_o the_o order_n of_o his_o course_n before_o god_n â_o verse_n 9_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o priestly_a function_n 17._o he_o go_v forth_o by_o lot_n *_o to_o offer_v incense_n enter_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o *_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o people_n be_v do_n pray_v without_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o the_o incense_n 16._o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o there_o appear_v to_o he_o a_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n stand_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o zacharie_n be_v trouble_v see_v he_o and_o fear_n fall_v upon_o he_o â_o verse_n 13_o but_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o he_o fear_v not_o zacharie_n for_o thy_o prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o thy_o wife_n elizabeth_n shall_v bear_v thou_o a_o son_n and_o thou_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n john_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o thou_o shall_v have_v â³_o joy_n and_o exultation_n and_o many_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o his_o nativity_n â_o verse_n 15_o for_o he_o shall_v be_v great_a before_o our_o lord_n nazarite_n and_o wine_n and_o sicer_n he_o shall_v not_o drink_v and_o he_o shall_v be_v replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o from_o his_o mother_n womb_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o shall_v *_o convert_v many_o of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o the_o lord_n their_o god_n 6._o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o he_o shall_v go_v before_o he_o *_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o virtue_n of_o elias_n 14._o that_o he_o may_v convert_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n unto_o the_o child_n and_o the_o incredulous_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a to_o prepare_v unto_o the_o lord_n a_o perfect_a people_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o zacharie_n say_v to_o the_o angel_n whereby_o shall_v i_o know_v this_o for_o i_o be_o old_a and_o my_o wife_n be_v well_o strike_v in_o her_o day_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o the_o angel_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o i_o be_o gabriel_n that_o assist_v before_o god_n and_o be_o send_v to_o speak_v to_o thou_o and_o to_o evangelise_v these_o thing_n to_o thou_o â_o verse_n 20_o and_o behold_v word_n thou_o shall_v be_v dumb_a and_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v until_o the_o day_n wherein_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v for-because_a thou_o have_v not_o believe_v my_o word_n which_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v in_o their_o time_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o the_o people_n be_v expect_v zacharie_n and_o they_o maruel_v that_o he_o make_v tarriance_n in_o the_o temple_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o come_v forth_o he_o can_v not_o speak_v to_o they_o and_o they_o know_v that_o he_o have_v see_v a_o
vision_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o he_o make_v sign_n to_o they_o and_o remain_v dumb_a â_o verse_n 23_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o the_o day_n of_o his_o office_n be_v expire_v â³_o he_o depart_v into_o his_o house_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o after_o these_o day_n elizabeth_n his_o wife_n conceive_v and_o hide_v herself_o five_o month_n say_v â_o verse_n 25_o for_o thus_o have_v our_o lord_n do_v to_o i_o in_o the_o day_n wherein_o he_o have_v respect_n to_o take_v away_o my_o reproach_n among_o man_n â_o verse_n 26_o advent_a and_o in_o the_o sixth_o month_n the_o angel_n gabriel_n be_v send_v of_o god_n into_o a_o city_n of_o galilee_n 18_o call_v nazareth_n â_o verse_n 27_o *_o to_o a_o virgin_n despouse_v to_o a_o man_n who_o name_n be_v joseph_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o the_o virgin_n name_n be_v marie_n â_o verse_n 28_o and_o the_o angel_n be_v enter_v in_o 42._o say_v unto_o she_o â³_o haile_o â³_o full_o of_o grace_n our_o lord_n be_v with_o thou_o bless_a art_n thou_o among_o woman_n â_o verse_n 29_o who_o have_v hear_v be_v trouble_v at_o his_o say_n and_o think_v what_o manner_n of_o salutation_n this_o shall_v be_v 14._o â_o verse_n 30_o and_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o she_o fear_v not_o marry_o for_o thou_o have_v find_v grace_n with_o god_n â_o verse_n 31_o *_o behold_v thou_o shall_v conceive_v in_o thy_o womb_n and_o shall_v bear_v a_o son_n and_o thou_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 32_o he_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o our_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v he_o the_o seat_n of_o david_n his_o father_n â_o verse_n 33_o *_o and_o he_o shall_v 27_o reign_v in_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n â_o verse_n 34_o and_o marie_n say_v to_o the_o angel_n mean_n how_o shall_v this_o be_v do_v â³_o because_o i_o know_v not_o man_n â_o verse_n 35_o and_o the_o angel_n answer_v say_v to_o she_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v overshadow_n thou_o and_o therefore_o also_o that_o which_o of_o thou_o shall_v be_v bear_v holy_a shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 36_o and_o behold_v â³_o elisabeth_n thy_o cousin_n she_o also_o have_v conceive_v a_o son_n in_o her_o old_a age_n and_o this_o month_n be_v the_o sixth_o to_o she_o that_o be_v call_v barren_a â_o verse_n 37_o because_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v impossible_a with_o god_n any_o word_n â_o verse_n 38_o and_o marie_n say_v man_n behold_v the_o handmaid_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v it_o do_v to_o i_o according_a to_o thy_o word_n â¢_o and_n the_o angel_n depart_v from_o she_o â_o verse_n 39_o and_o marie_n rise_v up_o in_o those_o day_n advent_a go_v unto_o the_o hill_n country_n with_o speed_n into_o a_o city_n of_o juda_n â_o verse_n 40_o and_o she_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o zacharie_n and_o salute_v elisabeth_n â_o verse_n 41_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o elisabeth_n hear_v the_o salutation_n of_o marie_n the_o mother_n infant_n do_v leap_v in_o her_o womb_n and_o elisabeth_n be_v replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o she_o cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n and_o say_v â³_o bless_a be_v thou_o among_o woman_n and_o bless_a be_v the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o womb_n â_o verse_n 43_o and_o whence_o be_v this_o to_o i_o that_o the_o â³_o mother_n of_o my_o lord_n do_v come_v to_o i_o â_o verse_n 44_o for_o behold_v as_o the_o voice_n of_o thy_o salutation_n found_v in_o my_o ear_n the_o infant_n in_o my_o womb_n do_v leap_v for_o joy_n â_o verse_n 45_o and_o bless_v be_v she_o that_o believe_v because_o those_o thing_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v that_o be_v speak_v to_o she_o by_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 46_o and_o marie_n say_v my_o soul_n do_v magnify_v our_o lord_n evensong_n â_o verse_n 47_o and_o my_o spirit_n have_v rejoice_v in_o god_n my_o saviour_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 48_o because_o he_o have_v regard_v the_o humility_n of_o his_o handmaid_n for_o behold_v from_o hence_o forth_o honour_n all_o generation_n â³_o shall_v call_v i_o bless_v â_o verse_n 49_o because_o he_o that_o be_v mighty_a have_v do_v great_a thing_n to_o i_o and_o holy_a in_o his_o name_n â_o verse_n 50_o and_o his_o mercy_n from_o generation_n unto_o generation_n to_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o â_o verse_n 51_o he_o have_v show_v might_n in_o his_o arm_n he_o have_v disperse_v the_o proud_a in_o the_o conceit_n of_o their_o hart_n â_o verse_n 52_o he_o have_v depose_v the_o mighty_a from_o their_o seat_n and_o have_v exalt_v the_o humble_a â_o verse_n 53_o the_o hungry_a he_o have_v fill_v with_o good_a thing_n and_o the_o scotfree_a he_o have_v send_v away_o empty_a â_o verse_n 54_o he_o have_v receive_v israel_n his_o child_n be_v mindful_a of_o his_o mercy_n â_o verse_n 55_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o our_o father_n to_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 56_o and_o marie_n tarry_v with_o she_o about_o three_o month_n and_o she_o return_v into_o her_o house_n â_o verse_n 57_o and_o elisabeths_n full_a time_n be_v come_v to_o be_v deliver_v day_n and_o she_o bear_v a_o son_n â_o verse_n 58_o and_o her_o neighbour_n and_o kinsfolk_n hear_v that_o our_o lord_n do_v magnify_v his_o mercy_n with_o she_o and_o they_o do_v congratulate_v she_o â_o verse_n 59_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v on_o the_o eight_o day_n they_o come_v to_o circumcise_v the_o child_n and_o they_o call_v he_o by_o his_o father_n name_n zacharie_n â_o verse_n 60_o and_o his_o mother_n answer_v say_v not_o so_o but_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v john_n â_o verse_n 61_o and_o they_o say_v to_o she_o that_o there_o be_v none_o in_o thy_o kindred_n that_o be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n â_o verse_n 62_o and_o they_o make_v sign_n to_o his_o father_n what_o he_o will_v have_v he_o call_v â_o verse_n 63_o and_o demand_v a_o writing_n table_n he_o write_v 13._o say_v *_o john_n be_v his_o name_n and_o they_o all_o maruel_v â_o verse_n 64_o and_o forthwith_v his_o mouth_n be_v open_v and_o his_o tongue_n and_o he_o speak_v blessing_n god_n â_o verse_n 65_o and_o fear_n come_v upon_o all_o their_o neighbour_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v bruit_v over_o all_o the_o hil-countrie_n of_o jewrie_n â_o verse_n 66_o and_o all_o that_o have_v hear_v lay_v they_o up_o in_o their_o hart_n say_v what_o a_o one_o trow_o you_o shall_v this_o child_n be_v for_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 67_o and_o zacharie_n his_o father_n be_v replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o he_o prophesy_v say_v â_o verse_n 68_o bless_a be_v our_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n laudes_fw-la because_o he_o have_v visit_v and_o wrought_v the_o redemption_n of_o his_o people_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 69_o and_o have_v erect_v the_o horn_n of_o salvation_n to_o we_o in_o the_o house_n of_o david_n his_o servant_n â_o verse_n 70_o as_o he_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o holy_a prophet_n that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n â_o verse_n 71_o salvation_n from_o our_o enemy_n and_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o that_o hate_v we_o â_o verse_n 72_o to_o work_n mercy_n with_o our_o father_n and_o to_o remember_v his_o holy_a testament_n â_o verse_n 73_o *_o the_o other_o which_o he_o swear_v to_o abraham_n our_o father_n 6._o â_o verse_n 74_o that_o he_o will_v give_v to_o we_o that_o without_o fear_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o enemy_n we_o may_v serve_v he_o â_o verse_n 75_o in_o holiness_n and_o â³_o justice_n before_o he_o all_o our_o day_n â_o verse_n 76_o and_o thou_o child_n 1._o shall_v be_v call_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a for_o *_o thou_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o face_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o prepare_v his_o way_n â_o verse_n 77_o to_o give_v knowledge_n of_o salvation_n to_o his_o people_n unto_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n â_o verse_n 78_o through_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o god_n in_o which_o â³_o the_o *_o orient_n from_o on_o high_a 12._o have_v visit_v we_o â_o verse_n 79_o to_o illuminate_v they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n to_o direct_v our_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n 2._o â_o verse_n 80_o and_o the_o child_n grow_v and_o be_v strengthen_v in_o spirit_n and_o be_v pauli_n in_o the_o desert_n until_o the_o day_n of_o his_o manifestation_n to_o israel_n annotation_n chap._n i._n 3._o have_v diligent_o attein_v counsel_n hereby_o we_o see_v that_o though_o the_o
and_o one_o of_o they_o be_v not_o forget_v before_o god_n â_o verse_n 7_o yea_o the_o hear_v also_o of_o your_o head_n be_v all_o number_v 32._o fear_v not_o therefore_o you_o be_v more_o worth_a than_o many_o sparowe_n â_o verse_n 8_o *_o and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o â³_o every_o one_o that_o confess_v i_o before_o man_n 38._o the_o son_n of_o man_n also_o will_v confess_v he_o before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 9_o but_o he_o that_o deni_v i_o before_o man_n 33._o shall_v be_v deny_v before_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 10_o *_o and_o 32._o every_o one_o that_o speak_v a_o word_n against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o 28_o but_o he_o that_o shall_v blaspheme_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 19_o to_o he_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v â_o verse_n 11_o *_o and_o when_o they_o shall_v bring_v you_o in_o to_o the_o synagog_n and_o to_o magistrate_n and_o potestates_fw-la 11._o be_v not_o careful_a in_o what_o manner_n and_o what_o you_o shall_v answer_n or_o what_o you_o shall_v say_v â_o verse_n 12_o for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v you_o in_o the_o very_a hour_n what_o you_o must_v say_v â_o verse_n 13_o and_o one_o of_o the_o multitude_n say_v to_o he_o master_n speak_v to_o my_o brother_n that_o he_o divide_v the_o inheritance_n with_o i_o â_o verse_n 14_o but_o he_o say_v to_o he_o man_z â³_o who_o have_v appoint_v i_o judge_v or_o devider_n over_o you_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o see_v and_o beware_v of_o all_o avarice_n for_o not_o in_o any_o man_n abundance_n do_v his_o life_n consist_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o possess_v â_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o speak_v a_o similitude_n to_o they_o say_v a_o certain_a scotfree_a man_n field_n yield_v plenty_n of_o fruit_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o he_o think_v within_o himself_o say_v basil_n what_o shall_v i_o do_v because_o i_o have_v not_o whither_o to_o gather_v my_o fruit_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o he_o say_v this_o will_v i_o do_v i_o will_v destroy_v my_o barn_n and_o will_v make_v great_a and_o thither_o will_v i_o gather_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v grow_v to_o i_o and_o my_o good_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o i_o will_v say_v to_o my_o soul_n soul_n thou_o have_v much_o good_n lay_v up_o for_o many_o year_n take_v thy_o rest_n eat_v drink_n make_v good_a cheer_n â_o verse_n 20_o but_o god_n say_v to_o he_o man_n thou_o fool_n this_o night_n they_o require_v thy_o soul_n of_o thou_o and_o the_o thing_n that_o thou_o have_v provide_v who_o shall_v they_o be_v â_o verse_n 21_o so_o be_v he_o that_o lay_v up_o treasure_n to_o himself_o and_o be_v not_o â³_o scotfree_a to_o god_n ward_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n 25_o *_o therefore_o i_o say_v to_o you_o 25._o be_v not_o careful_a for_o your_o life_n what_o you_o shall_v eat_v nor_o for_o your_o body_n what_o you_o shall_v do_v on_o â_o verse_n 23_o the_o life_n be_v more_o than_o the_o meat_n and_o the_o body_n be_v more_o than_o the_o raiment_n â_o verse_n 24_o consider_v the_o raven_n for_o they_o sow_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o reap_v which_o neither_o have_v storehouse_n not_o barn_n and_o god_n feed_v they_o how_o much_o more_o be_v you_o of_o great_a price_n than_o they_o â_o verse_n 25_o and_o which_o of_o you_o by_o care_v can_v add_v to_o his_o stature_n one_o cubite_fw-la â_o verse_n 26_o if_o then_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o thing_n for_o the_o rest_n why_o be_v you_o careful_a â_o verse_n 27_o consider_v the_o lily_n how_o they_o grow_v they_o labour_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o spin_v but_o i_o say_v to_o you_o neither_o solomon_n in_o all_o his_o glory_n be_v array_v as_o one_o of_o these_o â_o verse_n 28_o and_o if_o the_o grass_n that_o to_o day_n be_v in_o the_o field_n and_o to_o morrow_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o oven_n god_n so_o clothe_v how_o much_o more_o you_o o_o you_o of_o little_a faith_n â_o verse_n 29_o and_o you_o do_v not_o seek_v what_o you_o shall_v eat_v or_o what_o you_o shall_v drink_v and_o ãâã_d be_v not_o lift_v up_o on_o high_a â_o verse_n 30_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n do_v seek_v but_o your_o father_n know_v that_o you_o have_v need_n of_o these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 31_o but_o seek_v first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v give_v you_o beside_o â_o verse_n 32_o bishop_n fear_v not_o 13._o little_a flock_n for_o it_o have_v please_v your_o father_n to_o give_v you_o a_o kingdom_n â_o verse_n 33_o sel_n the_o thing_n that_o you_o possess_v and_o give_v alm_n *_o make_v to_o you_o purse_n that_o wear_v not_o 20._o treasure_n that_o waste_v not_o in_o heaven_n whither_o the_o thief_n approach_v not_o neither_o do_v the_o mothe_a corrupt_a â_o verse_n 34_o for_o â³_o where_o your_o treasure_n be_v there_o will_v your_o hart_n be_v also_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 35_o bishop_n let_v your_o ãâã_d loin_n be_v gird_v and_o candle_n burn_v in_o your_o hand_n â_o verse_n 36_o and_o you_o like_v to_o man_n expect_v their_o lord_n when_o he_o shall_v return_v from_o the_o marriage_n that_o when_o he_o do_v come_v and_o knock_v forthwith_o they_o may_v open_v unto_o he_o â_o verse_n 37_o bless_a be_v those_o servant_n who_o when_o the_o lord_n come_v he_o shall_v find_v watch_v amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o he_o will_v gird_v himself_o and_o make_v they_o sit_v down_o and_o pass_v will_v minister_v unto_o they_o â_o verse_n 38_o and_o if_o he_o come_v in_o the_o second_o watch_n and_o if_o in_o the_o three_o watch_n he_o come_v and_o so_o find_v 43._o bless_a be_v those_o servant_n â_o verse_n 39_o *_o and_o this_o know_v you_o that_o if_o the_o house_n holder_n do_v know_v what_o hour_n the_o thief_n will_v come_v he_o will_v watch_n very_o and_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o house_n to_o be_v break_v up_o â_o verse_n 40_o be_v you_o also_o ready_a for_o at_o what_o hour_n you_o think_v not_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v come_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 41_o and_o peter_n say_v to_o he_o lord_n do_v thou_o speak_v this_o parable_n to_o we_o or_o likewise_o to_o all_o â_o verse_n 42_o and_o our_o lord_n say_v who_o think_v thou_o be_v a_o faithful_a steward_n and_o wise_a who_o the_o lord_n appoint_v over_o his_o family_n to_o give_v they_o in_o season_n their_o measure_n of_o wheat_n â_o verse_n 43_o blessed_n be_v that_o servant_n who_o when_o the_o lord_n come_v he_o shall_v find_v so_o do_v â_o verse_n 44_o very_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o over_o all_o thing_n which_o he_o possess_v he_o shall_v appoint_v he_o â_o verse_n 45_o but_o if_o that_o servant_n say_v in_o his_o hart_n my_o lord_n be_v long_o a_o come_n and_o shall_v begin_v to_o strike_v the_o servant_n and_o handmaid_n and_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o be_v drink_v â_o verse_n 46_o the_o lord_n of_o that_o servant_n shall_v come_v in_o a_o day_n that_o he_o hope_v not_o and_o at_o a_o hour_n that_o he_o know_v not_o and_o shall_v divide_v he_o and_o shall_v appoint_v his_o portion_n with_o the_o infidel_n â_o verse_n 47_o and_o that_o servant_n that_o know_v the_o will_v of_o his_o lord_n and_o prepare_v not_o himself_o and_o do_v not_o according_a to_o his_o will_v shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n â_o verse_n 48_o but_o he_o that_o know_v not_o and_o do_v thing_n worthy_a of_o stripe_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o few_o and_o every_o one_o to_o who_o much_o be_v give_v much_o shall_v be_v require_v of_o he_o and_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v much_o more_o will_v they_o demand_v of_o he_o â_o verse_n 49_o i_o come_v to_o cast_v fire_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o what_o will_v i_o but_o that_o it_o be_v kindle_v â_o verse_n 50_o but_o i_o have_v to_o be_v baptize_v with_o a_o baptism_n and_o how_o be_o i_o straiten_v until_o it_o be_v dispatch_v 34._o â_o verse_n 51_o *_o think_v you_o that_o i_o come_v to_o give_v 34._o peace_n on_o the_o earth_n no_o i_o tell_v you_o but_o separation_n â_o verse_n 52_o for_o there_o shall_v be_v from_o this_o time_n five_o in_o one_o house_n divide_v three_o against_o two_o and_o two_o against_o three_o â_o verse_n 53_o there_o shall_v be_v divide_v the_o father_n against_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n against_o his_o father_n the_o mother_n against_o the_o daughter_n and_o the_o daughter_n against_o the_o mother_n the_o mother_n in_o la_o against_o her_o daughter_n in_o la_o and_o the_o daughter_n in_o la_o against_o her_o mother_n in_o la_o â_o verse_n 54_o *_o and_o he_o
through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o for_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 9_o seq_fw-la not_o of_o work_n that_o no_o man_n glory_n â_o verse_n 10_o for_o we_o be_v his_o work_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n in_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o â_o verse_n 11_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n be_v mindful_a that_o sometime_o you_o be_v gentile_n in_o the_o flesh_n 7._o who_o be_v *_o call_v prepuce_fw-la of_o that_o which_o be_v call_v circumcision_n in_o the_o flesh_n make_v with_o hand_n 4._o â_o verse_n 12_o who_o be_v at_o that_o time_n without_o christ_n alienate_v from_o the_o conversation_n of_o israël_n and_o *_o stranger_n of_o the_o testament_n have_v no_o hope_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o without_o god_n in_o this_o world_n â_o verse_n 13_o but_o now_o in_o christ_n jesus_n you_o that_o sometime_o be_v far_o of_o be_v make_v nigh_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o he_o be_v our_o peace_n who_o have_v make_v both_o one_o and_o dissolve_v the_o middle_a brickwall_n of_o the_o partition_n the_o enmity_n in_o his_o flesh_n â_o verse_n 15_o evacuate_v the_o la_o of_o commandment_n ãâã_d in_o decree_n that_o he_o may_v create_v the_o two_o in_o himself_o into_o one_o new_a man_n make_v peace_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o may_v reconcile_v both_o in_o one_o body_n to_o god_n by_o the_o cross_n kill_v the_o enmity_n in_o himself_o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o come_v he_o evangelize_v peace_n to_o you_o that_o be_v far_o of_o 2._o and_o peace_n to_o they_o that_o be_v nigh_o 21._o â_o verse_n 18_o for_o *_o by_o he_o we_o have_v access_n both_o in_o one_o spirit_n to_o the_o father_n â_o verse_n 19_o now_o then_o you_o be_v not_o stranger_n and_o foreigner_n but_o you_o be_v ãâã_d citizen_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o domestical_o of_o god_n â_o verse_n 20_o â³_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o high_a corner_n stone_n â_o verse_n 21_o in_o who_o all_o building_n frame_v together_o grow_v into_o a_o holy_a temple_n in_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 22_o in_o who_o you_o also_o be_v build_v together_o into_o a_o habitation_n of_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n ii_o â_o by_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n thereof_o our_o first_o justification_n be_v of_o god_n grace_n and_o not_o of_o our_o deserve_n because_o none_o of_o all_o our_o action_n that_o be_v before_o our_o justification_n can_v merit_v or_o just_o procure_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n again_o he_o say_v through_o faith_n for_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o beginning_n foundation_n and_o root_n of_o all_o justification_n and_o the_o first_o of_o all_o other_o virtue_n without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n 20._o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n also_o note_v against_o the_o heretic_n that_o think_v it_o dishonourable_a to_o christ_n to_o attribute_v his_o title_n or_o calling_n to_o mortal_a man_n that_o the_o faithful_a though_o build_v first_o principal_o and_o proper_o upon_o christ_n yet_o be_v say_v here_o to_o be_v build_v also_o upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n why_o may_v not_o the_o church_n then_o be_v build_v upon_o peter_n chap._n iii_o for_o witness_v the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n he_o be_v ãâã_d prison_n 1â_n wherein_o the_o gentile_n therefore_o have_v cause_n to_o rejoice_v rather_o than_o to_o shrink_v so_o he_o say_v 14_o and_o also_o pray_v to_o god_n who_o be_v almighty_a to_o confirm_v their_o inward_a man_n though_o the_o outward_a be_v infirm_v by_o persecution_n verse_n 1_o for_o this_o cause_n i_o paul_n the_o prisoner_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o you_o gentile_n â_o verse_n two_o if_o yet_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v i_o towards_o you_o â_o verse_n 3_o because_o according_a to_o revelation_n the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v know_v to_o i_o as_o i_o have_v write_v before_o in_o brief_a â_o verse_n 4_o according_a as_o you_o read_v may_v understand_v my_o wisdom_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 5_o which_o unto_o other_o generation_n be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n as_o now_o it_o be_v reveal_v to_o his_o holy_a apostle_n &_o prophet_n in_o the_o spirit_n â_o verse_n 6_o the_o gentile_n to_o be_v coheire_n &_o concorporate_a and_o comparticipant_a of_o his_o promise_n in_o christ_n jesus_n by_o the_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 7_o whereof_o i_o be_o make_v a_o minister_n according_a to_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v i_o according_a to_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o power_n 9_o â_o verse_n 8_o to_o i_o *_o the_o least_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v give_v this_o grace_n among_o the_o gentile_n to_o evangelise_v the_o unsearchable_a riches_n of_o christ_n ãâã_d â_o verse_n 9_o and_o to_o illuminate_v all_o man_n what_o be_v the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n hide_v before_o from_o world_n in_o god_n who_o create_v all_o thing_n â_o verse_n 10_o that_o the_o manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n may_v be_v notify_v to_o the_o prince_n and_o potestat_n in_o the_o celestial_n by_o the_o church_n â_o verse_n 11_o according_a to_o the_o prafinition_n prefinition_n of_o world_n which_o he_o make_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 12_o in_o who_o we_o have_v affiance_n and_o access_n in_o confidence_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o â_o verse_n 13_o pentecost_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n i_o desire_v that_o you_o faint_v not_o in_o my_o tribulation_n for_o you_o which_o be_v your_o glory_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o this_o cause_n i_o bow_n my_o knee_n to_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 15_o of_o who_o all_o paternitie_n in_o the_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n be_v name_v â_o verse_n 16_o that_o he_o give_v you_o according_a to_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n power_n to_o be_v fortify_v by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n â_o verse_n 17_o christ_n affirm_v to_o dwell_n by_o faith_n in_o your_o heart_n root_v and_o found_v virtue_n in_o charity_n â_o verse_n 18_o that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v with_o all_o the_o saint_n what_o be_v the_o breadth_n and_o length_n and_o height_n and_o depth_n â_o verse_n 19_o to_o know_v also_o the_o charity_n of_o christ_n surpass_v knowledge_n that_o you_o may_v be_v fill_v unto_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n 2d_o â_o verse_n 20_o and_o *_o to_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n more_o abundant_o than_o we_o desire_v or_o understand_v according_a to_o the_o power_n that_o work_v in_o we_o â_o verse_n 21_o to_o he_o be_v glory_n in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o all_o generation_n world_n without_o end_n amen_n chap._n four_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n most_o ãâ¦ã_o with_o all_o humility_n bring_v they_o many_o motive_n thereunto_o 7_o and_o ãâ¦ã_o that_o ãâã_d the_o diversity_n itself_o of_o office_n be_v not_o for_o division_n as_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n himself_o ãâã_d to_o build_v up_o the_o church_n and_o to_o hold_v all_o in_o the_o unity_n thereof_o against_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o of_o heretic_n that_o under_o christ_n the_o head_n in_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n every_o member_n may_v prosper_v 17_o neither_o as_o touch_v life_n must_v we_o ãâã_d like_o the_o heathen_a but_o as_o it_o become_v christian_n lay_v of_o all_o our_o old_a corrupt_a manner_n and_o increase_v daily_o in_o all_o goodness_n verse_n 1_o i_o therefore_o prisoner_n in_o our_o lord_n schism_n beseech_v you_o that_o you_o walk_v worthy_a of_o the_o vocation_n in_o which_o you_o be_v call_v â_o verse_n 2_o with_o all_o humility_n &_o mildness_n with_o patience_n support_v one_o a_o other_o in_o charity_n â_o verse_n 3_o careful_a to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n â_o verse_n 4_o one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n as_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o vocation_n â_o verse_n 5_o one_o lord_n 10._o â³_o one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n â_o verse_n 6_o *_o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o day_n which_o be_v ever_o all_o 4._o and_o by_o all_o and_o in_o all_o us._n â¢_o â_o verse_n 7_o but_o *_o to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o donation_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 8_o for_o the_o which_o he_o say_v ascend_v on_o high_a 19_o he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a he_o give_v gift_n to_o man_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o that_o he_o ascend_v
the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o all_o the_o sacrament_n and_o grace_n give_v by_o the_o same_o be_v name_v the_o new_a mandatum_fw-la for_o which_o our_o forefather_n call_v the_o thursday_n in_o the_o holy_a week_n call_v maundy_n thursday_n because_o that_o in_o it_o the_o new_a law_n and_o testament_n be_v dedicate_v in_o the_o chalice_n of_o his_o blood_n the_o old_a mandatum_fw-la law_n priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o that_o they_o be_v insufficient_a and_o unperfect_a be_v take_v away_o and_o this_o new_a sacrifice_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n give_v in_o the_o place_n thereof_o priesthood_n 19_o the_o introduction_n ever_o observe_v that_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v not_o a_o abolish_n of_o all_o priesthood_n of_o all_o priesthood_n but_o a_o introduction_n of_o a_o new_a contain_v the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a thing_n where_o the_o old_a have_v but_o temporal_a passion_n 21._o with_o a_o oath_n this_o oath_n signify_v the_o infallible_a and_o absolute_a promise_n of_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o new_a priesthood_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n by_o his_o death_n and_o blood_n shed_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n confirm_v it_o seal_v it_o and_o make_v himself_o the_o surety_n and_o pledge_n thereof_o for_o though_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v institute_v give_v and_o dedicate_v in_o the_o supper_n yet_o the_o warrant_n confirmation_n and_o eternal_a operation_n thereof_o be_v achieve_v upon_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o one_o oblation_n and_o one_o general_a and_o ever_o last_a redemption_n there_o make_v 23._o be_v many_o testament_n the_o protestant_n not_o understand_v this_o place_n feign_v very_o foolish_o that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v make_v this_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o old_a state_n and_o the_o new_a that_o in_o the_o old_a there_o be_v many_o priest_n in_o the_o new_a none_o at_o all_o but_o christ_n which_o be_v against_o the_o prophet_n esay_n 61._o special_o prophesy_v of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o s._n hierom_n declare_v upon_o the_o same_o place_n in_o these_o word_n you_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o ãâã_d priest_n of_o god_n the_o ãâã_d minister_n of_o our_o god_n shall_v it_o be_v say_v to_o your_o &_o it_o take_v away_o all_o visible_a priesthood_n &_o consequent_o the_o lawful_a state_n that_o the_o church_n and_o god_n people_n have_v in_o earth_n with_o all_o sacrament_n and_o external_a worship_n the_o apostle_n than_o mean_v first_o function_n that_o the_o absolute_a sacrifice_n of_o consummation_n perfection_n and_o universal_a redemption_n be_v but_o one_o once_o do_v and_o by_o one_o only_a priest_n do_v and_o therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v any_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n or_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o jew_n law_n or_o wrought_v by_o any_o or_o by_o all_o of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v a_o number_n at_o once_o and_o succeed_v one_o a_o other_o every_o of_o their_o office_n and_o function_n end_v by_o their_o death_n and_o can_v not_o work_v such_o a_o eternal_a redemption_n as_o by_o christ_n only_o be_v wrought_v upon_o the_o cross_n second_o s._n paul_n insinuate_v thereupon_o that_o christ_n never_o lose_v the_o dignity_n or_o practice_n of_o his_o eternal_a priesthood_n by_o death_n nor_o otherwise_o never_o yield_v it_o up_o to_o any_o never_o have_v successor_n after_o he_o that_o may_v enter_v into_o his_o room_n or_o right_n of_o priesthood_n as_o aaron_n and_o all_o other_o have_v in_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n but_o that_o himself_o work_v and_o concur_v with_o his_o minister_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o all_o their_o act_n of_o priesthood_n as_o well_o of_o sacrifice_n as_o sacrament_n blessing_n preach_v pray_v and_o the_o like_o what_o so_o ever_o this_o therefore_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o hebrews_n that_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v their_o levitical_a sacrifice_n and_o priesthood_n to_o be_v reform_v and_o perfect_v by_o christ_n sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n and_o against_o they_o the_o apostle_n only_o dispute_v and_o not_o against_o our_o priest_n of_o holy_a church_n or_o the_o number_n of_o they_o who_o all_o confess_v their_o priesthood_n and_o all_o exercise_n of_o the_o same_o to_o depend_v upon_o christ_n only_a perpetual_a priesthood_n 27._o this_o do_v he_o once_o this_o be_v the_o special_a preeminence_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o offer_v for_o other_o man_n sin_n only_o have_v none_o of_o his_o own_o to_o offer_v for_o as_o all_o other_o priest_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n have_v and_o this_o again_o be_v the_o special_a dignity_n of_o his_o own_o person_n not_o communicable_a to_o any_o other_o of_o what_o order_n of_o priesthood_n so_o ever_o that_o he_o by_o his_o death_n which_o be_v the_o only_a oblation_n that_o be_v by_o the_o apostle_n declare_v to_o be_v irreiterable_a in_o itself_o pay_v the_o one_o full_a sufficient_a ransom_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o all_o sin_n chap._n viii_o out_o of_o the_o same_o psalm_n 109_o he_o urge_v this_o also_o sit_v thou_o on_o my_o right_a hand_n showing_z that_o the_o levitical_a tabernacle_n on_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o his_o true_a tabernacle_n in_o heaven_n without_o which_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o priest_n at_o all_o 6_o whereas_o he_o be_v of_o a_o better_a priesthood_n theâ_n they_o as_o also_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n above_o the_o old_a verse_n 1_o but_o the_o sum_n concern_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v say_v be_v we_o have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n who_o be_v set_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o majesty_n in_o the_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 2_o a_o hand_n minister_n of_o the_o holies_n and_o of_o the_o true_a tabernacle_n which_o our_o lord_n pight_v &_o not_o man_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o every_o high_a priest_n be_v appoint_v to_o offer_v gift_n and_o host_n wherefore_o it_o be_v â³_o necessary_a that_o he_o also_o have_v some_o thing_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v â_o verse_n 4_o â³_o if_o than_o he_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n neither_o be_v he_o a_o priest_n whereas_o there_o be_v that_o do_v offer_v gift_n according_a to_o the_o law_n â_o verse_n 5_o that_o ãâã_d serve_v the_o exampler_n &_o shadow_n of_o â³_o heavenly_a thing_n as_o it_o be_v answer_v moses_n when_o he_o finish_v the_o tabernacle_n 40._o *_o see_v quoth_v he_o that_o thou_o make_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o exampler_n which_o be_v show_v thou_o in_o the_o mount_n â_o verse_n 6_o but_o now_o he_o have_v obtain_v a_o better_a ministry_n by_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v mediator_n of_o a_o better_a testament_n which_o be_v establish_v in_o better_a promise_n â_o verse_n 7_o for_o eternal_a if_o that_o former_a have_v be_v void_a of_o fault_n there_o shall_v not_o certes_o a_o place_n of_o a_o second_o be_v seek_v 31._o â_o verse_n 8_o for_o blame_v they_o he_o say_v behold_v the_o day_n shall_v come_v say_v our_o lord_n and_o i_o will_v consummate_v upon_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o upon_o the_o house_n of_o juda_n a_o new_a testament_n â_o verse_n 9_o not_o according_a to_o the_o testament_n which_o i_o make_v to_o their_o father_n in_o the_o day_n that_o i_o take_v their_o hand_n to_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n because_o they_o do_v not_o continue_v in_o my_o testament_n and_o i_o neglect_v they_o say_v our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 10_o for_o this_o be_v the_o testament_n which_o i_o will_v dispose_v to_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n after_o those_o day_n say_v our_o lord_n give_v my_o law_n â³_o into_o their_o mind_n &_o in_o their_o hart_n will_v i_o superscribe_v they_o and_o i_o will_v be_v â³_o their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o everyone_v â³_o shall_v not_o teach_v his_o neighbour_n and_o every_o one_o his_o brother_n say_v know_v our_o lord_n because_o all_o shall_v know_v i_o from_o the_o lesser_a to_o the_o great_a of_o they_o â_o verse_n 12_o because_o i_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o their_o iniquity_n &_o their_o sin_n i_o will_v not_o now_o remember_v â_o verse_n 13_o and_o in_o say_v a_o new_a the_o former_a he_o have_v make_v old_a and_o that_o which_o grow_v ancient_a and_o wax_v old_a be_v nigh_o to_o utter_v decay_n annotation_n chap._n viii_o 3._o necessary_a that_o he_o also_o only_o even_o now_o be_v in_o heaven_n because_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o priest_n he_o must_v needs_o have_v somewhat_o to_o offer_v and_o wherein_o to_o do_v sacrifice_n and_o that_o not_o in_o spiritual_a sort_n only_o for_o that_o can_v not_o make_v he_o a_o priest_n of_o any_o certain_a order_n and_o it_o be_v most_o false_a and_o wicked_a to_o hold_v with_o the_o caluiniste_n 8._o that_o melchisedeck_v priesthood_n
s._n deipara_n in_o fine_a s._n hilary_n in_o psal_n 124._o s._n chrysostom_n ho._n 66_o ad_fw-la po_fw-la antiochenum_fw-la in_o fine_a theodorete_n de_fw-fr curate_n graeâorum_fw-la affectuum_fw-la li._n 8_o in_o fine_a final_o all_o the_o father_n be_v full_a of_o these_o thing_n who_o better_a know_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o these_o new_a interpreter_n do_v interpretationâ_n 20._o private_a the_o scripture_n can_v not_o be_v right_o expound_v of_o every_o private_a spirit_n or_o fantasy_n of_o the_o vulgar_a reader_n but_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n wherewith_o they_o be_v write_v which_o be_v resident_a in_o the_o church_n chap._n ii_o at_o not_o only_a prophet_n but_o also_o false-prophet_n be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n so_o now_o likewise_o there_o shall_v be_v master_n of_o heresy_n to_o the_o damnation_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o follower_n 4_o and_o of_o their_o damnation_n he_o pronounce_v by_o example_n as_o he_o comfort_v the_o virtuous_a catholic_n or_o true_a believer_n with_o the_o example_n of_o lot_n because_o of_o their_o rail_n at_o their_o superior_n and_o prelate_n their_o blaspheme_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n their_o voluptuous_a live_n their_o lechery_n their_o covetousness_n their_o manner_n of_o seduce_v and_o the_o person_n seduce_v 20_o for_o who_o it_o have_v be_v less_o damnable_a if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v christian_n verse_n 1_o but_o there_o be_v also_o falseâ_n prophet_n in_o the_o people_n as_o also_o in_o you_o there_o *_o shall_v be_v lie_v master_n which_o shall_v bring_v in_o sect_n of_o perdition_n jude._n &_o deny_v he_o that_o have_v buy_v they_o ãâã_d the_o lord_n bring_v upon_o themselves_o speedy_a perdition_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o day_n many_o shall_v follow_v their_o riotousness_n by_o who_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n shall_v be_v blaspheme_v â_o verse_n 3_o and_o in_o avarice_n shall_v they_o soul_n with_o feign_a word_n make_v merchandise_n of_o you_o unto_o who_o the_o judgement_n now_o long_o since_o cease_v not_o and_o their_o perdition_n slumber_v not_o â_o verse_n 4_o for_o if_o god_n spare_v not_o angel_n sin_v but_o with_o the_o rope_n of_o hell_n be_v draw_v down_o into_o hell_n deliver_v they_o to_o be_v torment_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v reserve_v unto_o judgement_n â_o verse_n 5_o &_o he_o spare_v not_o the_o original_a world_n but_o *_o keep_v the_o eight_o 7._o noë_n the_o preacher_n of_o justice_n bring_v in_o the_o deluge_n upon_o the_o world_n of_o the_o impious_a 19_o â_o verse_n 6_o and_o *_o bring_v the_o city_n of_o the_o sodomite_n and_o of_o the_o gomorrheite_n into_o ash_n he_o damn_v they_o with_o subversion_n put_v a_o example_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v do_v impious_o 16._o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o *_o deliver_v just_a lot_n oppress_v by_o the_o injury_n and_o luxurious_a conversation_n of_o the_o abominable_a man_n â_o verse_n 8_o for_o in_o sight_n and_o *_o hearing_n he_o be_v just_a dwell_v with_o they_o who_o from_o day_n to_o day_n vex_v the_o just_a soul_n with_o unjust_a work_n â_o verse_n 9_o our_o lord_n know_v to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a from_o tentation_n but_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v torment_v heretic_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o especial_o they_o which_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n in_o concupiscence_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o contemn_v dominion_n bold_a self-pleasers_a they_o â_o fear_v not_o to_o bring_v in_o sect_n blaspheme_v â_o verse_n 11_o whereas_o angel_n be_v great_a in_o strength_n and_o power_n bear_v not_o the_o execrable_a judgement_n lord_n against_o they_o â_o verse_n 12_o but_o these_o man_n as_o unreasonable_a beast_n natural_o tend_v to_o the_o snare_n and_o into_o destruction_n ignorance_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v not_o blaspheme_v shall_v perish_v in_o their_o corruption_n â_o verse_n 13_o receive_v the_o reward_n of_o injustice_n esteem_v for_o a_o pleasure_n the_o delight_n of_o a_o day_n maecula_fw-la coinquination_n and_o spot_v flow_a in_o delicacy_n in_o their_o feast_n riot_v with_o you_o â_o verse_n 14_o have_v eye_n full_a of_o adultery_n and_o incessant_a sin_n allure_a unstable_a soul_n have_v their_o hart_n exercise_v with_o avarice_n the_o child_n of_o malediction_n â_o verse_n 15_o leave_v the_o right_a way_n they_o have_v err_v have_v follow_v the_o way_n of_o balaam_n of_o bosor_n which_o love_v the_o reward_n of_o iniquity_n 23._o â_o verse_n 16_o but_o *_o have_v a_o check_n of_o his_o madness_n the_o dumb_a beast_n under_o the_o yoke_n speak_v with_o man_n voice_n prohibit_v the_o foolishness_n of_o the_o prophet_n â_o verse_n 17_o these_o be_v fountain_n without_o water_n and_o cloud_n toss_v with_o whirlwind_n to_o who_o the_o mist_n of_o darkness_n be_v reserve_v â_o verse_n 18_o for_o speak_v the_o proud_a thing_n of_o vanity_n they_o allure_v in_o the_o desire_n of_o fleshly_a riotousness_n those_o that_o escape_v a_o little_a which_o converse_n in_o error_n â_o verse_n 19_o like_a promise_v they_o liberty_n whereas_o themselves_o be_v the_o slave_n of_o corruption_n for_o *_o wherewith_o a_o man_n be_v overcome_v 34._o of_o that_o he_o be_v the_o slave_n also_o â_o verse_n 20_o for_o if_o flee_v from_o the_o coinquination_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n 16._o they_o again_o entangle_v with_o the_o same_o be_v overcome_v 45._o *_o the_o late_a thing_n be_v become_v unto_o they_o worse_o than_o the_o former_a â_o verse_n 21_o for_o it_o be_v better_a for_o they_o not_o to_o know_v the_o way_n of_o justice_n then_o after_o the_o knowledge_n to_o turn_v back_o from_o that_o holy_a commandment_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o â_o verse_n 22_o for_o that_o of_o the_o true_a proverb_n be_v chance_v to_o they_o 11._o *_o the_o dog_n return_v to_o his_o vomit_n and_o the_o sow_n wash_v ãâã_d into_o her_o wallow_a in_o the_o mire_n chap._n iii_o thâse_o ãâã_d epistle_n âe_n write_v to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o warnetâ_n they_o of_o scorner_n that_o shall_v come_v and_o deny_v domesday_n 5_o who_o vain_a argument_n he_o answer_v and_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o god_n so_o long_a patience_n 10_o exhort_v to_o all_o holiness_n of_o life_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o terrible_a day_n 16_o final_o give_v warning_n of_o such_o as_o misinterprete_v s._n paul_n epistle_n &_o the_o other_o scripture_n and_o that_o we_o must_v not_o for_o any_o thing_n fall_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n verse_n 1_o this_o lo_o the_o second_o epistle_n i_o write_v to_o you_o my_o dear_a quibus_fw-la in_o which_o i_o stir_v up_o by_o admonition_n your_o sincere_a mind_n â_o verse_n two_o that_o you_o may_v be_v mindful_a of_o those_o word_n which_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o from_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o of_o your_o apostle_n of_o the_o precept_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n â_o verse_n 3_o know_v this_o first_o that_o *_o in_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v come_v mocker_n in_o deceit_n 18._o walk_v according_a to_o their_o own_o concupiscence_n â_o verse_n 4_o saying_n where_o be_v his_o promise_n or_o his_o come_n for_o verse_n 5_o since_o the_o time_n that_o the_o father_n sleep_v all_o thing_n do_v so_o perseuêre_fw-la from_o the_o begin_n of_o creature_n for_o they_o be_v wilful_o ignorant_a of_o this_o that_o the_o heaven_n be_v before_o &_o the_o earth_n out_o of_o water_n and_o through_o water_n consist_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 6_o by_o the_o which_o that_o world_n then_o be_v overflow_v with_o water_n perish_v â_o verse_n 7_o but_o the_o heaven_n which_o now_o be_v &_o the_o earth_n be_v by_o the_o same_o word_n keep_v in_o store_n reserve_v to_o fire_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n &_o of_o the_o perdition_n of_o the_o impious_a man_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o this_o one_o thing_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o 4_o my_o dear_a that_o *_o one_o day_n with_o our_o lord_n be_v as_o a_o thousand_o year_n &_o a_o thousand_o year_n as_o one_o day_n â_o verse_n 9_o our_o lord_n slack_v not_o his_o promise_n as_o some_o do_v esteem_v it_o 33._o but_o he_o do_v patient_o for_o you_o 2._o *_o not_o willing_a that_o any_o perish_v 24._o but_o that_o all_o return_n to_o penance_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o *_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v come_v as_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o which_o the_o heaven_n shall_v pass_v with_o great_a violence_n 5._o but_o the_o element_n shall_v be_v resolve_v with_o heat_n 3_o and_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o work_n which_o be_v in_o it_o shall_v be_v burn_v â_o verse_n 11_o therefore_o whereas_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v dissolve_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n ought_v you_o to_o be_v in_o holy_a
upon_o seven_o seven_o church_n seven_o angel_n seven_o star_n seven_o spirit_n seven_o candlestick_n seven_o lamp_n seven_o trumpet_n seven_o vialâ_n seven_o horneâ_n of_o the_o lamb_n seven_o hill_n seven_o thunder_n seven_o head_n of_o the_o dragon_n signify_v the_o diâel_n seven_o of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v antichrist_n seven_o of_o the_o beast_n that_o the_o harlot_n rid_v upon_o final_o the_o number_n also_o of_o the_o vision_n be_v special_o mark_v to_o be_v seven_o in_o this_o book_n and_o every_o time_n that_o this_o number_n be_v use_v in_o this_o prophecy_n it_o have_v a_o mystery_n &_o a_o more_o large_a meaning_n than_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o number_n be_v precise_o and_o vulgar_o take_v for_o as_o when_o he_o write_v to_o seven_o church_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o seven_o angel_n for_o all_o the_o angel_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o so_o forth_o in_o the_o rest_n because_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o have_v the_o perfection_n of_o universality_n in_o it_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v li._n 5_o quâst_n in_o deuter._n q._n 42._o 4._o from_o the_o 7_o spirit_n the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v here_o mean_v and_o so_o call_v for_o his_o seven_o fold_n gift_n and_o grace_n as_o some_o expositor_n think_v but_o it_o seem_v more_o probable_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o holy_a augel_n by_o compare_v this_o to_o the_o like_a in_o the_o 5_o chapter_n follow_a where_o he_o seem_v to_o call_v these_o angel_n the_o seven_o spirit_n send_v into_o all_o the_o world_n as_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o hebrews_n c._n 1._o 14_o speak_v of_o angel_n and_o so_o the_o protestant_n take_v it_o in_o their_o commentary_n which_o we_o note_v because_o thereupon_o they_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n here_o give_v or_o wish_v grace_n and_o peace_n not_o from_o god_n only_o but_o also_o from_o his_o angel_n though_o that_o benediction_n come_v one_o way_n of_o god_n and_o a_o other_o way_n of_o his_o angel_n or_o saint_n be_v but_o his_o creature_n and_o so_o they_o may_v learn_v that_o the_o faithful_a often_o loyn_v in_o one_o speech_n like_a god_n and_o our_o lady_n our_o lord_n and_o any_o of_o his_o saint_n to_o help_v we_o or_o bless_v we_o be_v not_o superstitious_a but_o a_o apostolical_a speech_n and_o so_o the_o patriarch_n say_v gen._n 48._o v._n 16._o the_o angel_n that_o deliver_v i_o from_o all_o evil_n bless_v these_o child_n see_v the_o annot._n act._n 25_o 28._o 6._o a_o kingdom_n and_o priest_n as_o all_o that_o true_o serve_v god_n and_o have_v the_o dominion_n and_o superiority_n over_o their_o concupiscence_n and_o whatsoever_o will_v induce_v they_o to_o sin_n priest_n be_v king_n so_o all_o that_o employ_v their_o work_n and_o themselves_o to_o serve_v god_n &_o offer_v all_o their_o action_n as_o a_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n to_o he_o be_v priest_n nevertheless_o as_o if_o any_o man_n will_v thereupon_o affirm_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o other_o earthly_a power_n or_o king_n to_o govern_v in_o worldly_a affair_n over_o christian_n be_v be_v a_o seditious_a heretic_n even_o so_o be_v they_o that_o upon_o this_o or_o the_o like_a place_n where_o all_o christian_n be_v call_v priest_n in_o a_o spiritual_a sort_n will_v therefore_o infer_v that_o every_o one_o be_v in_o proper_a signification_n a_o priest_n or_o that_o all_o be_v priest_n alike_o or_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v none_o but_o such_o spiritual_a priest_n for_o it_o be_v the_o seditious_a voice_n of_o corè_fw-la say_v to_o moses_n and_o aaron_n let_v it_o suffiââ_n you_o that_o all_o the_o multitude_n be_v of_o holy_a one_o and_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o theââ_n why_o be_v you_o extol_v over_o the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n num._n 16._o 10._o on_o the_o dominical_a day_n workeday_n many_o notable_a point_n may_v be_v mark_v here_o first_o that_o even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v day_n depute_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o so_o make_v holy_a and_o different_a though_o not_o by_o nature_n yet_o by_o use_n and_o benediction_n from_o other_o profane_a or_o as_o we_o call_v they_o workeday_n second_o authority_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o faithful_a abrogate_a the_o sabbath_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o make_v holy_a day_n for_o it_o the_o next_o day_n follow_a be_v the_o eight_o day_n in_o count_n from_o the_o creation_n and_o that_o without_o all_o scripture_n or_o commandment_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o read_v of_o yea_o which_o be_v more_o not_o only_o otherwise_o then_o be_v by_o the_o law_n observe_v but_o plain_o otherwise_o then_o be_v prescribe_v by_o god_n himself_o in_o the_o second_o commandment_n yea_o and_o otherwise_o then_o he_o ordain_v in_o the_o first_o creation_n church_n when_o he_o sanctify_v precise_o the_o sabbath_n day_n &_o not_o the_o day_n follow_a such_o great_a power_n do_v christ_n leave_v to_o his_o church_n and_o for_o such_o cause_n give_v he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v resident_a in_o it_o to_o guide_v it_o into_o all_o truth_n even_o such_o as_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o express_v and_o if_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n &_o inspiration_n from_o god_n resurrection_n to_o make_v sunday_n be_v a_o workday_n before_o a_o everlasting_a holy_a day_n and_o the_o saturday_n that_o before_o be_v holy_a day_n now_o a_o common_a workeday_n why_o may_v not_o the_o same_o church_n prescribe_v &_o appoint_v the_o other_o holy_a feast_n of_o easter_n whitsuntide_n christmas_n and_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o same_o warrant_v she_o have_v for_o the_o one_o that_o she_o have_v for_o the_o other_o three_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o change_n be_v for_o that_o now_o we_o christian_n esteem_v more_o our_o redemption_n than_o our_o first_o creation_n have_v the_o holy_a day_n which_o be_v before_o for_o the_o remembrance_n of_o god_n accomplishment_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o thing_n now_o for_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o our_o redemption_n which_o therefore_o be_v keep_v upon_o that_o day_n on_o which_o our_o lord_n rise_v from_o life_n to_o death_n sabbatum_fw-la which_o be_v the_o day_n after_o the_o sabbath_n be_v call_v by_o the_o jew_n una_fw-la or_o prima_fw-la sabbathi_o the_o first_o of_o or_o after_o the_o sabbath_n mat_n 28._o act._n 10._o 1_o cor._n 16._o four_o it_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o this_o holy_a day_n by_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n also_o be_v name_v dominiâââ_n dieâ_n our_o lord_n day_n or_o the_o dominike_n which_o be_v also_o a_o old_a ecclesiastical_a word_n in_o our_o language_n for_o the_o name_n sunday_n be_v a_o heathenish_a call_n as_o all_o other_o of_o the_o week_n day_n be_v in_o our_o language_n some_o impose_v after_o the_o name_n of_o planet_n as_o in_o the_o roman_n time_n some_o by_o the_o name_n of_o certain_a idol_n that_o the_o saxon_n do_v worship_v &_o to_o which_o they_o dedicate_v their_o day_n before_o they_o be_v christian_n which_o name_v the_o church_n use_v not_o but_o have_v appoint_v to_o call_v the_o first_o day_n the_o dominike_n after_o the_o apostle_n here_o the_o other_o by_o the_o name_n of_o fery_n until_o the_o last_o of_o the_o week_n which_o she_o call_v by_o the_o old_a name_n sabbath_n because_o that_o be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o by_o imposition_n of_o the_o heathen_a see_v the_o marginal_a annotation_n luc._n 24_o 1._o last_o observe_v fast_v that_o god_n reveal_v such_o great_a thing_n to_o prophet_n rather_o upon_o holy_a day_n and_o in_o time_n of_o contemplation_n sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n then_o on_o other_o profave_v day_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n peter_n act._n 10_o have_v a_o revelation_n at_o the_o six_o hour_n of_o prayer_n and_o zacharie_n luc._n 1_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o incense_n and_o cornelius_n act._n 10_o when_o he_o be_v at_o his_o prayer_n the_o ninthe_n hour_n so_o here_o s._n john_n note_v that_o he_o have_v all_o these_o marvellous_a vision_n upon_o a_o sunday_n 13._o vest_v in_o a_o priestly_a garment_n garment_n he_o appear_v in_o a_o long_a garment_n or_o vestment_n proper_a unto_o priest_n for_o so_o the_o word_n podere_n do_v signify_v as_o sap._n 18_o 24_o and_o that_o be_v most_o agreeable_a for_o he_o that_o represent_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o appear_v to_o john_n be_v a_o most_o holy_a priest_n and_o who_o be_v special_o note_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o his_o priestly_a garment_n call_v péâalon_n or_o lamina_fw-la euseb_n li._n 3_o hist_o eccl._n c._n 25._o &_o li._n 5_o c._n 23._o 20._o the_o seven_o star_n candlestick_n the_o bishop_n be_v the_o star_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n themselves_o be_v the_o golden_a
truth_n contain_v in_o this_o thy_o sacred_a book_n and_o in_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o thy_o dear_a spouse_n our_o mother_n the_o church_n we_o cry_v also_o unto_o thy_o majesty_n with_o tenderness_n of_o our_o heart_n unspeakable_a come_v lord_n jesus_n quickly_z and_o judge_v betwixt_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n give_v patience_n comfort_n and_o constancy_n to_o all_o that_o suffer_v for_o thy_o name_n and_o trust_v in_o thou_o o_o lord_n god_n our_o only_a helper_n and_o protector_n tarry_v not_o long_o amen_o â§_o a_o table_n of_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n after_o the_o roman_a use_n upon_o sunday_n holiday_n and_o other_o principal_a day_n of_o the_o year_n for_o such_o as_o be_v desirous_a to_o know_v and_o read_v they_o according_a to_o this_o translation_n and_o therefore_o the_o epistle_n take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v omit_v till_o the_o edition_n thereof_o upon_o sunday_n imber_n day_n and_o other_o fery_n the_o 1._o sunday_n in_o advent_a epistle_n pag._n 415._o gospel_n pag._n 199._o the_o 2._o sunday_n in_o advent_a ep._n 419._o gosp_n 18._o the_o 3_o sunday_n in_o advent_a ep._n 533._o god_n â17_n wenesday_n imber_n in_o advent_a testament_n gosâ_n 135._o fridday_n imber_n in_o advent_a gosp_n 136._o saturday_n imber_n in_o advent_a ep._n 554._o god_n 143._o the_o 4_o sunday_n in_o advent_a ep._n 432._o gosp_n 143._o christmas_n eve_o ep._n 38â_n gosp_n 4._o christmas_n day_n at_o the_o first_o mass_n ep._n 597._o gosp_n 139._o second_o mass_n epist_n 598._o gosp_n 140._o three_o mass_n ep._n 603._o god_n 216._o s._n steven_n ep_v 305._o gosp_n 66._o s._n john_n the_o euang._n gosp_n 279._o childermas_n day_n ep._n 724_o gosp_n 5._o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n ep._n 608._o god_n 248._o the_o sunday_n within_o the_o octave_n of_o christmas_n ep._n 504._o as_o on_o twelve_o eve_n gosp_n 14._o verse_n 33_o unto_o 41._o the_o circumcision_n of_o our_o lord_n ep._n 597._o gosp_n 140._o twelfth_v eve_n ep._n 504._o gosp_n 6._o the_o epiphanie_n of_o our_o lord_n call_v twelfth_v day_n gosp_n 5._o the_o 1_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphanie_n ep._n 412._o gosp_n 141._o the_o 2_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphanie_n ep._n ââ3_n gosp_n 220._o the_o 3_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphanie_n epis_n 413._o gosp_n 19_o the_o 4_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiph._n ep._n 414._o gosp_n 20._o the_o 5_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiph._n ep._n 542._o gosp_n 35._o the_o 6_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiph._n ep._n 546._o gosp_n 36._o the_o sunday_n of_o septuagesme_fw-fr ep._n 443._o gosp_n 56._o the_o sunday_n of_o sexagesme_fw-fr ep._n 489._o gosp_n 159._o the_o sunday_n of_o quinquagesme_fw-fr epist_n 456._o gosp_n 191._o upon_o ash_n wenesday_n gosp_n 15._o thursday_n after_o ashwenesday_n gosp_n 10._o friday_n after_o ash_n wenesday_n gosp_n 13._o saturday_n after_o ashwenesday_n gosp_n 103._o the_o 1_o sunday_n in_o lent_n ep._n 481_o gosp_n 9_o monday_n in_o the_o 1_o week_n of_o lent_n goseling_n 73._o tuesday_n gosp_n 59_o wenesday_n imber_n gosp_n 32._o thursday_n gosp_n 42._o friday_n imber_n gosp_n 229._o saturday_n imber_n gosp_n 48._o the_o 2_o sunday_n in_o lent_n ep_v 549._o gosp_n 48._o monday_n gosp_n 243._o tuesday_n gosp_n 64._o wenesday_n gosp_n 56._o vers_fw-la 17._o the_o same_o that_o be_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n thursday_n gosp_n 186._o friday_n gosp_n 60._o saturday_n gosp_n 183._o the_o 3_o sunday_n in_o lent_n ep._n 521_o gosp_n 170._o monday_n gosp_n 146._o tuesday_n gosp_n 51._o wenesday_n gosp_n 41._o thursday_n gosp_n 147._o friday_n gosp_n 225._o saturday_n gosp_n 242._o the_o 4_o sunday_n in_o lent_n ep._n 505._o gosp_n 232._o monday_n gosp_n 220._o tuesday_n gosp_n 239._o wenesday_n gosp_n 245._o thursday_n gosp_n 156._o friday_n gosp_n 250._o saturday_n gosp_n 242._o passion_n sunday_n epist_n 621._o gospel_n 244._o monday_n in_o passion_n week_n gosp_n 240._o tuesday_n gosp_n 239._o wenesday_n gosp_n 245._o thursday_n gosp_n 157._o friday_n gosp_n 252._o saturday_n gosp_n 254._o palm_n sunday_n before_o the_o benediction_n of_o the_o palm_n gosp_n 58._o at_o mass_n ep._n 528._o gosp_n 74._o monday_n in_o holy_a week_n gosp_n 253._o tuesday_n gosp_n 124._o wenesday_n gosp_n 201._o thursday_n ep._n 449._o gosp_n 256._o friday_n gosp_n 268._o saturday_n ep._n 542_o gosp_n 84._o easter_n day_n ep._n 433._o gosp_n 131._o monday_n in_o easter_n week_n ep._n 319_o gosp_n 211._o tuesday_n ep._n 328._o gosp_n 212._o wenesday_n ep._n 297_o gosp_n 278._o thursday_n ep._n 311._o gosp_n 274._o friday_n ep._n 660._o gosp_n 85._o saturday_n ep._n 657._o gosp_n 274._o the_o 1_o sunday_n after_o easter_n call_v low_a sunday_n ep._n 685._o gosp_n 275._o the_o 2_o sunday_n after_o easter_n ep._n 658._o gosp_n 248._o the_o 3_o sunday_n after_o easter_n ep._n 657._o gosp_n 264._o the_o 4_o sunday_n after_o easter_n ep._n 642._o gosp_n 264._o the_o 5_o sund._n after_o easter_n ep._n 642._o goâ_n 265_o the_o rogation_n day_n ep_v 651._o gosp_n 170._o the_o ascension_n âue_v ep._n 518._o gosp_n 266._o the_o ascension_n day_n ep._n 289._o gosp_n 132._o the_o sunday_n within_o the_o octave_n of_o the_o ascension_n ep._n 662._o gosp_n 263._o whitsun-eve_a ep._n 347._o gosp_n 260._o whit_n sunday_n ep._n 293._o gosp_n 260._o monday_n in_o whitsun_n week_n ep._n 319._o gosp_n 223._o tuesday_n ep._n 311_o gosp_v 248._o wenesday_n imber_n in_o whitsun_n week_n ep._n 301._o gosp_n 234._o thursday_n ep._n 310._o gosp_n 162._o friday_n imber_n in_o whitsun_n week_n gos_o 149._o saturday_n imber_n ep._n 393._o gosp_n 147._o trinity_n sunday_n ep._n 411._o gosp_n 85._o the_o 1_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n ep._n 683._o gosp_n 153._o corpus_n christ_n 1_o day_n ep._n 449._o gosp_n 235._o the_o 2_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n ep._n 681._o gosp_n 181._o the_o 3_o sunday_n ep._n 664._o gosp_n 182._o the_o 4_o sunday_n ep._n 400._o gosp_n 148._o the_o 5_o sund._n ep._n 660_o s_o v._o 8._o unto_o 15._o gosp_n 12_o the_o 6_o sunday_n ep._n 395._o gosp_n 107._o the_o 7_o sunday_n ep._n 396._o gosp_n 18._o the_o 8_o sunday_n ep._n 400._o gosp_n 185._o the_o 9_o sunday_n ep._n 445._o gosp_n 194._o vers_fw-la 41_o unto_o 47._o the_o 10_o sunday_n ep._n 454._o gosp_n 190._o the_o 11_o sunday_n ep._n 464._o gosp_n 106._o the_o 12_o sunday_n ep._n 476._o gosp_n 167._o the_o 13_o sunday_n ep._n 503._o gosp_n 188._o the_o 14_o sunday_n ep._n 509._o gosp_n 15._o the_o 15_o sunday_n ep._n 509._o gosp_n 556._o the_o 16_o sunday_n ep._n 517._o gosp_n 180._o the_o 17_o sunday_n ep._n 115._o gosp_n 63._o wenesday_n imber_n in_o september_n gosp_n 110._o friday_n imber_n in_o september_n gosp_n 157._o saturday_n imber_n in_o september_n ep._n 621._o gosp_n 178._o the_o 18_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n ep._n 425._o v._n 4_o unto_o the_o 9_o gosp_n 22._o the_o 19_o sunday_n ep._n 519._o vers_fw-la 23_o unto_o the_o 29._o gosp_n 62._o the_o 20_o sunday_n ep._n 521._o gosp_n 227._o the_o 21_o sunday_n ep._n 524._o gosp_n 52._o the_o 22_o sunday_n ep._n 526_o gosp_n 62._o vers_fw-la 15_o to_o the_o 22._o the_o 23_o sunday_n ep_v 531._o gosp_n 23._o the_o 24_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n ep._n 536._o gosp_n 68_o for_o saint_n and_o festival_n day_n peculiar_a and_o proper_a s._n andrew_n eve_n gosp_n 217._o s._n andrew_n day_n ep._n 408._o gosp_n 10._o s._n nicolas_n ep._n 636._o v._n 7_o to_o the_o 18._o gosp_n 72._o v._n 14_o to_o the_o 24._o the_o conception_n of_o our_o lady_n gosp_n 3._o s._n thomas_n the_o apost_n ep._n 516._o gosp_n 275._o in_o cathedra_fw-la s._n petri_n romae_fw-la ep_v 655._o gosp_n 44._o the_o conversion_n of_o s._n paul_n ep._n 315._o gosp_n 54._o candlânas_n day_n gosp_n 140._o s._n mathias_n ep._n 290._o gosp_n 29._o the_o annunciation_n of_o our_o lady_n gosp_n 135._o s._n george_n ep._n 588_o v._n 8_o to_o the_o 11._o &_o p._n 591._o v._n 10_o to_o the_o 13._o gosp_n 262._o s_o mark_v gosp_n 166._o in_o majoribus_fw-la litaniis_fw-la upon_o s._n mark_v day_n ep._n 651._o gosp_n 170._o ss_z philip._n &_o jacob_n gosp_n 259._o holy_a roodâ_n day_n in_o may_n or_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n epist_n 528._o gosp_n 222._o s._n barnabas_n day_n ep._n 322._o gosp_n 262._o s._n john_n baptist_n eve_n gosp_n 134._o s._n john_n baptist_n day_n call_v midsummer_n gosp_n 137._o ss_z peter_n &_o paul_n euâ_n ep._n 296._o go._n 279._o ss_z peter_n and_o paul_n day_n ep._n 324._o god_n 44._o the_o commemoration_n of_o s._n paul_n ep._n 495._o gosp_n 26._o the_o visitation_n of_o our_o lady_n gosp_n 136._o s._n marry_o magdalene_n gosp_n 157._o s._n james_n ep._n 432._o gosp_v 57_o s._n dominike_n ep._n 592._o gosp_n 175._o the_o transfiguration_n of_o our_o lord_n ep._n 667._o gosp_n 48._o s._n laurence_n ep._n 486._o gosp_n 254._o assumption_n eve_o gosp_n 171._o
come_v into_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n â_o verse_n 22_o but_o hear_v that_o archelaus_n reign_v in_o jewrie_n for_o herod_n his_o father_n he_o fear_v to_o go_v thither_o and_o be_v warn_v in_o sleep_n retire_v into_o the_o quarter_n of_o galilee_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o come_v he_o dwell_v in_o a_o city_n call_v nazareth_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v say_v by_o the_o prophere_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o nazarite_n annotation_n chap._n ii_o 1._o behold_v our_o lord_n apparition_n or_o epiphanie_n to_o these_o sage_n be_v gentile_n their_o pilgrimage_n to_o he_o and_o in_o they_o the_o first_o homage_n of_o gentility_n do_v unto_o he_o the_o twelve_o day_n after_o his_o nativity_n and_o therefore_o be_v twelve_o day_n high_o celebrate_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o joy_n of_o the_o call_n of_o we_o gentile_n his_o baptism_n also_o and_o first_o miracle_n be_v celebrate_v on_o the_o same_o day_n 2._o star_n christ_n nativity_n depend_v not_o upon_o this_o star_n as_o the_o priscillianist_n false_o surmise_v but_o the_o star_n upon_o his_o nativity_n for_o the_o service_n whereof_o it_o be_v create_v grego_n ho._n 10._o 2._o come_v to_o adore_v this_o come_n so_o far_o of_o devotion_n to_o visit_v and_o adore_v christ_n in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o birth_n pilgrimage_n be_v propre_o a_o pilgrimage_n to_o his_o person_n and_o warrant_v the_o faithful_a in_o the_o like_a kind_n of_o external_a worship_n do_v to_o holy_a person_n place_n and_o thing_n 4._o inquire_v of_o they_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v right_o consult_v in_o quaestion_n of_o their_o law_n and_o religion_n and_o be_v they_o never_o so_o ill_a be_v often_o force_v to_o say_v the_o truth_n by_o privilege_n of_o their_o unction_n as_o here_o and_o after_o they_o do_v concern_v the_o true_a messiah_n 11._o adore_v he_o this_o body_n say_v s._n chrysostom_n the_o sage_n adore_v in_o the_o crib_n let_v we_o at_o the_o least_o imitate_v they_o thou_o see_v he_o not_o now_o in_o the_o crib_n sacrament_n but_o on_o the_o altar_n not_o a_o woman_n hold_v he_o but_o the_o priest_n present_a and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pour_v out_o abundant_o upon_o the_o sacrifice_n ho._n 24._o in_o 1._o cor._n ho._n 7._o in_o mt._n ho._n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la philogonio_fw-la 11._o treasure_n these_o treasure_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o those_o riches_n and_o gift_n 71._o which_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o david_n and_o esay_n gentility_n shall_v offer_v to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n 60._o and_o now_o have_v offer_v special_o from_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a as_o also_o these_o three_o sage_n be_v principal_a man_n of_o their_o country_n represent_v the_o whole_a state_n of_o prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n chrys_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o say_a prophecy_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o humble_v themselves_o to_o his_o cross_n theophyl_n to_o foster_v enrich_v adorn_v and_o defend_v his_o church_n whereupon_o it_o be_v also_o a_o very_a convenient_a and_o agreeable_a tradition_n of_o antiquity_n king_n and_o a_o receive_a opinion_n among_o the_o faithful_a divinat_fw-la *_o not_o lack_v testimony_n of_o ancient_a writer_n and_o much_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o these_o three_o also_o be_v king_n 20._o to_o wit_n either_o according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o those_o country_n *_o where_o the_o prince_n be_v magi_n 14._o and_o *_o magi_n the_o great_a about_o the_o prince_n or_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o melchisedec_n king_n of_o salem_n and_o many_o other_o king_n that_o dwell_v within_o a_o small_a compass_n or_o as_o *_o jobe_n three_o friend_n be_v call_v king_n 2._o these_o be_v common_o call_v the_o three_o king_n of_o colen_n because_o their_o body_n be_v there_o 1._o translate_v thither_o from_o the_o east_n country_n their_o name_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v gaspar_n 1â_n melchior_n baltasar_n 11._o gift_n these_o sage_n be_v three_o and_o their_o gift_n three_o and_o each_o one_o offer_v every_o of_o the_o three_o to_o express_v our_o faith_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o gold_n to_o signify_v that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n the_o frankincense_n that_o he_o be_v god_n the_o myrrh_n that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v bury_v as_o man_n aug._n ser_n i._o de_fw-la epiph._n 15._o out_o of_o egypt_n this_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o like_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n here_o apply_v to_o christ_n whereas_o in_o the_o letter_n it_o may_v seem_v otherwise_o reach_v we_o how_o to_o interpret_v the_o old_a testament_n and_o that_o the_o principal_a sense_n be_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n 16._o murder_v by_o this_o example_n we_o learn_v how_o great_a credit_n we_o owe_v to_o the_o church_n in_o canonise_a saint_n and_o celebrate_v their_o holy_a day_n by_o who_o only_a warrant_n saint_n without_o any_o word_n of_o scripture_n these_o holy_a innocent_n have_v be_v honour_v for_o martyr_n and_o their_o holy_a day_n keep_v ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n although_o they_o die_v not_o voluntary_o nor_o all_o perhaps_o circuncise_v and_o some_o the_o child_n of_o pagan_n aug._n ep_v ââ_o orig._n ho._n 1._o in_o diversos_fw-la chap._n iii_o john_n baptist_n by_o his_o eremites_n life_n by_o his_o preach_n and_o baptism_n call_v all_o unto_o penance_n to_o prepare_v they_o to_o christ_n 10._o he_o preach_v to_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n threaten_v to_o they_o unless_o they_o true_o do_v penance_n reprobation_n here_o and_o damnation_n hereafter_o and_o so_o salvation_n send_v they_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o baptism_n christ_n which_o be_v far_o more_o excellent_a than_o johns_n yet_o christ_n himself_o among_o those_o penitent_n vouchsafe_v to_o come_v unto_o johns_n baptism_n where_o he_o have_v testimony_n from_o heaven_n also_o verse_n 1_o and_o in_o those_o day_n *_o come_v john_n the_o baptist_n preach_v in_o the_o â³_o desert_n of_o jewrie_n 4._o â_o verse_n 2_o &_o say_n 3._o â³_o do_v penance_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n 3._o â_o verse_n 3_o for_o this_o be_v he_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o esay_n the_o prophet_n say_v a_o voice_n of_o one_o cry_v in_o the_o desert_n prepare_v you_o the_o way_n of_o our_o lord_n make_v straight_o his_o path_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o the_o say_v john_n have_v his_o garment_n of_o camel_n hear_v &_o a_o girdle_n of_o a_o skin_n about_o his_o loin_n and_o his_o meat_n be_v locust_n &_o wild_a honey_n â_o verse_n 5_o then_o go_v forth_o to_o he_o jerusalem_n &_o all_o jewrie_n and_o all_o the_o country_n about_o jordan_n â_o verse_n 6_o &_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o in_o jordan_n â³_o confess_v their_o sin_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o see_v many_o of_o the_o pharisee_n &_o sadducées_n come_v to_o his_o baptism_n he_o say_v to_o they_o you_o viper_n brood_n who_o have_v show_v you_o to_o flee_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v â_o verse_n 8_o yield_v therefore_o â³_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o penance_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o delight_v not_o to_o say_v within_o yourselves_o we_o have_v abraham_n to_o our_o father_n for_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o god_n be_v able_a of_o these_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n to_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 10_o for_o now_o the_o â³_o axe_n be_v put_v to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n every_o tree_n therefore_o that_o do_v good_a not_o yield_v good_a fruit_n shall_v be_v cut_v down_o &_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n â_o verse_n 11_o 8._o i_o in_o deed_n baptize_v you_o â³_o in_o water_n unto_o penance_n 16._o but_o he_o that_o shall_v come_v after_o i_o 26._o be_v strong_a than_o i_o 4._o who_o shoe_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o bear_v temp_n he_o shall_v baptize_v you_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o fire_n â_o verse_n 12_o who_o fan_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o he_o shall_v clean_o purge_v his_o â³_o floor_n and_o he_o will_v gather_v his_o wheat_n into_o the_o barn_n but_o the_o chaff_n he_o will_v burn_v with_o unquencheable_a fire_n â_o verse_n 13_o then_o come_v jesus_n from_o galilee_n to_o jordan_n unto_o john_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o â_o verse_n 14_o but_o john_n stay_v he_o say_v i_o ought_v to_o be_v baptize_v of_o thou_o and_o come_v thou_o to_o i_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o suffer_v i_o for_o this_o time_n for_o so_o it_o become_v we_o to_o fulfil_v all_o justice_n then_o he_o suffer_v he_o â_o verse_n 16_o and_o jesus_n be_v baptize_v forthwith_o come_v out_o of_o the_o water_n and_o lo_o the_o heaven_n be_v â³_o open_v to_o he_o and_o he_o see_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n descend_v as_o a_o dove_n &_o come_v upon_o he_o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o behold_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v
of_o galilee_n day_n see_v two_o brethren_n 1._o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n &_o his_o brother_n cast_v a_o net_n into_o the_o sea_n for_o they_o be_v fisher_n â_o verse_n 19_o &_o he_o say_v to_o they_o come_v you_o after_o i_o and_o i_o will_v make_v you_o to_o be_v fisher_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 20_o but_o they_o incontinent_a leave_v the_o net_n follow_v he_o 19_o â_o verse_n 21_o and_o go_v forward_o from_o thence_o he_o see_v *_o other_o two_o brethren_n 10._o james_n of_o zebedee_n &_o john_n his_o brother_n in_o a_o ship_n with_o zebedee_n their_o father_n repair_v their_o net_n and_o he_o call_v they_o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o they_o forthwith_v leave_v their_o net_n &_o father_n and_o follow_v he_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o jesus_n go_v round_o about_o all_o galilee_n teach_v in_o their_o synagogs_n &_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o â³healing_v every_o malady_n and_o every_o infirmity_n in_o the_o people_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o the_o bruit_n of_o he_o go_v into_o all_o syria_n and_o they_o present_v to_o he_o all_o that_o be_v ill_a at_o ease_n diverse_o take_v with_o disease_n and_o torment_n and_o such_o as_o be_v possess_v and_o lunatike_n and_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n and_o he_o cure_v they_o â_o verse_n 25_o and_o much_o people_n follow_v he_o from_o galilee_n and_o decapolis_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o beyond_o jordan_n annotation_n chap._n four_o 1._o desert_n as_o john_n the_o baptist_n so_o our_o saviour_n by_o go_v into_o the_o desert_n and_o there_o live_v in_o contemplation_n even_o among_o brute_n beast_n eremites_fw-la and_o subject_a to_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o our_o sin_n geve_v a_o warrant_n and_o example_n to_o such_o holy_a man_n as_o have_v live_v in_o wilderness_n for_o penance_n and_o contemplation_n call_v eremites_n 2._o fast_v fourtis_fw-la day_n elias_n and_o moses_n say_v s._n hierom_n by_o the_o fast_o of_o 40_o day_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o familiarity_n of_o god_n lent-fast_a and_o our_o lord_n himself_o in_o the_o wilderness_n fast_v as_o many_o to_o leave_v unto_o we_o the_o solemn_a day_n of_o fast_o that_o be_v lent_n hiero._n in_o c._n 58_o esa_n s._n augustine_n also_o have_v the_o very_a like_o word_n ep_v 119._o and_o general_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o by_o occasion_n or_o of_o purpose_n speak_v of_o the_o lent-fast_a make_v it_o not_o only_o a_o imitation_n of_o our_o saviour_n fast_n but_o also_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v keep_v montanum_fw-la contemn_v not_o lend_v say_v s._n ignatius_n for_o it_o contain_v the_o imitation_n of_o our_o lord_n conversation_n and_o s._n ambrose_n say_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v not_o ordain_v by_o man_n but_o consecrate_v by_o god_n nor_o invent_v by_o any_o earthly_a cogitation_n but_o command_v by_o the_o heavenly_a majesty_n and_o again_o that_o it_o be_v sin_n not_o to_o fast_v all_o the_o lent_n s._n hieroms_n word_n also_o be_v most_o plain_a we_o say_v he_o fast_a forty_o day_n or_o make_v one_o lend_v in_o a_o year_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o time_n convenient_a this_o time_n most_o convenient_a be_v as_o s._n augustine_n say_v ep_v 119_o immediate_o before_o easter_n thereby_o to_o communicate_v with_o our_o saviour_n passion_n and_o as_o other_o writer_n do_v add_v thereby_o to_o come_v the_o better_o prepare_v and_o more_o worthy_o to_o the_o great_a solemnity_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n beside_o many_o other_o goodly_a reason_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o for_o brevity_n we_o omit_v see_v good_a christian_a reader_n 12_o notable_a sermon_n of_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a de_fw-fr quadragesiââ_n of_o lent_n namely_o ser._n 6_o and_o 9_o where_o he_o call_v it_o the_o apostle_n ordinance_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n see_v s._n ambrose_n from_o the_o 23_o sermon_n forward_o in_o s._n bernard_n 7_o sermon_n and_o in_o many_o other_o father_n the_o like_a temp_n last_o of_o all_o note_v well_o the_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o affirm_v that_o by_o due_a observation_n thereof_o the_o wicked_a be_v separate_v from_o the_o good_a infidel_n from_o christian_n heretic_n from_o faithful_a catholic_n 6._o it_o be_v write_v heretic_n allege_v scripture_n as_o here_o the_o devil_n do_v in_o the_o false_a sense_n the_o church_n use_v they_o as_o christ_n do_v in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o to_o consute_n their_o falsehood_n aug._n count_n lit_fw-fr petil._n li._n â_o c._n ãâã_d 10._o 7._o 11._o he_o only_o serve_v it_o be_v not_o say_v say_v s._n augustine_n the_o lord_n thy_o god_n only_o shall_v thou_o âdore_v dulia_n as_o it_o be_v say_v he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v in_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d aug._n sup_v gen._n 9_o 61._o whereupon_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v always_o use_v this_o most_o true_a and_o necessary_a distinction_n that_o there_o be_v a_o honour_n dew_n to_o god_n only_o which_o to_o give_v unto_o any_o creature_n be_v idolatry_n and_o there_o be_v a_o honour_n dew_n to_o creature_n also_o according_a to_o their_o dignity_n as_o to_o saint_n holy_a thing_n and_o holy_a place_n see_v euseb_n hist_o ec._n li._n 4._o c._n 14._o s._n hierom._n cont_n vigil_n ep_v 53._o aug._n li._n 10._o ciâit_fw-la c._n 1._o li._n 1_o trin._n c._n 6._o conâ_n nic._n 2._o damase_v li._n 1._o de_fw-fr imag._n bed_n in_o 4._o luc._n 17._o do_v penance_n that_o penance_n be_v necessary_a also_o before_o baptism_n for_o such_o as_o be_v of_o age_n as_o johns_n so_o our_o saviour_n preach_v declare_v both_o beginning_n with_o penance_n 23._o heal_v every_o malady_n christ_n say_v s._n augustine_n by_o miracle_n get_v authority_n by_o authority_n find_v credit_n by_o credit_n draw_v together_o a_o multitude_n by_o a_o multitude_n obtain_v antiquity_n by_o antiquity_n fortify_v a_o religion_n which_o nor_o only_a the_o most_o fond_a new_a rise_n of_o heretic_n use_v deceitful_a wile_n but_o neither_o the_o drowsy_a old_a error_n of_o the_o very_a heathen_a with_o violence_n set_v against_o it_o may_v in_o any_o part_n shake_v and_o cast_v down_o aug._n the_o util_a cred_a c._n 14._o chap._n v._n first_o 4._o 3_o he_o promise_v reward_n 13_o and_o he_o lay_v before_o the_o apostle_n their_o office_n 17_o second_o he_o protest_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o must_v keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o that_o more_o exact_o than_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n who_o justice_n weas_z count_v most_o perlite_a but_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v unsufficient_a he_o show_v in_o the_o precept_n of_o 21_o murder_n â7_n adultery_n â1_n divorce_n ãâã_d swear_v 38_o revenge_n 42_o usury_n 43_o enemy_n verse_n 1_o and_o see_v the_o multitude_n 20._o he_o *_o go_v up_o into_o a_o mountain_n and_o when_o he_o be_v set_v his_o disciple_n come_v unto_o he_o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o open_v his_o mouth_n he_o teach_v they_o say_v â_o verse_n 3_o blessed_n be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n catechism_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 4_o blessed_n be_v the_o meek_a for_o they_o shall_v possess_v the_o land_n â_o verse_n 5_o bless_v be_v they_o that_o mourn_v martyr_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v comfort_v â_o verse_n 6_o blessed_n be_v they_o that_o hunger_n &_o thirst_n after_o justice_n for_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o fill_n â_o verse_n 7_o blessed_n be_v the_o merciful_a for_o they_o shall_v obtain_v mercy_n â_o verse_n 8_o blessed_n be_v the_o clean_a of_o hart_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n â_o verse_n 9_o blessed_n be_v the_o peacemaker_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 10_o blessed_n be_v they_o that_o suffer_v persecution_n â³_o for_o justice_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 11_o blessed_n be_v you_o when_o they_o shall_v revile_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o &_o speak_v all_o that_o naught_o be_v against_o you_o untrue_o for_o my_o sake_n â_o verse_n 12_o be_v glad_a &_o rejoice_v for_o yourâ³_n reward_n be_v very_o great_a in_o heaven_n â¢_o for_o so_o they_o persecute_v the_o prophet_n that_o be_v before_o you_o â_o verse_n 13_o you_o be_v the_o *_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n 50._o â_o verse_n 14_o but_o if_o the_o salt_n lose_v his_o virtue_n doctor_n wherewith_o shall_v it_o be_v salt_v it_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o any_o more_o but_o to_o be_v cast_v forth_o 34._o and_o to_o be_v tread_v of_o man_n â_o verse_n 15_o you_o be_v the_o â³_o light_a of_o the_o world_n a_o city_n can_v be_v hide_v situate_v on_o a_o mountain_n â_o verse_n 16_o neither_o do_v man_n light_v a_o *_o candle_n and_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n 21_o but_o upon_o a_o candlestick_n that_o it_o may_v shine_v to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o
thing_n therefore_o whatsoever_o you_o will_v that_o man_n do_v to_o you_o do_v you_o also_o to_o they_o for_o this_o be_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n 24._o â_o verse_n 13_o enter_v you_o by_o the_o narrow_a gate_n because_o broad_a be_v the_o gate_n and_o large_a be_v the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o perdition_n and_o many_o there_o be_v that_o enter_v by_o it_o â_o verse_n 14_o how_o narrow_a be_v the_o gate_n and_o straight_o be_v the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o pentecont_n â_o verse_n 15_o take_v you_o great_a heed_n of_o false_a prophet_n which_o come_v to_o you_o in_o the_o â³_o clothe_v of_o sheep_n but_o inward_o be_v raven_a wolf_n â_o verse_n 16_o â³_o by_o their_o 44._o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o do_v man_n gather_v grape_n of_o thorn_n or_o fig_n of_o thistle_n â_o verse_n 17_o even_o so_o every_o good_a tree_n yield_v good_a fruit_n and_o the_o evil_a tree_n yield_v evil_a fruit_n â_o verse_n 18_o a_o good_a tree_n can_v not_o yield_v evil_a fruit_n neither_o a_o evil_a tree_n yield_v good_a fruit_n â_o verse_n 19_o every_o tree_n that_o yield_v not_o good_a fruit_n shall_v be_v cut_v down_o and_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o fire_n â_o verse_n 20_o therefore_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o â_o verse_n 21_o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v to_o i_o â³_o lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_v of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 22_o many_o shall_v say_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n lord_n lord_n have_v not_o we_o prophesy_v in_o they_o name_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n wrought_v many_o miracle_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o then_o i_o will_v confess_v unto_o they_o that_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o that_o work_n iniquity_n â_o verse_n 24_o 47._o every_o one_o therefore_o that_o hear_v these_o my_o word_n and_o do_v they_o shall_v be_v liken_v to_o a_o wise_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o a_o rock_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o the_o rain_n fall_v and_o the_o flood_n come_v &_o the_o wind_n blue_a and_o they_o beat_v against_o that_o house_n and_o it_o fall_v not_o for_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n â_o verse_n 26_o and_o every_o one_o that_o hear_v these_o my_o word_n &_o do_v they_o not_o shall_v be_v like_o a_o foolish_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o the_o sand_n â_o verse_n 27_o and_o the_o rain_n fall_v and_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o the_o wind_v blue_a and_o they_o beat_v against_o that_o house_n and_o it_o fall_v &_o the_o fall_n thereof_o be_v great_a â_o verse_n 28_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o jesus_n have_v full_o end_v these_o word_n the_o multitutde_fw-mi be_v in_o 32._o admiration_n upon_o his_o doctrine_n â_o verse_n 29_o for_o he_o be_v teach_v they_o as_o have_v power_n and_o not_o as_o their_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n annotation_n chap._n vii_o 1._o judge_v not_o it_o be_v not_o christian_a part_n to_o judge_v ill_a of_o man_n act_n which_o be_v in_o themselves_o good_a and_o may_v proceed_v of_o good_a meaning_n or_o of_o man_n inward_a meaning_n and_o intention_n which_o we_o can_v not_o see_v of_o which_o fault_n they_o must_v beware_v that_o be_v to_o suspicious_a and_o give_v to_o deem_v always_o the_o worst_a of_o other_o man_n but_o to_o say_v that_o judas_n or_o a_o heretic_n evident_o know_v to_o die_v obstinate_o in_o heresy_n be_v damn_v and_o in_o all_o other_o plain_n and_o manifest_a case_n to_o judge_v be_v not_o forbid_v 6._o holy_a to_o dog_n no_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o special_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n bless_a body_n receive_v must_v be_v give_v witting_o to_o the_o unworthy_a that_o be_v to_o they_o that_o have_v not_o by_o confession_n of_o all_o mortal_a sin_n examine_v and_o prove_v themselves_o see_v the_o annot._n 1._o cor._n 11_o 27._o 28._o 29._o â_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v all_o thing_n that_o we_o ask_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n with_o humility_n attention_n continuance_n and_o other_o dew_n circunstance_n god_n will_v undoubted_o grant_v when_o it_o be_v best_o for_o us._n 15._o clothe_v of_o sheep_n extraordinary_a appearance_n of_o zeal_n and_o holiness_n be_v the_o sheep_n cote_n in_o some_o heretic_n sheepskin_n but_o these_o of_o this_o time_n wear_v not_o that_o garment_n much_o be_v man_n of_o unsatiable_a sin_n this_o be_v rather_o their_o garment_n common_a to_o they_o with_o all_o other_o heretic_n to_o crake_v much_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n 1â_n and_o by_o pretence_a allegation_n and_o *_o sweet_a word_n of_o benediction_n and_o special_o by_o promise_n of_o knowledge_n light_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o seduce_v the_o simple_a and_o the_o sinful_a 16._o fruit_n these_o be_v the_o fruit_n which_o heretic_n be_v know_v by_o division_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n fruit_n division_n among_o themselves_o take_v to_o themselves_o new_a name_n and_o new_a malster_n inconstancy_n in_o doctrine_n disobedience_n both_o to_o other_o and_o namely_o to_o spiritual_a officer_n love_n and_o like_n of_o themselves_o pride_n and_o intolerable_a vaunt_a of_o their_o own_o knowledge_n above_o all_o the_o holy_a doctor_n corruption_n falsification_n and_o quite_o deny_v of_o the_o part_n of_o scripture_n that_o special_o make_v against_o they_o and_o these_o be_v common_a to_o all_o heretic_n light_o othersome_a be_v more_o peculiar_a to_o these_o of_o our_o time_n as_o incestuous_a marriage_n of_o vow_a person_n spoil_v of_o church_n sacrilege_n and_o profanation_n of_o all_o holy_a thing_n and_o many_o other_o special_a point_n of_o doctrine_n direct_o tend_v to_o the_o corruption_n of_o good_a life_n in_o all_o state_n 21._o lord_n lord._n these_o man_n have_v faith_n otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o invocate_v lord_n lord_n ro._n 10._o but_o here_o we_o see_v that_o to_o believe_v be_v not_o enough_o and_o that_o not_o only_a infidelity_n be_v sin_n as_o luther_n teach_v faith_n yea_o catholic_n also_o that_o work_n true_a miracle_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o by_o never_o so_o great_a faith_n yet_o without_o the_o work_n of_o justice_n shall_v not_o be_v save_v 1._o cor._n 13._o again_o consider_v here_o who_o they_o be_v that_o have_v so_o often_o in_o their_o mouth_n the_o lord_n the_o lord_n and_o how_o little_a it_o shall_v avail_v they_o that_o set_v so_o little_a by_o good_a work_n and_o contemn_v christian_a justice_n chap._n viii_o immediate_o after_o his_o sermon_n to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n with_o a_o miracle_n he_o cure_v a_o leper_n 5_o but_o above_o he_o and_o all_o other_o jew_n he_o commend_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o centurion_n who_o be_v a_o gentil_n and_o foretell_v by_o that_o occasion_n the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o reprobation_n of_o the_o jew_n 14_o la_o peter_n house_n he_o show_v great_a grace_n 18_o in_o the_o way_n to_o the_o sea_n he_o speak_v with_o two_o of_o follow_v he_o 23_o and_o upon_o the_o sea_n command_v the_o tempest_n 28_o and_o beyond_o the_o sea_n he_o manife_v the_o devil_n malice_n against_o man_n in_o a_o hear_v of_o swine_v verse_n 1_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v down_o from_o the_o mountain_n epiphanie_n great_a multitude_n follow_v he_o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o *_o behold_v a_o leper_n come_v and_o adore_v he_o say_v 40._o lord_n if_o thou_o will_v thou_o can_v make_v i_o clean_o 12._o â_o verse_n 3_o and_o jesus_n stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n touch_v he_o say_v i_o will_v be_v thou_o make_v clean_o and_o forthwith_o his_o leprosy_n be_v make_v clean_o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o 2._o see_v thou_o tell_v no_o body_n but_o go_v *_o show_v thyself_o to_o the_o â³_o pry_v &_o offer_v the_o â³_o gift_n which_o moses_n command_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o they_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o *_o when_o he_o be_v enter_v into_o capharnaum_n sick_a there_o come_v to_o he_o a_o centurion_n 1._o beseech_v he_o â_o verse_n 6_o &_o say_v lord_n my_o boy_n lie_v at_o home_n sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n &_o be_v sore_o torment_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o i_o will_v come_v &_o cure_v he_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o centurion_n make_v answer_n say_v lord_n â³_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v enter_v under_o my_o roof_n but_o only_o say_v the_o word_n and_o my_o boy_n shall_v be_v heal_v â_o verse_n 9_o for_o i_o also_o be_o a_o man_n subject_n to_o authority_n have_v under_o i_o soldier_n and_o i_o say_v to_o this_o go_v and_o he_o go_v and_o to_o a_o other_o come_v
&_o he_o come_v and_o to_o my_o servant_n do_v this_o &_o he_o do_v it_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o jesus_n hear_v this_o marvel_v and_o say_v to_o they_o that_o follow_v he_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o i_o have_v not_o find_v so_o great_a faith_n in_o israel_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o many_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o east_n and_o west_n and_o shall_v sit_v down_o with_o abraham_n &_o isaac_n &_o jacob_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 12_o but_o the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o exterior_a darkness_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_v &_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o the_o centurion_n go_v and_o as_o thou_o have_v believe_v be_v it_o do_v to_o thou_o and_o the_o boy_n be_v heal_v in_o the_o same_o hour_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o *_o when_o jesus_n be_v come_v into_o peter_n house_n 29_o he_o see_v â³_o his_o wife_n mother_n lay_v 38_o &_o in_o a_o fit_n of_o a_o fever_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o touch_v her_o hand_n and_o the_o fever_n leave_v she_o and_o she_o arise_v and_o minister_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 16_o and_o when_o evening_n be_v come_v they_o bring_v to_o he_o many_o that_o have_v devil_n and_o he_o cast_v out_o the_o spirit_n with_o a_o word_n 4._o and_o all_o that_o be_v ill_a at_o ease_n he_o cure_v â_o verse_n 17_o that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v by_o esay_n the_o prophet_n say_v he_o take_v our_o infirmity_n and_o bear_v our_o disease_n 24._o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o jesus_n see_v great_a multitude_n about_o he_o command_v to_o go_v beyond_o the_o water_n 57_o â_o verse_n 19_o and_o a_o *_o certain_a scribe_n come_v and_o say_v to_o he_o master_n i_o will_v follow_v thou_o whithersoever_o thou_o shall_v go_v â_o verse_n 20_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o the_o fox_n have_v hole_n and_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n nest_n but_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v not_o where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n â9_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o *_o a_o other_o of_o his_o disciple_n say_v to_o he_o lord_n permit_v i_o first_o to_o go_v &_o bury_v my_o father_n â_o verse_n 22_o but_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o follow_v i_o and_z â³_o let_v the_o dead_a bury_v their_o dead_a epiphanie_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o *_o when_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o boat_n 36._o his_o disciple_n follow_v he_o 22._o â_o verse_n 24_o and_o lo_o a_o great_a tempest_n arise_v in_o the_o sea_n so_o that_o the_o boat_n be_v cover_v with_o wave_n but_o he_o sleep_v â_o verse_n 25_o and_o they_o come_v to_o he_o and_o raise_v he_o say_v lord_n save_v we_o we_o perish_v â_o verse_n 26_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o why_o be_v you_o fearful_a o_o you_o of_o little_a faith_n then_o rise_v up_o â³_o he_o command_v the_o wind_n &_o the_o sea_n and_o there_o ensue_v a_o great_a calm_a â_o verse_n 27_o moreover_o the_o man_n maruel_v say_v what_o a_o one_o be_v this_o for_o the_o wind_n and_o the_o sea_n obey_v he_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 28_o and_o *_o when_o he_o be_v come_v beyond_o the_o water_n into_o the_o country_n of_o the_o gerasen_n 1._o there_o meet_v he_o two_o that_o have_v devil_n 26._o come_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o sepulcre_n exceed_v fierce_a so_o that_o none_o can_v pass_v by_o that_o way_n â_o verse_n 29_o and_o behold_v they_o cry_v say_v what_o be_v between_o we_o and_o thou_o jesv_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v thou_o come_v hither_o to_o torment_v we_o before_o the_o time_n â_o verse_n 30_o and_o there_o be_v not_o far_o from_o they_o a_o hear_v of_o many_o swine_v feed_v â_o verse_n 31_o and_o the_o devil_n beseech_v he_o say_v if_o thou_o cast_v we_o out_o send_v we_o into_o the_o hear_v of_o swine_v â_o verse_n 32_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o go_v but_o they_o go_v forth_o go_v into_o the_o swine_v and_o behold_v the_o whole_a hear_v go_v with_o a_o violence_n headlong_o into_o the_o sea_n and_o they_o die_v in_o the_o water_n â_o verse_n 33_o and_o the_o swinehearde_n sle_z and_o come_v into_o the_o city_n tell_v all_o and_o of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v possess_v of_o devil_n â_o verse_n 34_o and_o behold_v the_o whole_a city_n go_v out_o to_o meet_v jesus_n and_o when_o they_o see_v he_o they_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v pass_v from_o their_o quarter_n annotation_n chap._n viii_o 4_o priest_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n say_v s._n chrysostome_n have_v authority_n and_o privilege_n only_o to_o discern_v who_o where_o heal_v of_o leprosy_n and_o to_o denounce_v the_o same_o to_o the_o people_n but_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a law_n have_v power_n to_o purge_v in_o very_a deed_n the_o filth_n of_o the_o soul_n sin_n therefore_o whosoever_o despise_v they_o be_v more_o worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v then_o the_o rebel_n dathaâ_n and_o his_o complice_n s._n chryso_n li._n 3._o de_fw-fr sacerd._n 4._o gift_n our_o saviour_n will_v he_o to_o go_v and_o offer_v his_o gift_n or_o sacrifice_n according_a as_o moses_n prescribe_v in_o that_o case_n because_o the_o other_o sacrifice_n be_v the_o holy_a of_o all_o holies_n which_o be_v his_o body_n be_v not_o yet_o begin_v so_o say_v s._n aug._n li._n 2._o q._n euang._n q._n 3._o &_o cont._n adverse_a leg_n &_o preph_n li._n â_o c._n 19_o 20._o â_o not_o worthy_a orig._n ho._n 5._o in_o diverse_a when_o thou_o eat_v say_v he_o and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n dignus_fw-la he_o enter_v under_o thy_o roof_n thou_o also_o therefore_o humble_v thyself_o say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a etc._n etc._n so_o say_v finem_fw-la s._n chrysostom_n in_o his_o mass_n and_o so_o do_v the_o cath._n church_n use_v at_o this_o day_n in_o every_o mass_n see_v s._n augustine_n ep_v 118_o ad_fw-la janu._n 14._o his_o wife_n mother_n marriage_n of_o peter_n special_o among_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o have_v a_o wife_n but_o as_o s._n hiârom_n say_v after_o they_o be_v call_v to_o be_v apostle_n adu_fw-la they_o have_v no_o more_o carnal_a company_n with_o their_o wife_n 14._o as_o he_o prove_v there_o by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n *_o he_o that_o have_v leave_v wise_a etc._n etc._n 29._o and_o so_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n have_v be_v always_o use_v that_o marry_v man_n may_v be_v and_o be_v daily_o make_v priest_n 59_o either_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wife_n or_o with_o her_o consent_n to_o live_v in_o perpetual_a continency_n and_o if_o the_o greek_n have_v priest_n that_o do_v otherwise_o s._n epiphanius_n a_o greek_a doctor_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o do_v it_o against_o the_o ancient_a canon_n and_o 22._o paphnutius_fw-la plain_o signify_v the_o same_o in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o this_o be_v most_o plain_a that_o there_o be_v never_o either_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n or_o the_o latin_a â_o authentical_a example_n of_o any_o that_o marry_v after_o holy_a order_n 22._o let_v the_o dead_a by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o not_o only_o no_o worldly_a or_o carnal_a respect_n but_o no_o other_o laudable_a duty_n towards_o our_o parent_n aught_o to_o stay_v we_o from_o follow_v christ_n and_o choose_v a_o life_n of_o great_a perfection_n 26._o he_o command_v the_o church_n here_o signify_v by_o the_o boat_n or_o ship_n and_o catholic_n be_v often_o toss_v with_o storm_n of_o persecution_n but_o christ_n who_o seem_v to_o sleep_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n by_o the_o church_n prayer_n awaken_v and_o make_v a_o calm_a chap._n ix_o the_o master_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o confute_v both_o with_o reason_n and_o miracle_n a_o defend_v his_o remit_v of_o sin_n 9_o his_o eat_n with_o sinner_n 14_o and_o his_o condescend_v to_o his_o weak_a disciple_n until_o he_o have_v make_v they_o strong_a 18_o show_v also_o in_o two_o miracle_n the_o order_n of_o his_o providence_n about_o the_o lewes_z and_o gentile_n leave_v the_o one_o when_o he_o call_v the_o other_o 27_o he_o cure_v two_o blind_a man_n and_o one_o possess_v 35_o and_o have_v with_o so_o many_o miracle_n together_o confute_v his_o enemy_n and_o yet_o they_o worse_o and_o worse_o upon_o pity_n towards_o the_o people_n he_o think_v of_o send_v true_a pastor_n unto_o they_o verse_n 1_o and_o enter_v into_o a_o boat_n pentecost_n he_o pass_v over_o the_o water_n and_o come_v into_o his_o own_o city_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o *_o behold_v they_o bring_v to_o he_o one_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n lie_v in_o bed_n 3._o and_o jesus_n other_o see_v their_o faith_n 18._o say_v to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n have_v a_o good_a hart_n son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o
say_v to_o he_o friend_n how_o come_v thou_o in_o hither_o not_o have_v a_o wedding_n garment_n but_o he_o be_v dumb_a â_o verse_n 13_o then_o the_o king_n say_v to_o the_o waiter_n bind_v his_o hand_n and_o foot_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o utter_a darkness_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_v &_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o elect_n â_o â_o verse_n 15_o *_o then_o the_o pharisee_n depart_v 13._o consult_v among_o themselves_o for_o to_o entrap_v he_o in_o his_o talk_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o they_o send_v to_o he_o their_o disciple_n with_o the_o herodian_o 20._o say_v master_n we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o true_a speaker_n and_o teach_v the_o way_n of_o god_n in_o truth_n neither_o care_v thou_o for_o any_o man_n for_o thou_o do_v not_o respect_v the_o person_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 17_o tell_v we_o therefore_o what_o be_v thy_o opinion_n be_v it_o lawful_a to_o give_v tribute_n to_o caesar_n or_o not_o â_o verse_n 18_o but_o jesus_n know_v their_o naughtiness_n say_v what_o do_v you_o tempt_v i_o hypocrite_n â_o verse_n 19_o show_v i_o the_o tribute_n coin_n and_o they_o offer_v he_o a_o penny_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o who_o be_v this_o image_n and_o superscription_n â_o verse_n 21_o they_o say_v to_o he_o caesar_n then_o he_o say_v to_o they_o render_v therefore_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n â_o to_o caesar_n 19_o and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n to_o god_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o hear_v it_o they_o maruel_v 27._o and_o leave_v he_o go_v their_o way_n â_o verse_n 23_o *_o that_o day_n there_o come_v to_o he_o the_o sadducee_n that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n 6._o and_o ask_v he_o â_o verse_n 24_o saying_n master_n moses_n say_v if_o a_o man_n die_v not_o have_v a_o child_n that_o his_o brother_n marry_v his_o wife_n and_o raise_v up_o seed_n to_o his_o brother_n 5._o â_o verse_n 25_o and_o there_o be_v with_o we_o seven_o brethren_n and_o the_o first_o have_v marry_v a_o wife_n die_v and_o not_o have_v issue_n leave_v his_o wife_n to_o his_o brother_n â_o verse_n 26_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o second_o and_o the_o three_o even_o to_o the_o seven_o â_o verse_n 27_o and_o last_o of_o all_o the_o woman_n die_v also_o â_o verse_n 28_o in_o the_o resurrection_n therefore_o who_o wife_n of_o the_o seven_o shall_v she_o be_v for_o they_o all_o have_v she_o â_o verse_n 29_o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v to_o they_o you_o do_v err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 30_o for_o in_o the_o resurrection_n neither_o shall_v they_o marry_v not_o be_v marry_v but_o be_v â_o as_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 31_o and_o concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a have_v you_o not_o read_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o god_n say_v to_o you_o 6._o â_o verse_n 32_o i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n he_o be_v not_o god_n â_o of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n â_o verse_n 33_o and_o the_o multitude_n hear_v it_o maruel_v at_o his_o doctrine_n â_o verse_n 34_o *_o but_o the_o pharisee_n hear_v that_o he_o have_v put_v the_o sadducee_n to_o silence_n 28._o come_v together_o pentecost_n â_o verse_n 35_o and_o one_o of_o they_o a_o doctor_n of_o la_o ask_v of_o he_o tempt_v he_o â_o verse_n 36_o master_n which_o be_v the_o great_a commandment_n in_o the_o la_o 5._o â_o verse_n 37_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n from_o thy_o whole_a hart_n and_o with_o thy_o whole_a soul_n and_o with_o thy_o whole_a mind_n â_o verse_n 38_o this_o be_v the_o great_a and_o the_o first_o commandment_n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o the_o second_o be_v like_a to_o this_o 18._o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o â_o verse_n 40_o â_o on_o these_o two_o commandment_n depend_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o the_o prophet_n â_o verse_n 41_o and_o *_o the_o pharisee_n be_v assemble_v 35._o jesus_n ask_v they_o â_o verse_n 42_o saying_n 41._o what_o be_v your_o opinion_n of_o christ_n who_o son_n be_v he_o they_o say_v to_o he_o david_n â_o verse_n 43_o he_o say_v to_o they_o how_o then_o do_v david_n in_o spirit_n call_v he_o lord_n say_v â_o verse_n 44_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o my_o lord_n sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n 1._o until_o i_o put_v thy_o enemy_n the_o foot_n steal_v of_o thy_o foot_n â_o verse_n 45_o if_o david_n therefore_o call_v he_o lord_n how_o be_v he_o his_o son_n â_o verse_n 46_o and_o no_o man_n can_v answer_n he_o a_o word_n neither_o dare_v any_o man_n from_o that_o day_n ask_v he_o any_o more_o annotation_n chap._n xxii_o 2._o marriage_n then_o do_v god_n the_o father_n make_v this_o marriage_n when_o by_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n he_o join_v to_o his_o son_n our_o lord_n the_o holy_a church_n for_o his_o spouse_n greg._n hom_n â8_o 3._o servant_n the_o first_o servant_n here_o send_v to_o invite_v be_v the_o prophet_n the_o second_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o all_o that_o afterward_o convert_a country_n or_o that_o have_v and_o do_v reconcile_v man_n to_o the_o church_n reconciliation_n 5._o one_o to_o his_o farm_n such_o as_o refuse_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o christ_n church_n allege_v often_o vain_a impediment_n and_o worldly_a excuse_n which_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v not_o serve_v they_o 11._o a_o man_n not_o attire_v if_o profit_v not_o much_o to_o be_v within_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a except_o a_o man_n be_v of_o good_a life_n for_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v damn_v because_o with_o faith_n he_o have_v not_o good_a work_n bad_a as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o example_n of_o this_o man_n who_o be_v within_o and_o at_o the_o feast_n as_o the_o rest_n but_o lack_v the_o garment_n of_o charity_n and_o good_a work_n and_o by_o this_o man_n be_v represent_v all_o the_o bad_a that_o be_v call_v and_o therefore_o they_o also_o be_v in_o the_o church_n as_o this_o man_n be_v at_o the_o feast_n but_o because_o he_o be_v call_v and_o yet_o none_o of_o the_o elect_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v of_o the_o elect_a only_o contrary_a to_o our_o adversary_n 2d_o to_o caesar_n temporal_a duty_n and_o payment_n exact_v by_o worldly_a prince_n must_v be_v pay_v jurisdiction_n so_o that_o god_n be_v not_o defraud_v of_o his_o more_o sovereign_a duty_n and_o therefore_o prince_n have_v to_o take_v heed_n how_o they_o exact_v and_o other_o how_o they_o geve_v to_o caesar_n that_o be_v to_o their_o prince_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v dew_n to_o god_n that_o be_v to_o his_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n whereupon_o s._n athanasius_n recite_v these_o goodly_a word_n out_o of_o a_o epistle_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o famous_a confessor_n hosius_n cordubensis_n to_o constantius_n the_o arian_n emperor_n cease_v i_o beseech_v thou_o and_o remember_v that_o thou_o be_v mortal_a fear_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n intermeddle_v not_o with_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n neither_o do_v thou_o command_v we_o in_o this_o kind_n but_o rather_o learn_v they_o of_o we_o to_o thou_o god_n have_v commit_v the_o empire_n to_o we_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n and_o as_o he_o that_o with_o malicious_a eye_n carp_v thy_o empire_n gainesay_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n so_o do_v thou_o also_o beware_v lest_o in_o draw_v unto_o thou_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n thou_o be_v make_v guilty_a of_o a_o great_a crime_n it_o be_v write_v geve_v you_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n to_o caesar_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n to_o god_n therefore_o neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o we_o in_o earth_n to_o hold_v the_o empire_n neither_o haste_n thou_o o_o emperor_n power_n over_o incense_n and_o sacred_a thing_n athan._n ep._n ad_fw-la solit._n vitam_fw-la agentes_fw-la and_o s._n ambrose_n to_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n who_o by_o the_o ill_a counsel_n of_o his_o mother_n justina_n a_o arian_n require_v of_o s._n ambrose_n to_o have_v one_o church_n in_o milan_n depute_v to_o the_o arian_n heretic_n say_v we_o pay_v that_o which_o be_v caesar_n to_o caesar_n and_o that_o which_o be_v god_n to_o god_n tribute_n be_v caesar_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v the_o church_n be_v god_n it_o may_v not_o very_o be_v yield_v to_o caesar_n because_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n can_v not_o be_v caesar_n right_a which_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o it_o be_v speak_v with_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o what_o be_v more_o honourable_a than_o that_o the_o emperor_n be_v say_v to_o
thing_n must_v be_v do_v but_o the_o end_n be_v not_o yet_o â_o verse_n 7_o for_o nation_n shall_v rise_v against_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n against_o kingdom_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v pestilence_n and_o famine_n and_o earthquake_n in_o place_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o sorrow_n 17_o â_o â_o verse_n 9_o then_o *_o shall_v they_o deliver_v you_o into_o tribulation_n and_o shall_v kill_v you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v odious_a to_o all_o nation_n for_o my_o name_n sake_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o then_o many_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v and_o they_o shall_v deliver_v up_o one_o a_o other_o and_o they_o shall_v hate_v one_o a_o other_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o many_o 2._o false-prophet_n shall_v rise_v and_o shall_v seduce_v many_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o because_o â_o iniquity_n shall_v abound_v the_o charity_n of_o many_o shall_v wax_v cold_a â_o verse_n 13_o but_o he_o that_o shall_v perseuêre_fw-la to_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v be_v save_v â_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n â_o shall_v be_v preach_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o a_o testimony_n to_o all_o nation_n and_o then_o shall_v come_v the_o consummation_n â_o verse_n 15_o therefore_o when_o you_o shall_v see_v â_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o by_o daniel_n the_o prophet_n pentecost_n stand_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n he_o that_o read_v 27._o let_v he_o understand_v â_o verse_n 16_o then_o they_o that_o be_v in_o lewrie_n let_v they_o flee_v to_o the_o mountain_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o he_o that_o be_v on_o the_o house-toppe_n let_v he_o not_o come_v down_o to_o take_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o house_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o field_n let_v he_o not_o go_v back_o to_o take_v his_o coat_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o woe_n to_o they_o that_o be_v with_o child_n and_o that_o give_v suck_v in_o those_o day_n â_o verse_n 20_o but_o pray_v that_o your_o flight_n be_v not_o in_o the_o winter_n or_o on_o the_o sabbath_n â_o verse_n 21_o for_o there_o shall_v be_v then_o great_a tribulation_n such_o as_o have_v not_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n until_o now_o neither_o shall_v be_v â_o verse_n 22_o and_o unless_o those_o day_n have_v be_v shorten_v no_o flesh_n shall_v be_v save_v but_o for_o the_o elect_a the_o day_n â_o shall_v be_v shorten_v â_o verse_n 23_o then_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v unto_o you_o loe_o 1._o here_o be_v christ_n or_o there_o do_v not_o believe_v he_o â_o verse_n 24_o for_o there_o shall_v rise_v false-christes_n and_o false-prophet_n and_o shall_v show_v â_o great_a sign_n and_o wonder_v so_o that_o the_o elect_v also_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a may_v be_v induce_v into_o error_n â_o verse_n 25_o loe_o i_o have_v foretell_v you_o â_o verse_n 26_o if_o therefore_o they_o shall_v say_v unto_o you_o behold_v he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n go_v you_o not_o out_o behold_v â_o in_o the_o closert_n believe_v it_o not_o â_o verse_n 27_o for_o as_o lightning_n come_v out_o of_o the_o east_n and_o appear_v even_o into_o the_o west_n so_o shall_v also_o the_o advent_a of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v â_o verse_n 28_o wheresoever_o the_o body_n be_v thither_o shall_v the_o eagle_n also_o be_v gather_v together_o â_o verse_n 29_o and_o â_o immediate_o after_o the_o tribulation_n of_o those_o day_n *_o the_o son_n shall_v be_v darken_v 7._o and_o the_o moon_n shall_v not_o give_v her_o light_n 15_o and_o the_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n 15._o and_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v move_v â_o verse_n 30_o and_o then_o shall_v appear_v thereof_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o heaven_n and_o then_o shall_v all_o tribe_n of_o the_o earth_n bewail_v and_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n with_o much_o power_n and_o majesty_n â_o verse_n 31_o and_o he_o shall_v send_v his_o angel_n with_o a_o trumpet_n and_o a_o great_a voice_n and_o they_o shall_v gather_v together_o his_o elect_a from_o the_o four_o wind_n from_o the_o further_a part_n of_o heaven_n even_o to_o the_o end_n thereof_o â_o verse_n 32_o and_o of_o the_o figtree_n learn_v a_o parable_n when_o now_o the_o bough_n thereof_o be_v tender_a and_o the_o leaf_n come_v forth_o you_o know_v that_o summer_n be_v nigh_o â_o verse_n 33_o so_o you_o also_o when_o you_o shall_v see_v these_o thing_n know_v you_o that_o it_o be_v nigh_o even_o at_o the_o door_n â_o verse_n 34_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o this_o generation_n shall_v not_o pass_v till_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v â_o verse_n 35_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v â_o â_o verse_n 36_o but_o of_o that_o day_n and_o hour_n no_o body_n know_v neither_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n but_o the_o father_n alone_o 5._o â_o verse_n 37_o and_o as_o *_o in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n so_o shall_v also_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v â_o verse_n 38_o for_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o day_n before_o the_o flood_n eat_v and_o drink_v marry_v and_o give_v to_o marriage_n even_o unto_o that_o day_n in_o which_o noah_n enter_v into_o the_o ark_n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o know_v not_o till_o the_o flood_n come_v and_o take_v they_o all_o so_o also_o shall_v the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v â_o verse_n 40_o then_o two_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o field_n one_o shall_v be_v take_v and_o one_o shall_v be_v leave_v â_o verse_n 41_o two_o woman_n grind_v in_o the_o mill_n one_o shall_v be_v take_v and_o one_o shall_v be_v leave_v â_o verse_n 42_o watch_v therefore_o because_o you_o know_v not_o what_o hour_n your_o lord_n will_v come_v 23._o â_o verse_n 43_o but_o this_o know_v you_o 1._o that_o *_o if_o the_o good_a man_n of_o the_o house_n do_v know_v what_o hour_n the_o thief_n will_v come_v he_o will_v sure_o watch_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o house_n to_o be_v break_v up_o â_o verse_n 44_o therefore_o be_v you_o also_o ready_a because_o at_o what_o houâe_v you_o know_v not_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v come_v â_o verse_n 45_o who_o think_v thou_o be_v a_o faithful_a and_o wise_a servant_n who_o his_o lord_n have_v appoint_v over_o his_o family_n to_o give_v they_o meat_n in_o season_n â_o verse_n 46_o blessed_n be_v that_o servant_n who_o when_o his_o lord_n come_v he_o shall_v find_v so_o do_v â_o verse_n 47_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o over_o all_o his_o good_n shall_v he_o appoint_v he_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 48_o but_o if_o that_o naughty_a servant_n shall_v say_v in_o his_o hart_n my_o lord_n be_v long_o a_o come_n â_o verse_n 49_o and_o shall_v begin_v to_o strike_v his_o felow-seruant_n and_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o drunkard_n â_o verse_n 50_o the_o lord_n of_o that_o servant_n shall_v come_v in_o a_o day_n that_o he_o hope_v not_o and_o a_o hour_n that_o he_o know_v not_o â_o verse_n 51_o and_o shall_v divide_v he_o and_o appoint_v his_o portion_n with_o the_o hypocrite_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n annotation_n chap._n xxiiii_o 2._o not_o leave_v this_o be_v fulfil_v 40_o year_n after_o christ_n ascension_n by_o vespasian_n the_o emperor_n and_o his_o son_n titus_n euseb_n li._n â_o c._n 6._o &_o seq_fw-la ex_fw-la josepho_n upon_o which_o word_n there_o shall_v not_o be_v leave_v etc._n etc._n fail_v which_o threaten_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jew_n temple_n finen_n and_o those_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n which_o promise_v the_o build_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o nation_n s._n châysostome_n make_v a_o long_a comparison_n of_o these_o two_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n say_v thus_o thou_o see_v in_o both_o his_o great_a and_o unspeakable_a power_n in_o that_o that_o he_o increase_v and_o build_v up_o they_o that_o worship_v he_o and_o those_o that_o stumble_v at_o he_o he_o abase_v destroy_v and_o pluck_v they_o up_o by_o the_o root_n do_v thou_o see_v how_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v build_v no_o man_n shall_v destroy_v and_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v destroy_v no_o man_n shall_v build_v he_o build_v the_o church_n and_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o destroy_v it_o he_o destroy_v the_o temple_n and_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o build_v it_o and_o that_o in_o so_o long_a time_n for_o they_o have_v endeavour_v both_o to_o destroy_v that_o and_o can_v not_o and_o they_o have_v attempt_v to_o build_v up_o this_o and_o they_o can_v not_o do_v that_o neither_o etc._n etc._n 3._o the_o sign_n our_o master_n know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o profitable_a nor_o
seemly_a for_o they_o to_o know_v these_o secret_n give_v they_o by_o way_n of_o prophecy_n warn_v of_o diverse_a misery_n sign_n and_o token_n that_o shall_v fall_v some_o further_a of_o and_o some_o near_a the_o late_a day_n by_o which_o the_o faithful_a might_n always_o prepare_v themselves_o but_o never_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o hour_n day_n month_n nor_o year_n when_o it_o shall_v fall_v aug._n ep._n 10._o 4._o seduce_v the_o first_o and_o principal_a warning_n title_n needful_a for_o the_o faithful_a from_o christ_n ascension_n to_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o heretic_n which_o under_o the_o title_n of_o true_a teacher_n and_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n will_v seduce_v many_o 5._o i_o be_o christ_n not_o only_o such_o as_o have_v name_v themselves_o christ_n as_o simon_n menander_n and_o such_o like_a but_o all_o arch-heretike_n be_v christ_n to_o their_o follower_n luther_n to_o the_o lutheran_n caluin_n to_o the_o caluinist_n because_o they_o believe_v they_o rather_o than_o christ_n speak_v in_o his_o church_n 12._o iniquity_n abound_v when_o heresy_n and_o false_a teacher_n reign_v in_o the_o world_n namely_o towards_o the_o late_a day_n wicked_a life_n aboud_v and_o charity_n decay_v infidel_n 14._o shall_v be_v preach_v the_o gospel_n have_v be_v preach_v of_o late_a year_n and_o now_o be_v by_o holy_a religious_a man_n of_o diverse_a order_n in_o sundery_a great_a country_n which_o never_o hear_v the_o gospel_n before_o as_o it_o be_v think_v 15._o abomination_n of_o desolation_n desolation_n this_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n foretell_v be_v first_o partly_o fulfil_v in_o diverse_a profanation_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o service_n of_o god_n be_v take_v away_o but_o special_o it_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v by_o antichrist_n and_o his_o precursor_n when_o they_o shall_v abolishe_v the_o holy_a mass_n minister_n which_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o only_a sovereign_a worship_n dew_n to_o god_n in_o his_o church_n as_o s._n hippolytus_n write_v in_o these_o word_n the_o church_n shall_v lament_v with_o great_a lamentation_n because_o there_o shall_v neither_o oblation_n be_v make_v nor_o incense_n nor_o worship_n grateful_a to_o god_n but_o the_o sacred_a house_n of_o church_n shall_v be_v like_a to_o cottage_n and_o the_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v extant_a open_o in_o church_n in_o those_o day_n the_o liturgy_n or_o mass_n shall_v be_v extinguish_v the_o psalmody_n shall_v cease_v the_o recite_v of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v not_o be_v hear_v hippol._n de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o heretic_n of_o these_o day_n be_v the_o special_a forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n 22._o shall_v be_v shorten_v antichrist_n the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v short_a that_o be_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a dan._n 7._o apoc._n 11._o therefore_o the_o heretic_n be_v blasphemous_a and_o ridiculous_a that_o say_v christ_n vicar_n be_v antichrist_n who_o have_v sit_v these_o 1500_o year_n 24._o great_a sign_n these_o sign_n and_o miracle_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o outward_a appearance_n only_o for_o s._n paul_n call_v they_o *_o lie_v sign_n 2._o to_o seduce_v they_o only_o that_o shall_v perish_v whereby_o we_o see_v that_o if_o heretic_n can_v work_v feign_a and_o forge_a miracle_n yet_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v they_o much_o less_o when_o they_o can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o do_v any_o 26._o in_o closert_n heretic_n christ_n have_v make_v the_o church_n authority_n bright_a and_o clear_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n warn_v the_o faithful_a to_o take_v heed_n of_o heretic_n and_o schisinatike_n which_o have_v their_o conventicle_n aside_o in_o certain_a odd_a place_n and_o obscure_a corner_n allure_a curious_a person_n unto_o they_o aug._n li._n 1._o q._n euang._n q._n 38._o persecution_n for_o as_o for_o the_o come_n together_o of_o catholic_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o secret_a place_n that_o be_v a_o necessary_a thing_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o be_v use_v of_o christian_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n together_o after_o christ_n 12._o *_o and_o the_o apostle_n also_o and_o disciple_n come_v so_o together_o in_o jerusalem_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o catholic_n do_v the_o same_o at_o this_o day_n in_o our_o country_n not_o draw_v religion_n into_o corner_n from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o practise_v secret_o the_o same_o faith_n that_o in_o all_o christendom_n shine_v and_o appear_v most_o glorious_o 29._o immediate_o if_o the_o late_a day_n shall_v immdediat_o follow_v the_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n which_o be_v to_o endure_v but_o three_o year_n and_o half_a antichrist_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a then_o be_v it_o mere_a blasphemy_n to_o say_v god_n vicar_n be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o by_o their_o own_o limitation_n these_o thousand_o year_n almost_o chap._n xxv_o continue_v his_o sermon_n he_o bring_v two_o parable_n of_o ten_o virgìn_n and_o of_o talent_n to_o show_v how_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o domesday_n with_o the_o faithful_a that_o prepare_v and_o that_o prepare_v not_o themselves_o 31_o then_o also_o without_o parable_n he_o show_v that_o such_o faithful_a as_o do_v work_n of_o mercy_n shall_v have_v for_o they_o life_n everlasting_a and_o such_o as_o do_v not_o everlasting_a damnation_n verse_n 1_o than_o shà l_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a to_o ten_o â_o virgin_n virgin_n which_o take_v their_o â_o lamp_n go_v forth_o to_o meet_v the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o bride_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o five_o of_o they_o be_v foolish_a and_o five_o wise_a â_o verse_n 3_o but_o the_o five_o foolish_a have_v take_v their_o lamp_n do_v not_o take_v â³_o oil_n with_o they_o â_o verse_n 4_o but_o the_o wise_a do_v takâ_n oil_n in_o their_o vessel_n with_o the_o lamp_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o the_o bridegroom_n â_o tarry_n long_o they_o slumber_v all_o the_o sleep_v â_o verse_n 6_o and_o at_o midnight_n there_o be_v a_o clamour_n make_v behold_v the_o bridegroom_n comâââ_n go_v you_o forth_o to_o meet_v he_o â_o verse_n 7_o then_o arise_v all_o those_o virgin_n and_o they_o trim_v their_o lamp_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o foolish_a say_v to_o the_o wise_a give_v we_o of_o judgement_n your_o oil_n because_o our_o lamp_n be_v go_v out_o â_o verse_n 9_o the_o wise_a answer_v say_v lest_o peradventure_o there_o suffice_v not_o for_o we_o and_o you_o go_v rather_o to_o they_o that_o sell_v and_o buy_v for_o yourselves_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o while_o they_o go_v to_o buy_v the_o bridegroom_n be_v come_v and_o they_o that_o be_v ready_a enter_v with_o he_o to_o the_o marriage_n and_o the_o gate_n be_v shut_v â_o verse_n 11_o but_o last_o of_o all_o come_v also_o the_o other_o virgin_n say_v lord_n lord_n open_a to_o us._n â_o verse_n 12_o but_o he_o answer_v say_v amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o i_o know_v you_o not_o â_o verse_n 13_o watch_v you_o therefore_o because_o you_o know_v not_o the_o day_n nor_o the_o hour_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 14_o for_o *_o even_o as_o a_o man_n go_v into_o a_o strange_a country_n bishop_n call_v his_o servant_n 12._o and_o deliver_v they_o his_o good_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o to_o one_o he_o give_v five_o talent_n and_o to_o a_o other_o two_o and_o to_o a_o other_o one_o to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o proper_a faculty_n and_o immediate_o he_o take_v his_o journey_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o five_o talent_n go_v his_o way_n and_o occupy_v with_o the_o same_o and_o gain_v other_o five_o â_o verse_n 17_o likewise_o also_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o two_o gain_v other_o two_o â_o verse_n 18_o but_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o one_o go_v his_o way_n dig_v into_o the_o earth_n and_o hide_v his_o lord_n money_n â_o verse_n 19_o but_o after_o much_o time_n the_o lord_n of_o those_o servant_n come_v and_o make_v a_o count_n with_o they_o â_o verse_n 20_o and_o there_o come_v he_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o five_o talent_n and_o offer_v other_o five_o talent_n say_v lord_n five_o talent_n thou_o do_v deliver_v i_o behold_v merit_n i_o have_v gain_v other_o five_o beside_o â_o verse_n 21_o his_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o well_o fare_v thou_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n because_o thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a over_o a_o few_o thing_n i_o will_v place_v thou_o over_o many_o thing_n enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o there_o come_v also_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o two_o talent_n and_o say_v lord_n two_o talent_n thou_o do_v deliver_v i_o behold_v i_o have_v gain_v other_o two_o â_o verse_n 23_o his_o lord_n say_v to_o
and_o say_v to_o the_o people_n he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o last_o error_n shall_v be_v worse_o than_o the_o first_o â_o verse_n 65_o pilate_n say_v to_o they_o you_o have_v a_o guard_n go_v guard_v it_o as_o you_o know_v â_o verse_n 66_o and_o they_o depart_v make_v the_o sepulchre_n sure_a seal_v up_o the_o stone_n with_o watchman_n annotation_n chap._n xxvii_o 3._o repent_v he_o conscience_n note_v how_o speedy_o the_o plague_n of_o god_n fall_v after_o sin_n and_o special_o man_n must_v note_v what_o torment_n of_o conscience_n and_o desperation_n often_o follow_v the_o shed_n of_o innocent_a blood_n 5._o hang_v himself_o desperation_n if_o he_o have_v right_o repent_v notwithstanding_o his_o horrible_a treason_n he_o may_v have_v obtain_v mercy_n but_o by_o hang_v himself_o he_o take_v away_o all_o mean_n of_o mercy_n and_o salvation_n because_o he_o die_v final_o impenitent_a 24._o innocent_n of_o his_o blood_n pilate_n though_o pilate_n be_v much_o more_o innocent_a than_o the_o jew_n and_o will_v have_v be_v free_a from_o the_o murder_n of_o our_o saviour_n seek_v all_o the_o mean_n that_o he_o can_v without_o offend_v the_o people_n and_o the_o emperor_n law_n to_o dimisse_fw-la he_o yet_o he_o be_v damn_v for_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o people_n wicked_a will_n against_o his_o own_o conscience_n even_o as_o all_o officer_n be_v and_o special_o the_o judge_n and_o jury_n which_o execute_v law_n of_o temporal_a prince_n against_o catholic_a man_n for_o all_o such_o be_v guilty_a of_o innocent_a blood_n and_o be_v nothing_o excuse_v by_o that_o they_o execute_v other_o man_n will_n according_a to_o the_o law_n which_o be_v unjust_a for_o they_o shall_v rather_o suffer_v death_n themselves_o than_o put_v a_o innocent_a man_n to_o death_n 40._o if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n cross_n marvel_v not_o when_o thou_o hear_v our_o saviour_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n mock_v at_o or_o see_v he_o abuse_v of_o wicked_a man_n that_o he_o straight_o revenge_v not_o such_o blasphemy_n or_o that_o he_o show_v not_o himself_o there_o visible_o and_o to_o the_o sense_n when_o faithless_a heretic_n will_v say_v let_v i_o see_v he_o taste_v he_o etc._n etc._n for_o he_o suffer_v here_o the_o like_a on_o the_o cross_n when_o he_o may_v at_o his_o will_v have_v come_v down_o with_o as_o much_o ease_n as_o he_o rise_v when_o he_o be_v dead_a 46._o why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o beware_v here_o of_o the_o detestable_a blasphemy_n of_o caluin_n and_o the_o caluinist_n 16._o who_o think_v not_o the_o bodily_a death_n of_o christ_n sufficient_a say_v that_o he_o be_v also_o here_o so_o forsake_v and_o abandon_v of_o his_o father_n that_o he_o sustain_v in_o soul_n and_o conscience_n the_o very_a fear_n and_o torment_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o article_n of_o his_o descend_v into_o hell_n after_o his_o death_n which_o be_v with_o triumph_n and_o not_o in_o pain_n blasphemy_n they_o say_v that_o his_o descend_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o his_o soul_n suffer_v the_o very_a pain_n of_o hell_n upon_o the_o cross_n whereas_o in_o deed_n by_o these_o word_n out_o of_o the_o psalm_n our_o saviour_n will_v signify_v no_o more_o but_o that_o his_o pain_n be_v now_o so_o long_o on_o the_o cross_n and_o ready_a to_o die_v be_v very_o great_a and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o infirmity_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n for_o very_a anguish_n as_o before_o in_o the_o garden_n when_o he_o be_v but_o towards_o his_o passion_n he_o say_v he_o be_v forsake_v for_o two_o cause_n first_o because_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n not_o to_o deliver_v he_o but_o that_o he_o shall_v die_v second_o because_o his_o divine_a nature_n do_v so_o repress_v itself_o for_o the_o time_n that_o he_o feel_v no_o comfort_n thereof_o at_o all_o but_o be_v leave_v to_o die_v in_o extreme_a pain_n as_o a_o mere_a man_n 19_o wrap_v body_n this_o honour_n and_o duty_n do_v to_o christ_n body_n be_v dead_a locum_fw-la be_v marvellous_a grateful_a and_o meritorious_a and_o this_o wrap_v of_o it_o in_o clean_o find_v on_o may_v signify_v by_o s._n hierom_n that_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v to_o be_v wrap_v not_o in_o gold_n precious_a stone_n and_o silk_n but_o in_o pure_a linen_n and_o so_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v observe_v by_o council_n s._n silvester_v constitution_n corporal_n that_o the_o corporal_n whereupon_o our_o lord_n body_n lie_v on_o the_o altar_n must_v be_v pute_n and_o plain_a linen_n chap._n xxviii_o he_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o the_o blind_a most_o obstinate_a jew_n by_o bribery_n work_v to_o their_o own_o reprobation_n he_o appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n in_o galilee_n as_o both_o before_o his_o passion_n he_o foretell_v they_o mat._n 26_o and_o now_o after_o his_o resurrection_n first_o the_o angel_n than_o also_o himself_o appoint_v by_o the_o woman_n ãâã_d and_o send_v they_o to_o all_o nation_n to_o build_v his_o church_n among_o the_o gentile_n verse_n 1_o and_o in_o the_o evening_n of_o the_o sabbath_n which_o daw_v on_o the_o first_o of_o the_o sabbath_n morning_n come_v marie_n magdalene_n 1._o and_o the_o other_o marry_o â³_o to_o see_v the_o sepulchre_n 1._o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o behold_v there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a earthquake_n 1._o for_o a_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n descend_v from_o heaven_n day_n and_o come_v roll_v back_o the_o stone_n and_o sit_v upon_o it_o â_o verse_n 3_o and_o his_o countenance_n be_v as_o lightning_n and_o his_o garment_n as_o snow_v â_o verse_n 4_o and_o for_o fear_n of_o he_o the_o watchman_n be_v fright_v and_o become_v as_o dead_a â_o verse_n 5_o and_o the_o angel_n answer_v say_v to_o the_o woman_n fear_v not_o you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o you_o seek_v jesus_n that_o be_v crucify_v â_o verse_n 6_o he_o be_v not_o here_o for_o he_o be_v rise_v 32._o *_o as_o he_o say_v come_v and_o see_v the_o place_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v lay_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o go_v quick_o tell_v you_o his_o disciple_n that_o he_o be_v rise_v and_o behold_v he_o go_v before_o you_o into_o galilee_n there_o you_o shall_v see_v he_o lo_o i_o have_v fortolde_v you_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o they_o go_v forth_o quick_o out_o of_o the_o monument_n with_o fear_n and_o great_a joy_n run_v to_o tell_v his_o disciple_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o behold_v jesus_n meet_v they_o say_v all_o hail_n but_o they_o come_v near_o and_o take_v hold_v of_o his_o foot_n and_o adore_v he_o â_o verse_n 10_o then_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o fear_v not_o go_v tell_v my_o brethren_n that_o they_o go_v into_o galilee_n there_o they_o shall_v see_v i_o â_o verse_n 11_o who_o when_o they_o be_v depart_v behold_v certain_a of_o the_o watchman_n come_v into_o the_o city_n and_o tell_v the_o chief_a priest_n all_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v do_v â_o verse_n 12_o and_o be_v assemble_v together_o with_o the_o ancient_n take_v counsel_n they_o give_v a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o the_o soldier_n â_o verse_n 13_o saying_n say_v you_o that_o his_o disciple_n come_v by_o night_n and_o steal_v he_o away_o when_o we_o be_v a_o sleep_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o if_o the_o precedent_n shall_v hear_v of_o this_o we_o will_v persuade_v he_o and_o make_v you_o secure_a â_o verse_n 15_o but_o they_o take_v the_o money_n do_v as_o they_o be_v teach_v and_o this_o word_n be_v bruit_v abroad_o among_o the_o jew_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o eleven_o disciple_n go_v into_o galilee_n week_n unto_o the_o mount_n where_o jesus_n have_v appoint_v they_o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o see_v he_o they_o adore_v trinity_n but_o some_o doubt_v â_o verse_n 18_o and_o jesus_n come_v near_o speak_v unto_o they_o say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n â_o verse_n 19_o â_o go_v therefore_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_z and_z of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 20_o teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o â³_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n xxviii_o 1._o to_o see_v the_o sepulchre_n 1._o the_o devout_a woman_n come_v to_o visit_v our_o saviour_n sepulchre_n thereunto_o and_o for_o their_o devotion_n first_o deserve_v to_o know_v the_o resurrection_n and_o to_o see_v he_o rise_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o which_o sepulchre_n and_o the_o pilgrimage_n thereunto_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n s._n hierom_n declare_v in_o these_o word_n the_o jew_n sometime_o honour_v sancta_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la because_o there_o be_v the_o cherub_n and_o the_o
propitiatory_a and_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o testament_n manna_n aaron_n rod_n and_o the_o golden_a altar_n do_v not_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o our_o lord_n seem_v unto_o thou_o more_o honourable_a which_o as_o often_o as_o we_o enter_v into_o so_o often_o do_v we_o see_v our_o saviour_n lie_v in_o the_o sindon_n and_o stay_v there_o a_o while_n we_o see_v the_o angel_n again_o sit_v at_o his_o foot_n and_o at_o his_o head_n the_o napkin_n wrap_v together_o 11._o the_o glory_n of_o who_o sepulchre_n we_o know_v be_v long_o prophety_v before_o joseph_n hew_v it_o out_o by_o esay_n saying_n and_o his_o rest_n shall_v be_v honour_n to_o wit_n because_o the_o place_n of_o our_o lord_n burial_n shall_v be_v honour_v of_o all_o man_n and_o at_o this_o present_a notwithstanding_o the_o turk_n dominion_n yet_o do_v the_o religious_a christian_n catholic_a man_n by_o god_n mighty_a providence_n keep_v the_o holy_a sepulchre_n church_n which_o be_v within_o a_o goodly_a church_n and_o christian_n come_v out_o of_o all_o the_o world_n in_o pilgrimage_n to_o it_o 19_o go_v then_o commission_n to_o baptize_v and_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o ground_v upon_o christ_n sovereign_a authority_n to_o who_o be_v give_v all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n 20._o with_o you_o all_o day_n here_o christ_n do_v promise_v his_o concurrence_n with_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n as_o well_o in_o preach_v as_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n and_o his_o protection_n of_o the_o church_n never_o to_o cease_v till_o the_o world_n end_n contrary_a to_o our_o adversary_n say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v fail_v many_o hundred_o year_n till_o luther_n and_o caluin_n â§_o the_o argument_n of_o s._n mark_v gospel_n s_o mark_v gospel_n may_v be_v well_o divide_v into_o four_o part_n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o preparation_n that_o be_v make_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n chap._n 1._o in_o the_o beginning_n the_o second_o of_o his_o manifest_v himself_o by_o preach_v and_o miracle_n and_o that_o in_o galilee_n the_o residue_n of_o the_o 1._o chap._n unto_o the_o 10._o chap._n the_o three_o of_o his_o come_n into_o jury_n towards_o his_o passion_n chap._n 10._o the_o four_o of_o the_o holy_a week_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o jerusalem_n chap._n 11._o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n of_o s._n mark_n and_o his_o conversation_n with_o the_o two_o apostle_n s._n paul_n and_o s._n barnabee_n we_o have_v at_o large_a act._n 12_o and_o 15._o somewhat_o also_o col._n 4._o and_o 2._o tim._n 4._o and_o to_o philémon_n moreover_o of_o his_o familiarity_n with_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n we_o have_v 1_o pet._n 5._o for_o so_o it_o please_v our_o lord_n that_o only_o two_o of_o the_o evangelist_n shall_v be_v of_o his_o twelue_fw-mi apostle_n to_o wit_n s._n matthew_n and_o s._n john_n the_o other_o two_o s._n mark_v and_o s._n luke_n he_o give_v unto_o we_o of_o the_o disciple_n of_o his_o two_o most_o principal_a and_o most_o glorious_a apostle_n s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n who_o gospel_n therefore_o be_v of_o antiquity_n count_v as_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n themselves_o ecclesiast_fw-la mark_v the_o disciple_n and_o interpreter_n of_o peter_n say_v s._n hierom_n according_a to_o that_o which_o he_o hear_v of_o peter_n mouth_n write_v at_o rome_n a_o brief_a gospel_n at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o brethren_n about_o 10_o or_o 12_o year_n after_o our_o lord_n ascension_n which_o when_o peter_n have_v hear_v he_o approve_v it_o and_o with_o his_o authority_n do_v publish_v it_o to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v read_v as_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n write_v li._n 6._o hypotypos_fw-la in_o the_o same_o place_n s._n hierom_n add_v how_o he_o go_v into_o egypt_n to_o preach_v and_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o chief_a city_n there_o name_v alexandria_n and_o how_o philo_n judaeus_fw-la at_o the_o same_o time_n see_v and_o admire_v the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o christian_n there_o under_o s._n mark_v supplicibus_fw-la who_o be_v monk_n write_v a_o book_n thereof_o which_o be_v extant_a to_o this_o day_n catalogo_fw-la and_o not_o only_a s._n hierom_n in_o marco_n &_o in_o philone_n but_o also_o eusebius_n hist_o li._n 2._o ca._n 15._o 16._o 17._o epiphanius_n secta_fw-la 29_o nazaraeorum_n li._n 1._o to_o 2._o cassianus_n de_fw-fr instit_fw-la caenobiorum_fw-la li._n 2._o c._n 5._o sozomenus_n li._n 1._o c._n 12._o nicephorus_n li._n 2_o c._n 15._o and_o diverse_a other_o do_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o say_a monk_n out_o of_o the_o same_o author_n final_o he_o die_v say_v s._n hierom_n the_o 8_o year_n of_o nero_n and_o be_v bury_v at_o alexandria_n anianus_n succeed_v in_o his_o place_n but_o from_o alexandria_n he_o be_v 28._o translate_v to_o venice_n anno_fw-la dom._n 830._o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v note_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o s._n peter_n who_o send_v s._n mark_v his_o scholar_n to_o alexandria_n and_o make_v he_o the_o first_o bishop_n there_o this_o see_n be_v esteem_v next_o in_o dignity_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o be_v account_v the_o chief_a metropolitan_a or_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n and_o that_o by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a whereof_o see_v s._n leo_n ep_n 53._o s._n gregory_n li._n 5._o ep_n 60._o &_o li._n 6._o ep_n 37._o the_o holy_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o mark_n chap._n i._n john_n the_o eremite_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n preach_v penance_n manifestation_n and_o live_v himself_o according_o baptize_v the_o people_n to_o prepare_v they_o to_o christ_n 7_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v not_o he_o but_o christ_n baptism_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 9_o jesus_n there_o be_v manifest_v from_o heaven_n 12_o and_o by_o and_o by_o he_o also_o go_v into_o the_o wilderness_n 14_o beginning_n in_o galilee_n 16_o after_o that_o he_o have_v call_v four_o disciple_n 21_o he_o preach_v first_o in_o capharnaum_n confirm_v his_o doctrine_n with_o beneficial_a miracle_n to_o the_o great_a admiration_n of_o all_o 35_o then_o also_o but_o first_o retire_v into_o the_o wilderness_n in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o galilee_n with_o like_a miracle_n verse_n 1_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 2_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o â_o esay_n the_o prophet_n '_o 1._o behold_v i_o send_v my_o angel_n before_o thy_o face_n prophet_n who_o shall_v prepare_v thy_o way_n before_o thou_o â_o verse_n 3_o a_o voice_n of_o one_o cry_v in_o the_o desert_n prepare_v you_o the_o way_n of_o our_o lord_n make_v straight_o his_o path_n â_o verse_n 4_o *_o john_n be_v in_o the_o desert_n baptise_v 1._o and_o preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o penance_n 10._o unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n 4._o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o there_o go_v forth_o to_o he_o all_o the_o country_n of_o jewrie_n 15._o and_o all_o they_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o in_o the_o river_n of_o jordan_n â_o confess_v â_o their_o sin_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o john_n be_v â_o clothe_v with_o camel_n hear_v and_o a_o girdle_n of_o a_o skin_n about_o his_o loin_n and_o he_o do_v eat_v locust_n and_o wild_a honey_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o he_o preach_v say_v there_o come_v a_o strong_a than_o i_o after_o i_o who_o latchet_n of_o his_o shoe_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a stoop_v down_o to_o unloose_v â_o verse_n 8_o i_o have_v baptize_v you_o â_o with_o water_n but_o he_o shall_v baptize_v you_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o those_o day_n come_v jesus_n from_o nazareth_n of_o galilee_n and_o be_v â³_o baptize_v of_o john_n in_o jordan_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o forth_o with_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o water_n he_o see_v the_o heaven_n open_v and_o â_o the_o spirit_n as_o a_o dove_n descend_v and_o remain_v on_o he_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o a_o voice_n be_v make_v from_o heaven_n thou_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n in_o thou_o i_o be_o well_o please_v â_o verse_n 12_o and_o forth_o with_o *_o the_n spirit_n drive_v he_o out_o into_o â_o the_o desert_n 1._o 1._o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o he_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n and_o be_v tempt_v of_o satan_n and_o he_o be_v with_o beast_n manifestation_n and_o the_o angel_n minister_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o *_o after_o that_o john_n be_v deliver_v up_o 12._o jesus_n come_v into_o galilee_n 14._o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o say_v that_o the_o time_n be_v fulfil_v and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n also_o be_v penitent_a and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n â_o
place_n at_o supper_n â_o verse_n 40_o which_o devour_v widow_n house_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o long_a prayer_n these_o shall_v receive_v large_a judgement_n â_o verse_n 41_o *_o and_o jesus_n sit_v over_o against_o the_o treasury_n 2._o behold_v how_o the_o multitude_n do_v cast_v money_n into_o the_o treasury_n and_o many_o rich_a man_n do_v cast_v in_o much_o â_o verse_n 42_o and_o when_o there_o come_v a_o certain_a poor_a widow_n she_o cast_v in_o two_o mite_n which_o be_v a_o farthing_n â_o verse_n 43_o and_o call_v his_o disciple_n together_o he_o say_v to_o they_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o this_o poor_a widow_n have_v cast_v in_o give_v more_o than_o all_o that_o have_v cast_v into_o the_o treasury_n â_o verse_n 44_o for_o all_o they_o of_o their_o abundance_n have_v cast_v in_o but_o she_o of_o her_o penury_n have_v cast_v in_o all_o that_o she_o have_v her_o whole_a live_n annotation_n chap._n xii_o 17._o to_o god_n prince_n these_o man_n be_v very_o circumspect_a and_o wary_a to_o do_v all_o duty_n to_o caesar_n but_o of_o their_o duty_n to_o god_n they_o have_v no_o regard_n so_o heretic_n to_o flatter_v temporal_a prince_n and_o by_o they_o to_o uphold_v their_o heresy_n do_v not_o only_o inculcate_v man_n duty_n to_o the_o prince_n dissemble_v that_o which_o be_v dew_n to_o god_n but_o also_o give_v to_o the_o prince_n more_o than_o dew_n and_o take_v from_o god_n his_o right_n and_o duty_n but_o christ_n allow_v caesar_n his_o right_n warn_v they_o also_o of_o their_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o that_o be_v it_o which_o catholic_n inculcate_v obey_v god_n do_v as_o he_o command_v serve_v he_o first_o and_o that_o the_o prince_n 19_o his_o brother_n shall_v take_v 16_o mark_v well_o here_o wife_n that_o the_o law_n which_o say_v thou_o shall_v ãâã_d marry_v thy_o brother_n wife_n 5._o be_v not_o such_o as_o admit_v no_o dispensation_n as_o though_o this_o marriage_n weââ_n against_o nature_n for_o here_o the_o same_o law_n say_v that_o in_o some_o case_n the_o brother_n not_o only_a might_n but_o then_o be_v bind_v to_o marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n 24._o not_o know_v the_o scripture_n not_o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o by_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v by_o christ_n the_o resurrection_n be_v prove_v and_o yet_o we_o see_v that_o christ_n do_v hereby_o deduce_v it_o and_o charge_v these_o great_a doctor_n and_o master_n which_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v their_o ignorance_n that_o they_o know_v not_o so_o to_o deduce_v it_o no_o marvel_v then_o if_o the_o holy_a doctor_n and_o catholic_a church_n make_v the_o like_a deduction_n sometime_o and_o proof_n where_o the_o heretic_n do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o see_v so_o much_o therefore_o no_o doubt_n because_o he_o know_v noâ_n the_o scripture_n whereof_o he_o boast_v so_o much_o nor_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o they_o for_o example_n when_o of_o that_o place_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v ancient_a father_n deduce_v that_o there_o be_v sin_n remit_v after_o this_o life_n in_o purgatory_n see_v mat._n 1â_n 32._o 24._o the_o power_n of_o god_n faith_n even_o so_o do_v heretic_n err_v two_o way_n because_o they_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o interpret_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o because_o they_o know_v not_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o raise_v the_o self_n same_o body_n again_o so_o he_o can_v make_v his_o body_n present_a in_o many_o place_n but_o be_v altogether_o faithless_a and_o not_o believe_v his_o power_n they_o dispute_v of_o all_o such_o matter_n only_o by_o reason_n and_o their_o own_o imagination_n chap._n xiii_o to_o his_o disciple_n by_o occasion_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o temple_n destruction_n he_o foretell_v 5_o what_o thing_n shall_v be_v before_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o special_o the_o church_n full_o preach_v unto_o all_o nation_n 14_o then_o what_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o very_a consummation_n to_o wit_n antichrist_n with_o his_o pass_a great_a persecution_n and_o seduction_n but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n 24_o then_o incontinent_a the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 28_o to_o our_o great_a comfort_n in_o those_o misery_n under_o antichrist_n 32_o as_o for_o the_o moment_n to_o we_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o know_v it_o 33_o but_o rather_o every_o man_n to_o watch_n that_o we_o be_v not_o unprovided_a when_o he_o come_v âo_o ãâã_d one_o particular_o by_o death_n verse_n 1_o and_o when_o he_o go_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n one_o of_o his_o disciple_n say_v to_o he_o 1_o master_n 24._o behold_v what_o manner_n of_o stone_n 5._o and_o what_o kind_n of_o building_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o see_v thou_o all_o these_o great_a building_n there_o shall_v nor_o be_v leave_v a_o stone_n upon_o a_o stone_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v destroy_v â_o verse_n 3_o and_o when_o he_o sit_v in_o mount-olive_a against_o the_o temple_n peter_n and_o james_n and_o john_n and_o andrew_n ask_v he_o apart_o â_o verse_n 4_o tell_v we_o night_n â_o when_o shall_v these_o thing_n be_v and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o sign_n when_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v begin_v to_o be_v consummate_a â_o verse_n 5_o and_o jesus_n answer_v begin_v to_o say_v to_o they_o see_v that_o no_o man_n seduce_v you_o â_o verse_n 6_o for_o many_o shall_v come_v in_o my_o name_n say_v that_o â³_o i_o be_o he_o and_o they_o shall_v seduce_v many_o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o you_o shall_v hear_v of_o war_n and_o bruit_n of_o war_n fear_v not_o for_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v end_n but_o the_o end_n be_v not_o yet_o â_o verse_n 8_o for_o nation_n shall_v rise_v against_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n against_o kingdom_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v earthquake_n in_o place_n and_o famine_n these_o thing_n be_v the_o beginning_n of_o sorrow_n end_n â_o verse_n 9_o but_o look_v to_o yourselves_o for_o they_o shall_v deliver_v you_o up_o in_o counsel_n and_o in_o synagogs_n shall_v you_o be_v beat_v and_o you_o shall_v stand_v before_o precedent_n and_o king_n for_o my_o sake_n for_o a_o testimony_n unto_o they_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o into_o all_o nation_n first_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v preach_v â_o verse_n 11_o and_o when_o they_o shall_v lead_v you_o and_o deliver_v you_o be_v not_o careful_a before_o hand_n what_o you_o shall_v speak_v but_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o in_o that_o hour_n time_n that_o speak_v you_o for_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o brother_n shall_v deliver_v brother_n unto_o death_n and_o the_o father_n his_o son_n and_o the_o child_n shall_v arise_v against_o the_o parent_n and_o shall_v work_v their_o death_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v odious_a to_o all_o man_n for_o my_o name_n persecution_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v endure_v unto_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v be_v save_v â_o verse_n 14_o and_o when_o you_o shall_v see_v â³_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n 27._o stand_v where_o it_o ought_v not_o he_o that_o read_v let_v he_o understand_v than_o they_o that_o be_v in_o jewrie_n 4._o let_v they_o flee_v unto_o the_o mountain_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o that_o be_v on_o the_o house-toppe_n let_v he_o not_o go_v down_o into_o the_o house_n nor_o enter_v in_o to_o take_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o house_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o field_n let_v he_o not_o return_v back_o to_o take_v his_o garment_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o woe_n to_o they_o that_o be_v with_o child_n and_o that_o give_v suck_v in_o those_o day_n â_o verse_n 18_o but_o pray_v that_o the_o thing_n chance_v not_o in_o the_o winter_n â_o verse_n 19_o for_o those_o day_n shall_v be_v such_o tribulation_n as_o be_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n that_o god_n create_v until_o now_o neither_o shall_v be_v â_o verse_n 20_o and_o unless_o the_o lord_n have_v shorten_v the_o day_n no_o flesh_n shall_v be_v save_v but_o for_o the_o elect_a which_o he_o have_v elect_v he_o have_v 13._o shorten_v the_o day_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o then_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v unto_o you_o loe_o here_o be_v christ_n lo_o there_o do_v not_o believe_v â_o verse_n 22_o for_o there_o shall_v rise_v up_o false-christs_n and_o false-prophet_n and_o they_o shall_v show_v â³_o sign_n and_o wonder_v to_o seduce_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o elect_a also_o â_o verse_n 23_o you_o therefore_o take_v heed_n behold_v i_o have_v foretell_v you_o all_o thing_n â_o verse_n
and_o grace_n that_o ensue_v by_o christ_n jesus_n note_v also_o that_o as_o then_o in_o circuncision_n baptism_n so_o now_o in_o baptism_n which_o answer_v thereunto_o name_n be_v give_v and_o as_o we_o see_v here_o and_o in_o all_o the_o old_a testament_n great_a respect_n be_v have_v of_o name_n so_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o strange_a profane_a and_o secular_a name_n now_o a_o day_n to_o common_a and_o rather_o according_a to_o the_o *_o catechism_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o trent_n fine_a take_v name_n of_o saint_n and_o holy_a man_n that_o may_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o virtue_n 75._o justice_n before_o he_o imputative_a here_o also_o we_o see_v that_o we_o may_v have_v true_a justice_n not_o only_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n or_o by_o the_o imputation_n of_o god_n but_o in_o deed_n before_o he_o and_o in_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o give_v man_n such_o justice_n text_n 78._o the_o orient_a marvel_v not_o if_o heretic_n control_v the_o old_a authentical_a translation_n as_o though_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o greek_a whereas_o here_o they_o make_v much_o a_o do_v to_o control_v not_o only_o all_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n beza_n but_o also_o s._n luke_n himself_o for_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o differ_v from_o the_o hebrew_n chap._n ii_o the_o nativity_n of_o christ_n 8_o and_o manifestation_n thereof_o to_o the_o shepherd_n by_o a_o angel_n and_o by_o they_o to_o other_o 21_o his_o circuncision_n 22_o his_o presentation_n together_o with_o simeon_n as_o also_o annes_n attestation_n and_o prophesy_v of_o his_o passion_n of_o the_o jew_n reprobation_n and_o of_o the_o gentile_n illumination_n 41_o his_o annual_a ascend_v to_o jerusalem_n with_o his_o parent_n to_o who_o he_o be_v subject_a and_o his_o fullness_n of_o wisdom_n show_v among_o the_o doctor_n at_o twelve_o year_n of_o his_o age_n verse_n 1_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v day_n in_o those_o day_n there_o come_v forth_o a_o edict_n from_o caesar_n augustus_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v enroll_v â_o verse_n 2_o this_o first_o enrol_v be_v make_v by_o the_o precedent_n of_o syria_n cyrinus_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o all_o go_v to_o be_v enroll_v supputation_n every_o one_o into_o his_o own_o city_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o joseph_n also_o go_v up_o from_o galilee_n out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o nazareth_n into_o jewrie_n to_o the_o city_n of_o david_n that_o be_v call_v bethâlehem_n for-because_a he_o be_v of_o the_o house_n and_o family_n of_o david_n â_o verse_n 5_o to_o be_v enroll_v with_o marie_n his_o despoused_a wife_n that_o be_v with_o child_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o they_o be_v there_o her_o day_n be_v full_o come_v that_o she_o shall_v be_v deliver_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o she_o bring_v forth_o her_o first_o beget_v son_n and_o swaddle_v he_o in_o clothes_n and_o lay_v he_o down_o in_o a_o manger_n because_o there_o be_v not_o place_n for_o they_o in_o the_o inn_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o there_o be_v in_o the_o same_o country_n shepherd_n watch_v and_o keep_v the_o night_n watch_v over_o their_o flock_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o behold_v a_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n stand_v beside_o they_o and_o the_o brightness_n of_o god_n do_v shine_v round_o about_o they_o and_o they_o fear_v with_o a_o great_a fear_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o they_o fear_v not_o for_o behold_v i_o evangelise_v to_o you_o great_a joy_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o the_o people_n â_o verse_n 11_o because_o this_o day_n be_v bear_v to_o you_o a_o saviour_n which_o be_v christ_n our_o lord_n in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o sign_n to_o you_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o infant_n swaddle_v in_o clothes_n and_o lay_v in_o a_o manger_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o sudden_o there_o be_v with_o the_o angel_n a_o multitude_n of_o the_o heavenly_a army_n praise_v god_n and_o say_v â_o verse_n 14_o glory_n in_o the_o high_a to_o god_n mass_n and_o in_o earth_n peace_n to_o âmen_n of_o good_a will_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 15_o candlemas_n and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o the_o angel_n depart_v from_o they_o into_o heaven_n the_o shepherd_n speak_v one_o to_o a_o other_o let_v we_o go_v over_o to_o bethlehem_n and_o let_v we_o see_v this_o word_n that_o be_v do_v which_o our_o lord_n have_v show_v to_o us._n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o they_o come_v with_o speed_n and_o they_o find_v marie_n and_o joseph_n and_o the_o infant_n lay_v in_o the_o manger_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o see_v it_o they_o understand_v of_o the_o word_n that_o have_v be_v speak_v to_o they_o concern_v this_o child_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o all_o that_o hear_v do_v marvel_v and_o concern_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v report_v to_o they_o by_o the_o shepherd_n â_o verse_n 19_o but_o marie_n â³_o keep_v all_o these_o word_n confer_v they_o in_o her_o hart_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o the_o shepherd_n return_v glorify_v and_o praise_v god_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v as_o it_o be_v say_v to_o they_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 21_o 1._o and_o *_o after_o eight_o day_n be_v expire_v 12._o that_o the_o child_n shall_v be_v circuncise_v his_o name_n be_v call_v jesus_n which_o be_v *_o call_v by_o the_o angel_n 31._o before_o that_o he_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o womb_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 22_o day_n and_o after_o the_o day_n be_v full_o end_v of_o her_o purification_n *_o according_a to_o the_o la_o of_o moses_n 6._o they_o carry_v he_o into_o jerusalem_n to_o present_v he_o to_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 23_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o la_o of_o our_o lord_n 2_o that_o every_o male_a open_v the_o matrice_n shall_v be_v call_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n 16_o â_o verse_n 24_o and_o to_o give_v a_o sacrifice_n *_o according_a as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o la_o of_o our_o lord_n 8._o a_o pair_n of_o turtle_n or_o two_o young_a pigeon_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o behold_v there_o be_v a_o man_n in_o jerusalem_n name_v simeon_n and_o this_o man_n be_v just_a and_o religious_a expect_v the_o consolation_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v in_o he_o â_o verse_n 26_o and_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o answer_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n unless_o he_o see_v first_o the_o 41._o christ_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 27_o and_o he_o come_v in_o spirit_n into_o the_o temple_n and_o when_o his_o parent_n bring_v in_o the_o child_n jesus_n to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o law_n for_o he_o â_o verse_n 28_o he_o also_o take_v he_o into_o his_o arm_n and_o bless_a god_n and_o say_v â_o verse_n 29_o now_o thou_o do_v dimisse_fw-la thy_o servant_n o_o lord_n complin_n according_a to_o thy_o word_n in_o peace_n â_o verse_n 30_o because_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n â_o verse_n 31_o which_o thou_o have_v prepare_v before_o the_o face_n of_o all_o people_n â_o verse_n 32_o a_o light_n to_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o people_n israel_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 33_o and_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n be_v marueling_n upon_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v concern_v he_o â_o verse_n 34_o and_o simeon_n bless_v they_o and_o say_v to_o marie_n his_o mother_n behold_v this_o be_v set_v â³_o unto_o the_o ruin_n and_o unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o many_o in_o israel_n and_o for_o a_o sign_n which_o shall_v be_v contradict_v â_o verse_n 35_o and_o death_n thou_o own_o soul_n shall_v a_o sword_n pierce_v that_o out_o of_o many_o heart_n cogitation_n may_v be_v reveal_v â_o verse_n 36_o and_o there_o be_v anne_n a_o prophetisse_n the_o daughter_n of_o phanuel_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o aser_n she_o be_v far_o strike_v in_o day_n and_o have_v live_v with_o her_o husband_n seven_o year_n from_o her_o virginity_n â_o verse_n 37_o and_o she_o be_v â³_o a_o widow_n until_o eighty_o and_o four_o year_n who_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o temple_n â³_o by_o fasting_n and_o prayer_n ãâã_d serve_v night_n and_o day_n â_o verse_n 38_o and_o she_o at_o the_o same_o hour_n sudden_o come_v in_o confess_v to_o our_o lord_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o to_o all_o that_o expect_v the_o redemption_n of_o israel_n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o after_o they_o have_v whole_o do_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o la_o of_o our_o lord_n they_o return_v into_o galilee_n into_o their_o city_n nazareth_n â_o verse_n 40_o and_o the_o child_n grow_v and_o wax_v spirit_n strong_a '_o full_o of_o wisdom_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v in_o he_o â_o
preach_v the_o acceptable_a year_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o day_n of_o retribution_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o when_o he_o have_v fold_v the_o book_n he_o render_v it_o to_o the_o minister_n and_o sit_v down_o and_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o in_o the_o synagogue_n be_v bend_v upon_o he_o â_o verse_n 21_o and_o he_o begin_v to_o say_v unto_o they_o that_o this_o day_n be_v fulfil_v this_o scripture_n in_o your_o ear_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o all_o give_v testimomonie_n to_o he_o and_o they_o hearer_n maruel_v in_o the_o word_n of_o grace_n that_o procee_v from_o his_o mouth_n and_o they_o say_v be_v not_o this_o joseph_n son_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o certes_o you_o will_v say_v to_o i_o this_o similitude_n lent_n physician_n cure_n they_o self_n as_o great_a thing_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v â³_o do_v in_o capharnaum_n do_v also_o here_o in_o thy_o country_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o he_o say_v amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o no_o prophet_n be_v accept_v in_o his_o own_o country_n 9_o â_o verse_n 25_o in_o truth_n i_o say_v to_o you_o *_o there_o be_v many_o widow_n in_o the_o day_n of_o elias_n in_o israel_n when_o the_o heaven_n be_v shut_v three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n when_o there_o be_v a_o great_a famine_n make_v in_o the_o whole_a earth_n â_o verse_n 26_o and_o to_o none_o of_o they_o be_v elias_n send_v but_o into_o sarepta_n of_o sidon_n to_o a_o widow_n woman_n 14._o â_o verse_n 27_o *_o and_o there_o be_v many_o leper_n in_o israel_n under_o elisaeus_n the_o prophet_n and_o none_o of_o they_o be_v make_v clean_o but_o naaman_n the_o syrian_a â_o verse_n 28_o and_o all_o in_o the_o synagogue_n be_v fill_v with_o anger_n hear_v these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 29_o and_o they_o rise_v and_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o they_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o hill_n whereupon_o their_o city_n be_v build_v that_o they_o may_v throw_v he_o down_o headlong_o â_o verse_n 30_o but_o he_o â³_o pass_o through_o the_o mid_n of_o they_o go_v his_o way_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 31_o *_o and_o he_o go_v down_o into_o capharnaum_n a_o city_n of_o galilee_n 28._o and_o there_o he_o teach_v they_o on_o the_o sabbath_n â_o verse_n 32_o and_o they_o be_v astonish_v at_o his_o doctrine_n 21_o because_o his_o talk_n be_v in_o power_n â_o verse_n 33_o and_o in_o the_o synagogue_n there_o be_v a_o man_n have_v a_o unclean_a devil_n and_o he_o cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n â_o verse_n 34_o saying_n let_v be_v what_o to_o we_o and_o thou_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n be_v thou_o come_v to_o destroy_v we_o i_o know_v thou_o who_o thou_o be_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 35_o and_o jesus_n rebuke_v he_o say_v hold_v thy_o peace_n &_o go_v out_o of_o he_o and_o when_o the_o devil_n have_v throw_v he_o into_o the_o mid_n he_o go_v out_o of_o he_o and_o hurt_v he_o nothing_o â_o verse_n 36_o and_o there_o come_v fear_n upon_o all_o and_o they_o talk_v together_o one_o with_o a_o other_o say_v what_o word_n be_v this_o that_o in_o power_n and_o virtue_n he_o command_v the_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o they_o go_v out_o â_o verse_n 37_o and_o the_o fame_n of_o he_o be_v publish_v into_o every_o place_n of_o the_o country_n â_o verse_n 38_o and_o jesus_n rise_v up_o out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n 14._o enter_v into_o simons_n house_n whitsonweeke_n *_o and_o â³_o simons_n wife_n mother_n be_v hold_v with_o a_o great_a fever_n 30_o and_o they_o beseech_v he_o for_o she_o â_o verse_n 39_o and_o stand_v over_o she_o he_o command_v the_o fever_n and_o it_o leave_v she_o and_o incontinent_a rise_n she_o minister_v to_o they_o â_o verse_n 40_o and_o when_o the_o sun_n be_v down_o all_o that_o have_v disease_v of_o sundry_a malady_n bring_v they_o to_o he_o but_o he_o impose_v hand_n upon_o every_o one_o cure_v they_o â_o verse_n 41_o and_o devil_n go_v out_o from_o many_o cry_v and_o say_v that_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o rebuke_v they_o he_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o speak_v that_o they_o know_v he_o be_v christ_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o when_o it_o be_v day_n go_v forth_o he_o go_v into_o a_o desert_n place_n and_o the_o multitude_n seek_v he_o and_o come_v even_o unto_o he_o and_o they_o hold_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o they_o â_o verse_n 43_o to_o who_o he_o say_v that_o to_o other_o city_n also_o must_v i_o evangelise_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n because_o therefore_o i_o be_v send_v â_o verse_n 44_o and_o he_o be_v preach_v in_o the_o synagog_n of_o galilee_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n four_o 13._o depart_v until_o a_o time_n tentation_n no_o marvel_v if_o the_o devil_n be_v often_o or_o always_o busy_a with_o christian_a man_n see_v after_o he_o be_v plain_o overcome_v by_o christ_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o give_v he_o over_o altogether_o but_o for_o a_o time_n 23._o do_v in_o capharnaum_n god_n make_v choice_n of_o person_n and_o place_n where_o he_o work_v miracle_n or_o do_v benefit_n other_o though_o he_o may_v do_v the_o same_o else_o where_o if_o it_o like_v his_o wisdom_n so_o do_v he_o in_o do_v miracle_n by_o saint_n not_o in_o all_o place_n nor_o towards_o all_o person_n but_o as_o it_o please_v he_o aug._n ep_v ãâã_d 30._o pass_v through_o the_o mid_n of_o they_o nature_n either_o by_o make_v himself_o invisible_a or_o also_o more_o wonderful_o penetrate_v the_o multitude_n and_o pass_v through_o they_o as_o he_o do_v through_o the_o door_n his_o body_n either_o be_v without_o space_n of_o place_n or_o with_o other_o body_n in_o one_o place_n by_o all_o which_o and_o the_o like_o his_o do_n mention_v in_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o can_v alter_v and_o order_v his_o body_n as_o he_o listen_v above_o the_o natural_a condition_n of_o a_o body_n 38._o simons_n wife_n mother_n wife_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o peter_n have_v a_o wife_n but_o after_o his_o calling_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n he_o leave_v she_o as_o s._n hierom_n write_v in_o many_o place_n ep_v 14_o c._n 2_o ad_fw-la julianum_fw-la li._n 1_o adu_fw-la jonin_n see_v the_o annot._n matth._n 9_o 29._o chap._n v._n have_v teach_v the_o people_n out_o of_o peter_n ship_n 4_o he_o show_v in_o a_o miraculous_a take_n of_o fish_n how_o he_o will_v make_v he_o the_o fisher_n of_o man_n 12_o he_o cure_v a_o leper_n by_o touch_v he_o and_o send_v he_o to_o the_o priest_n in_o witness_n that_o he_o be_v not_o against_o moses_n 15_o the_o people_n flock_v unto_o he_o he_o retire_v into_o the_o wilderness_n 17_o to_o the_o pharisee_n in_o a_o solemn_a assembly_n he_o prove_v by_o a_o miracle_n his_o power_n to_o remit_v sin_n in_o earth_n 27_o he_o defend_v his_o eat_n with_o sinner_n as_o be_v the_o physician_n of_o soul_n ãâã_d and_o his_o not_o prescribe_v as_o yet_o of_o any_o fast_n to_o his_o disciple_n verse_n 1_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v pentecost_n when_o the_o multitude_n press_v upon_o he_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o himself_o stand_v beside_o the_o lake_n of_o genesareth_n â_o verse_n 2_o *_o and_o he_o see_v two_o ship_n stand_v by_o the_o lake_n 18._o and_o the_o fisher_n be_v go_v down_o and_o wash_v their_o net_n 16._o â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o go_v up_o into_o â³_o one_o ship_n that_o be_v simons_n desire_v he_o to_o bring_v it_o back_o a_o little_a from_o the_o land_n and_o sit_v he_o teach_v the_o multitude_n out_o of_o the_o ship_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o as_o he_o cease_v to_o speak_v he_o say_v to_o simon_n launche_n forth_o into_o the_o deep_a and_o let_v loose_v your_o net_n to_o make_v a_o draught_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o simon_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o master_n labour_v all_o the_o night_n we_o have_v take_v nothing_o but_o in_o thy_o word_n i_o will_v let_v loose_a the_o net_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v this_o they_o enclose_v â³_o a_o very_o great_a multitude_n of_o fish_n and_o their_o net_n be_v break_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o they_o â³_o beckon_v to_o their_o fellow_n that_o be_v in_o the_o other_o ship_n that_o they_o shall_v come_v and_o help_v they_o and_o they_o come_v and_o fill_v both_o ship_n so_o that_o they_o do_v sink_v â_o verse_n 8_o which_o when_o simon_n peter_n do_v see_v he_o fall_v down_o at_o jesus_n knee_n say_v go_v forth_o from_o i_o because_o i_o be_o a_o sinful_a man_n o_o lord_n â_o verse_n 9_o for_o he_o be_v whole_o astonish_v and_o all_o that_o be_v with_o he_o at_o the_o draught_n of_o fish_n which_o they_o have_v take_v â_o verse_n 10_o in_o like_a manner_n also_o james_n
they_o be_v his_o cousin_n 8._o either_o the_o son_n of_o joseph_n brother_n or_o as_o the_o more_o receive_a opinion_n be_v the_o son_n of_o our_o lady_n sister_n call_v marie_n of_o james_n which_o jame_v therefore_o be_v also_o call_v the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n 55._o her_o spirit_n return_v this_o return_v of_o the_o soul_n again_o into_o the_o body_n of_o they_o who_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n raise_v from_o death_n special_o lazarus_n who_o have_v be_v dead_a four_o day_n do_v evident_o prove_v a_o three_o place_n against_o our_o adversary_n life_n that_o say_v every_o one_o go_v straight_o to_o heaven_n or_o to_o hel._n âor_a it_o can_v not_o be_v think_v that_o they_o be_v call_v from_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o from_o some_o three_o place_n chap._n ix_o his_o twelve_o also_o now_o preach_v every_o where_n and_o work_a miracle_n 6_o herod_n and_o all_o do_v wonder_n much_o 10_o after_o which_o he_o take_v they_o and_o go_v into_o the_o wilderness_n where_o he_o cure_v and_o teach_v feed_v 5000_o with_o five_o leaf_n 18_o peter_n confess_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n 21_o he_o on_o the_o other_o side_n foretell_v his_o passion_n and_o that_o all_o must_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n follow_v he_o therein_o â7_n whereunto_o to_o encourage_v we_o the_o more_o 27_o he_o give_v in_o his_o transfiguration_n a_o sight_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o suffering_n â7_n the_o next_o day_n he_o cast_v out_o a_o devil_n which_o his_o disciple_n can_v not_o 43_o who_o amidde_v these_o wonder_v he_o fore_o warn_v again_o of_o his_o scandalous_a passion_n 49_o and_o to_o cure_v their_o ambition_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o most_o humble_a he_o esteem_v most_o 49_o bid_v they_o also_o not_o to_o prohibit_v any_o that_o be_v not_o against_o they_o 51_o yea_o and_o towards_o such_o as_o be_v against_o they_o schismatical_o to_o show_v mildness_n for_o all_o that_o 57_o of_o follow_v he_o three_o example_n verse_n 1_o and_o call_v together_o the_o twelue_fw-mi apostle_n week_n he_o give_v they_o sin_n virtue_n and_o power_n over_o all_o devil_n 1_o and_o to_o cure_v malady_n 8._o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o send_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o to_o heal_v the_o sick_a â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o take_v nothing_o for_o the_o way_n neither_o rod_n nor_o skip_v nor_o bread_n nor_o money_n neither_o have_v two_o coat_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o into_o whatsoever_o house_n you_o enter_v tarry_v there_o and_o thence_o do_v not_o depart_v â_o and_n whosoever_o shall_v not_o receive_v you_o go_v forth_o out_o of_o that_o city_n shake_v of_o the_o dust_n also_o of_o your_o foot_n sustenance_n for_o a_o testimony_n upon_o they_o â_o verse_n 6_o and_o go_v forth_o they_o go_v a_o circuit_n from_o town_n to_o town_n evangelize_a and_o cure_v every_o where_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o *_o herod_n the_o tetrarch_n hear_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o he_o 1_o and_o he_o stagger_v because_o it_o be_v say_v of_o some_o 14._o that_o john_n be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a â_o verse_n 8_o but_o of_o other_o some_o that_o elias_n have_v appear_v and_o of_o other_o that_o a_o prophet_n one_o of_o the_o old_a one_o be_v rise_v â_o verse_n 9_o and_o herod_n say_v john_n i_o have_v behead_v but_o who_o be_v this_o of_o who_o i_o hear_v such_o thing_n and_o he_o seek_v for_o to_o see_v he_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o *_o the_o apostle_n be_v return_v 13._o report_v to_o he_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v and_o take_v they_o he_o retire_v apart_o into_o a_o desert_n place_n 31._o which_o belong_v to_o beth-saida_a â_o verse_n 11_o which_o the_o multitude_n understanding_n 5._o follow_v he_o &_o he_o receive_v they_o and_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o have_v need_n of_o cure_n he_o heal_v â_o verse_n 12_o and_o the_o day_n begin_v to_o draw_v towards_o a_o end_n and_o the_o twelue_fw-mi come_n near_o say_v to_o he_o dimisse_fw-la the_o multitude_n that_o go_v into_o town_n and_o village_n here_o about_o they_o may_v have_v lodging_n and_o find_v meat_n because_o here_o we_o be_v in_o a_o desert_n place_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o give_v you_o they_o to_o eat_v but_o they_o say_v we_o have_v no_o more_o but_o five_o loaf_n and_o two_o fish_n unless_o perhaps_o we_o shall_v go_v and_o high_a meat_n for_o all_o this_o multitude_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o there_o be_v man_n almost_o five_o thousand_o and_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n make_v they_o sit_v down_o by_o company_n fifty_o and_o fifty_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o so_o they_o do_v and_o they_o make_v all_o sit_v down_o â_o verse_n 16_o and_o take_v the_o five_o loaf_n and_o the_o two_o fish_n he_o look_v up_o unto_o heaven_n and_o ãâã_d 7._o bless_v they_o and_o he_o break_v and_o distribute_v to_o his_o disciple_n for_o to_o set_v before_o the_o multitude_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o whithersoever_o they_o do_v all_o eat_v and_o have_v their_o fill_n and_o there_o be_v take_v up_o that_o which_o remain_v to_o they_o twelue_fw-mi basket_n of_o fragment_n â_o verse_n 18_o *_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v 13._o when_o he_o be_v alone_o pray_v his_o disciple_n also_o be_v with_o he_o and_o he_o ask_v they_o say_v who_o do_v the_o multitude_n say_v that_o i_o be_o 27._o â_o verse_n 19_o but_o they_o answer_v and_o say_v john_n the_o baptist_n and_o some_o elias_n but_o some_o that_o one_o of_o the_o prophet_n before_o time_n be_v rise_v â_o verse_n 20_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o but_o who_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o simon_n peter_n answer_v say_v the_o christ_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 21_o but_o he_o rebuke_v they_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v tell_v this_o to_o no_o man_n â_o verse_n 22_o saying_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n must_v suffer_v many_o thing_n and_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o ancient_n and_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n and_o be_v kill_v and_o the_o three_o day_n rise_v again_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o he_o say_v to_o all_o if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n daily_o and_o follow_v i_o â_o verse_n 24_o for_o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v save_v it_o â_o verse_n 25_o for_o what_o profit_n have_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o lose_v himself_o and_o cast_v away_o himself_o â_o verse_n 26_o for_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o of_o my_o word_n he_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o father_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a angel_n â_o verse_n 27_o and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o assure_o there_o be_v some_o stand_n here_o that_o shall_v not_o raze_v death_n â³_o till_o they_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 28_o *_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o these_o word_n almost_o eight_o day_n transfiguration_n and_o he_o take_v peter_n and_o james_n and_o john_n 1_o and_o go_v into_o a_o mountain_n to_o pray_v 1._o â_o verse_n 29_o and_o while_o he_o pray_v the_o shape_n of_o his_o countenance_n be_v alter_v and_o his_o raiment_n white_a and_o glister_a â_o verse_n 30_o and_o behold_v two_o man_n talk_v with_o he_o and_o they_o be_v moses_n and_o elias_n â_o verse_n 31_o appear_v in_o majesty_n and_o they_o tell_v his_o decease_n that_o he_o shall_v accomplish_v in_o jerusalem_n â_o verse_n 32_o but_o peter_n and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o be_v heavy_a with_o sleep_n and_o awake_v they_o see_v his_o majesty_n and_o the_o two_o man_n that_o stand_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 33_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o they_o depart_v from_o he_o peter_n say_v to_o jesus_n master_n it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v here_o and_o let_v we_o make_v three_o tabernacle_n one_o for_o thou_o and_o one_o for_o moses_n and_o one_o for_o elias_n not_o know_v what_o he_o say_v â_o verse_n 34_o and_o as_o he_o speak_v these_o thing_n there_o come_v a_o cloud_n and_o overshadow_v they_o and_o they_o fear_v 17._o when_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o cloud_n â_o verse_n 35_o *_o and_o a_o voice_n be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n hear_v he_o â_o verse_n 36_o and_o while_o the_o voice_n be_v make_v jesus_n be_v find_v alone_o and_o they_o hold_v their_o peace_n and_o tell_v no_o man_n in_o those_o day_n any_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v see_v â_o verse_n 37_o
oil_n and_o wine_n trid._n his_o sacrament_n the_o host_n the_o priest_n his_o minister_n whereby_o be_v signify_v that_o the_o law_n can_v not_o recover_v the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o mankind_n from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n 1._o that_o be_v justify_v man_n but_o christ_n only_o who_o by_o his_o passion_n and_o the_o grace_n and_o virtue_n thereof_o minister_v in_o and_o by_o his_o sacrament_n justifi_v and_o increase_v the_o justice_n of_o man_n heal_v and_o able_v freewill_a to_o do_v all_o good_a work_n 42._o marry_o the_o best_a part_n two_o notable_a example_n one_o of_o the_o life_n active_a in_o martha_n the_o other_o of_o the_o life_n contemplative_a secular_a in_o marieâ_n represent_v unto_o we_o that_o in_o holy_a church_n there_o shall_v be_v always_o some_o to_o serve_v god_n in_o both_o these_o several_a sort_n the_o life_n contemplative_a be_v here_o prefer_v before_o the_o active_a the_o religious_a of_o both_o sex_n be_v of_o that_o more_o excellent_a state_n and_o therefore_o our_o protestant_n have_v whole_o abandon_v they_o out_o of_o their_o common_a wealth_n which_o the_o true_a church_n never_o want_v but_o to_o say_v truth_n they_o have_v neither_o martha_n nor_o marie_n our_o lord_n geve_v they_o grace_n to_o see_v their_o misery_n if_o we_o be_v not_o answerable_a to_o their_o profession_n or_o be_v degenerate_v why_o have_v they_o no_o new_a one_o if_o our_o church_n votary_n vow_v unlawful_a thing_n chastity_n poverty_n obedience_n pilgrimage_n what_o other_o votary_n or_o lawful_a vow_n have_v they_o for_o to_o offer_v voluntary_o by_o vow_n beside_o the_o keep_n of_o god_n commandment_n votary_n whereunto_o we_o be_v bind_v by_o precept_n and_o promise_n in_o our_o baptism_n our_o soul_n body_n good_n or_o any_o other_o acceptable_a thing_n to_o god_n be_v a_o act_n of_o sovereign_a worship_n belong_v to_o god_n only_o and_o there_o be_v never_o true_a religion_n without_o such_o vow_n and_o votary_n if_o there_o be_v none_o in_o their_o whole_a church_n that_o profess_v contemplation_n or_o that_o vow_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o to_o god_n voluntary_o neither_o in_o their_o body_n nor_o in_o their_o good_n god_n and_o the_o world_n know_v they_o have_v no_o church_n nor_o religion_n at_o al._n chap._n xi_o he_o teach_v a_o form_n of_o prayer_n â_o and_o exhort_v to_o pray_v instant_o 11_o assure_v that_o so_o god_n will_v give_v we_o good_a thing_n 14_o the_o jew_n blaspheme_v his_o cast_n out_o of_o devil_n and_o ask_v for_o a_o miracle_n from_o heaven_n 17_o he_o defend_v his_o do_v ãâã_d foretell_v also_o the_o devil_n expulsion_n by_o he_o out_o of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n 24_o and_o his_o reentry_n into_o their_o nation_n 27_o with_o their_o reprobation_n though_o he_o be_v of_o their_o flesh_n 29_o and_o also_o their_o final_a most_o worthy_a damnation_n 37_o again_o to_o the_o pharisee_n and_o scribe_n he_o cry_v woe_n as_o author_n of_o the_o say_a ââprobation_n now_o at_o hand_n verse_n 1_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n pray_v as_o he_o cease_v one_o of_o his_o disciple_n say_v to_o he_o lord_n teach_v we_o to_o pray_v as_o john_n also_o teach_v his_o disciple_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o say_v they_o 9_o *_o when_o you_o pray_v say_v father_z sanctify_a be_v thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v â_o verse_n 3_o our_o daily_a bread_n give_v we_o this_o day_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n for_o because_o ourselves_o also_o do_v forgive_v every_o one_o that_o be_v in_o debt_n to_o we_o and_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o which_o of_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o friend_n pagan_n and_o shall_v go_v to_o he_o at_o midnight_n and_o shall_v say_v to_o he_o friend_n lend_v i_o three_o loaf_n â_o verse_n 6_o because_o a_o friend_n of_o i_o be_v come_v out_o of_o his_o way_n to_o i_o and_o i_o have_v not_o what_o to_o set_v before_o he_o â_o verse_n 7_o &_o he_o from_o within_o answer_v say_v trouble_v i_o not_o now_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v and_o my_o child_n be_v with_o i_o in_o bed_n i_o can_v not_o rise_v and_o give_v thou_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v perseuêre_fw-la knockin_n i_o say_v to_o you_o although_o he_o will_v not_o rise_v and_o give_v he_o because_o he_o be_v his_o friend_n yet_o for_o his_o importunity_n he_o will_v rise_v sin_n and_o give_v he_o as_o many_o as_o he_o need_v 7._o â_o verse_n 9_o *_o and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o ask_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v knock_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v open_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 10_o for_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v receive_v and_o he_o that_o seek_v find_v and_o to_o he_o that_o knock_v it_o shall_v be_v open_v â_o verse_n 11_o and_o which_o of_o you_o if_o he_o ask_v his_o father_n bread_n will_v he_o give_v he_o a_o stone_n or_o a_o fish_n will_v he_o for_o a_o fish_n give_v he_o a_o serpent_n â_o verse_n 12_o or_o if_o he_o ask_v a_o egg_n will_v he_o reach_v he_o a_o scorpion_n â_o verse_n 13_o if_o you_o then_o be_v naught_o know_v how_o to_o give_v good_a gift_n to_o your_o child_n how_o much_o more_o will_v your_o father_n from_o heaven_n give_v the_o good_a spirit_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v he_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 14_o *_o and_o he_o be_v cast_v out_o a_o devil_n 22._o and_o that_o be_v dumb_a and_o when_o he_o have_v cast_v out_o the_o devil_n the_o dumb_a speak_v and_o the_o multitude_n marvel_v lent_n â_o verse_n 15_o *_o and_o certain_a of_o they_o say_v 22._o in_o beel-zebub_a the_o prince_n of_o devil_n he_o cast_v out_o devil_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o other_o tempt_v ask_v of_o he_o a_o sign_n from_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 17_o but_o he_o see_v their_o cogitation_n say_v to_o they_o every_o kingdom_n divide_v against_o itself_o shall_v be_v make_v desolate_a and_o ãâã_d house_n upon_o house_n shall_v fall_v â_o verse_n 18_o and_o if_o satan_n also_o be_v divide_v against_o himself_o how_o shall_v his_o kingdom_n stand_v because_o you_o say_v that_o in_o beel-zebub_a i_o do_v cast_v out_o devil_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o if_o i_o in_o beel-zebub_a cast_v out_o devil_n your_o child_n in_o who_o do_v they_o cast_v out_o therefore_o they_o shall_v be_v your_o judge_n â_o verse_n 20_o but_o if_o i_o in_o the_o 28._o finger_n of_o god_n do_v cast_v out_o devil_n sure_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v come_v upon_o you_o â_o verse_n 21_o when_o the_o strong_a arm_v keep_v his_o court_n those_o thing_n be_v in_o peace_n that_o he_o possess_v â_o verse_n 22_o but_o if_o a_o strong_a than_o he_o come_v upon_o he_o and_o overcome_v he_o he_o will_v take_v away_o his_o whole_a armour_n wherein_o he_o trust_v and_o will_v distribute_v his_o spoil_n â_o verse_n 23_o he_o that_o be_v not_o with_o i_o be_v against_o i_o and_o he_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o i_o scatter_v â_o verse_n 24_o when_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n shall_v depart_v out_o of_o a_o man_n he_o wander_v through_o place_n without_o water_n seek_v rest_n and_o not_o find_v he_o say_v i_o will_v return_v into_o my_o house_n whence_o i_o depart_v â_o verse_n 25_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v he_o find_v it_o sweep_v with_o a_o bosom_n and_o trim_v â_o verse_n 26_o then_o he_o go_v and_o take_v seven_o other_o spirit_n worse_o than_o himself_o and_o enter_v in_o they_o dwell_o there_o and_o the_o siunt_fw-la last_o of_o that_o man_n be_v make_v worse_o than_o the_o first_o â_o verse_n 27_o advent_a and_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o he_o say_v these_o thing_n a_o certain_a woman_n lift_v up_o her_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o multitude_n say_v to_o he_o â³_o bless_a be_v the_o womb_n that_o bear_v thou_o and_o the_o pap_n that_o thou_o do_v suck_v â_o verse_n 28_o but_o he_o say_v joan._n yea_o rather_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o keep_v it_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 29_o and_o the_o multitude_n run_v together_o he_o begin_v to_o say_v *_o this_o generation_n 29._o be_v a_o wicked_a generation_n it_o ask_v a_o sign_n and_o a_o sign_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v it_o but_o â³_o the_o sign_n of_o jonas_n the_o prophet_n 2._o â_o verse_n 30_o *_o for_o as_o jonas_n be_v a_o sign_n to_o the_o ninivites_fw-la so_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n also_o be_v to_o this_o generation_n 1._o â_o verse_n 31_o *_o the_o queen_n of_o the_o south_n shall_v rise_v in_o the_o judgement_n with_o the_o man_n of_o this_o generation_n and_o shall_v condemn_v they_o because_o she_o come_v from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o hear_v the_o
and_o drink_v buy_v and_o sell_v plant_v and_o build_v â_o verse_n 29_o and_o in_o the_o day_n that_o lot_n go_v out_o from_o sodom_n it_o rain_v fire_n and_o brimstone_n from_o heaven_n and_o destroy_v they_o all_o â_o verse_n 30_o according_a to_o these_o thing_n it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o day_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v reveal_v â_o verse_n 31_o in_o that_o hour_n he_o that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o house-toppe_n and_o his_o vessel_n in_o the_o house_n let_v he_o not_o go_v down_o to_o take_v they_o up_o and_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o field_n in_o like_a manner_n let_v he_o not_o return_v back_o â_o verse_n 32_o be_v mindful_a of_o *_o lot_n wife_n 26._o â_o verse_n 33_o whosoever_o seek_v to_o save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o whosoever_o do_v lose_v the_o same_o shall_v quicken_v it_o â_o verse_n 34_o i_o say_v to_o you_o in_o that_o night_n there_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o bed_n the_o one_o shall_v be_v take_v and_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v leave_v â_o verse_n 35_o two_o woman_n shall_v be_v grind_v together_o the_o one_o shall_v be_v take_v and_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v leave_v two_o in_o the_o field_n the_o one_o shall_v be_v take_v and_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v leave_v â_o verse_n 36_o they_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o where_o lord_n â_o verse_n 37_o who_o say_v to_o they_o wheresoever_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v thither_o will_v the_o eagle_n also_o be_v gather_v together_o annotation_n chap._n xvii_o 10._o unprofitable_a servant_n servant_n if_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v that_o the_o keep_n of_o god_n commandment_n have_v be_v unprofitable_a and_o not_o available_a to_o ourselves_o they_o may_v the_o protestant_n have_v true_o argue_v thereby_o that_o our_o work_n deserve_v not_o heaven_n or_o any_o reward_n at_o god_n hand_n but_o so_o he_o say_v not_o but_o that_o our_o service_n be_v to_o god_n unprofitable_a who_o call_v for_o it_o as_o duty_n and_o not_o as_o a_o thing_n needful_a or_o profitable_a to_o himself_o and_o though_o here_o our_o master_n teach_v we_o so_o humble_o to_o conceive_v of_o our_o own_o do_n towards_o he_o ãâã_d yet_o himself_o else_o where_o call_v not_o his_o servant_n unprofitable_a when_o they_o have_v do_v their_o labour_n but_o speak_v thus_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n because_o thou_o be_v faithful_a in_o a_o little_a i_o will_v place_v thou_o over_o much_o enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n 14._o yea_o of_o such_o as_o serve_v he_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o affirm_v that_o he_o will_v not_o now_o name_v they_o servant_n but_o friend_n yea_o and_o take_v they_o for_o his_o own_o child_n and_o as_o his_o friend_n and_o son_n he_o count_v of_o we_o and_o our_o work_n towards_o heaven_n though_o we_o in_o humility_n and_o truth_n must_v confess_v always_o that_o we_o be_v to_o he_o unprofitable_a servant_n yea_o and_o s._n paul_n say_v plain_o that_o by_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o sinful_a work_n we_o shall_v be_v profitable_a vessel_n to_o our_o lord_n 2_o timot._v 2_o 21._o 14._o to_o the_o priest_n priest_n this_o leprosy_n signify_v sin_n which_o though_o god_n may_v and_o can_v heal_v without_o any_o man_n mean_n yet_o he_o do_v it_o not_o ordinary_o but_o by_o the_o priest_n ministry_n therefore_o let_v no_o man_n despise_v god_n ordinance_n nor_o say_v that_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o confess_v to_o god_n though_o he_o never_o come_v at_o the_o priest_n li._n the_o visit_n infirm_a apud_fw-la august_n 14._o as_o they_o go_v a_o man_n may_v sometime_o be_v so_o contrite_a and_o penitent_a that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o priest_n but_o then_o also_o he_o must_v notwithstanding_o go_v to_o the_o priest_n as_o these_o leper_n do_v special_o whereas_o we_o be_v never_o sure_a how_o contrite_a we_o be_v and_o because_o thereis_n no_o true_a contrition_n but_o with_o desire_n also_o of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o time_n and_o place_n chap._n xviii_o the_o church_n be_v teach_v to_o commit_v the_o revenge_n of_o her_o persecution_n to_o god_n and_o to_o pray_v incessant_o for_o he_o no_o doubt_n though_o in_o the_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n few_o will_v so_o think_v will_v at_o length_n come_v 9_o we_o must_v also_o pray_v with_o humility_n because_o we_o know_v not_o with_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi if_o we_o be_v just_a but_o we_o know_v with_o the_o publican_n that_o we_o be_v sinner_n 15_o he_o will_v have_v child_n to_o be_v bring_v to_o he_o and_o all_o to_o be_v as_o child_n 18_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v to_o get_v life_n everlasting_a 22_o what_o also_o to_o get_v perfection_n 28_o and_o what_o reward_n they_o shall_v have_v that_o leave_n all_o year_n or_o any_o part_n for_o his_o sake_n 31_o he_o foretell_v of_o his_o passion_n most_o particular_o 33_o and_o enter_v into_o jericho_n cure_v one_o blind_a man_n verse_n 1_o and_o he_o speak_v also_o a_o parable_n to_o they_o that_o it_o behove_v devotion_n always_o to_o pray_v &_o not_o to_o be_v weary_a â_o verse_n 2_o saying_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a judge_n in_o a_o certain_a city_n which_o fear_v not_o god_n and_o of_o man_n make_v no_o account_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a widow_n in_o that_o city_n and_o she_o come_v to_o he_o say_v revenge_v i_o of_o my_o adversary_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o he_o will_v not_o of_o a_o long_a time_n but_o afterward_o he_o say_v within_o himself_o although_o i_o fear_v not_o god_n nor_o make_v account_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 5_o yet_o because_o this_o widow_n be_v importune_v upon_o i_o i_o will_v revenge_v she_o lest_o at_o the_o last_o she_o come_v and_o defame_v i_o â_o verse_n 6_o and_o our_o lord_n say_v hear_v what_o the_o judge_n of_o iniquity_n say_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o will_v not_o god_n revenge_v his_o elect_a that_o cry_v to_o he_o day_n and_o night_n and_o will_v he_o have_v patience_n in_o they_o â_o verse_n 8_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o he_o will_v quick_o revenge_v they_o but_o yet_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v â³_o shall_v he_o find_v trow_v you_o faith_n in_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o he_o say_v also_o to_o certain_a that_o trust_v in_o themselves_o as_o just_a pentecost_n and_o despise_v other_o this_o parable_n â_o verse_n 10_o two_o man_n go_v up_o into_o the_o temple_n to_o pray_v the_o one_o a_o pharisee_fw-mi and_o the_o other_o a_o publican_n â_o verse_n 11_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi stand_v pray_v thus_o with_o himself_o god_n i_o give_v thou_o thanks_n that_o i_o be_o not_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o man_n extorcioner_n unjust_a advouterer_n as_o also_o this_o publican_n â_o verse_n 12_o good_a i_o fast_o twice_o in_o a_o week_n i_o give_v tithe_n of_o all_o that_o i_o possess_v â_o verse_n 13_o and_o the_o publican_n stand_v a_o far_o of_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n towards_o heaven_n but_o he_o 3._o knock_v his_o breast_n say_v god_n be_v merciful_a to_o i_o a_o sinner_n â_o verse_n 14_o i_o say_v to_o you_o this_o man_n go_v down_o into_o his_o house_n justify_v more_o than_o he_o because_o every_o one_o that_o exalt_v himself_o shall_v be_v humble_v and_o he_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 15_o *_o and_o they_o bring_v unto_o he_o infant_n also_o 13._o that_o he_o may_v touch_v they_o which_o thing_n when_o the_o disciple_n see_v they_o rebuke_v they_o â_o verse_n 16_o but_o jesus_n call_v they_o together_o say_v suffer_v child_n to_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o forbid_v they_o not_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v for_o such_o â_o verse_n 17_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o whosoever_o receive_v not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n parent_n as_o a_o child_n shall_v not_o enter_v into_o it_o â_o verse_n 18_o *_o and_o a_o certain_a prince_n ask_v he_o 17._o say_v good_a master_n by_o do_v what_o shall_v i_o possess_v everlasting_a life_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o why_o do_v thou_o call_v i_o good_a none_o be_v good_a but_o only_a god_n 13._o â_o verse_n 20_o thou_o know_a 16._o the_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v advoutrie_n thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_v thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v honour_v thy_o father_n and_o mother_n â_o verse_n 21_o who_o say_v all_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o keep_v from_o my_o youth_n â_o verse_n 22_o which_o jesus_n hear_v say_v to_o he_o yet_o one_o thing_n thou_o lack_v 19_o sel_n all_o that_o ever_o thou_o have_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o thou_o shall_v have_v treasure_n in_o heaven_n and_o come_v follow_v i_o â_o verse_n 23_o he_n hear_v
these_o thing_n be_v strike_v sad_a because_o he_o be_v very_o scotfree_a â_o verse_n 24_o and_o jesus_n see_v he_o strike_v sad_a say_v how_o hardly_o shall_v they_o that_o have_v money_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 25_o for_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n then_o for_o a_o scotfree_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 26_o and_o they_o that_o hear_v say_v and_o who_o can_v be_v save_v â_o verse_n 27_o he_o say_v to_o they_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v impossible_a with_o man_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n â_o verse_n 28_o and_o peter_n say_v loe_o we_o have_v leave_v all_o thing_n and_o have_v follow_v thou_o â_o verse_n 29_o who_o say_v to_o they_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v left_a house_n or_o parent_n or_o brethren_n or_o jovin_n wife_n or_o child_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 30_o and_o shall_v not_o receive_v much_o more_o in_o this_o time_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v sake_n life_n everlasting_a â_o verse_n 31_o *_o and_o jesus_n take_v the_o twelue_fw-mi 32._o and_o say_v to_o they_o behold_v we_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n quiquagesme_fw-fr and_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v consummate_v which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 32_o for_o he_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o shall_v be_v mock_v and_o scourge_v and_o spit_v upon_o â_o verse_n 33_o and_o after_o they_o have_v scourge_v he_o they_o will_v kill_v he_o and_o the_o three_o day_n he_o shall_v rise_v again_o â_o verse_n 34_o and_o they_o understand_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n and_o this_o word_n be_v hide_v from_o they_o and_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v say_v â_o verse_n 35_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o he_o draw_v nigh_o to_o jericho_n a_o certain_a blind_a man_n sit_v by_o the_o way_n beg_v â_o verse_n 36_o and_o when_o he_o hear_v the_o multitude_n pass_v by_o he_o ask_v what_o this_o shall_v be_v â_o verse_n 37_o and_o they_o tell_v he_o that_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n pass_v by_o â_o verse_n 38_o and_o he_o cry_v say_v jesus_n son_n of_o david_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o â_o verse_n 39_o and_o they_o that_o go_v before_o rebuke_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v hold_v his_o peace_n but_o he_o cry_v much_o more_o son_n of_o david_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o â_o verse_n 40_o and_o jesus_n stand_v command_v he_o to_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v near_o he_o ask_v he_o â_o verse_n 41_o saying_n what_o will_v thou_o that_o i_o do_v to_o thou_o but_o he_o say_v lord_n that_o i_o may_v see_v â_o verse_n 42_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o do_v thou_o see_v thy_o faith_n have_v make_v thou_o whole_a â_o verse_n 43_o and_o forthwith_o he_o see_v and_o follow_v he_o magnify_v god_n and_o all_o the_o people_n as_o they_o see_v it_o give_v praise_n to_o god_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n xviii_o 8._o shall_v he_o find_v faith_n faith_n the_o luciferian_o and_o donatist_n use_v this_o place_n to_o excuse_v their_o fall_n from_o the_o church_n as_o our_o adversary_n now_o do_v say_v that_o it_o be_v decay_v in_o faith_n when_o they_o forsake_v it_o to_o who_o we_o answer_v as_o s._n hierom_n and_o s._n augustin_n answer_v they_o ãâã_d that_o christ_n say_v not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o faith_n leave_v in_o earth_n but_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n the_o insinuate_v that_o at_o the_o late_a day_n in_o the_o great_a persecution_n of_o antichrist_n faith_n shall_v be_v more_o rare_a and_o the_o faithful_a among_o so_o many_o wicked_a not_o so_o notorious_a special_o that_o perfect_a faith_n contain_v devotion_n trust_n and_o affection_n towards_o god_n which_o our_o master_n so_o praise_v in_o certain_a upon_o who_o he_o wrought_v miracle_n and_o by_o force_n whereof_o mountain_n may_v be_v move_v which_o be_v rare_a even_o when_o the_o church_n flourish_v most_o chap._n xix_o in_o jeriche_n he_o lodge_v in_o the_o house_n of_o zachaus_fw-la a_o publican_n and_o against_o the_o murmur_a jew_n open_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o so_o do_v 11_o he_o show_v that_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v not_o be_v yet_o 15_o and_o whas_fw-ge then_o in_o the_o judgement_n he_o will_v do_v both_o to_o we_o of_o his_o church_n as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a 47_o and_o also_o to_o the_o reprobate_a jew_n 29_o be_v new_a come_v to_o the_o place_n of_o his_o passion_n he_o enter_v weep_v and_o foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o blind_a jerusalem_n which_o triumph_n as_o their_o christ_n 4â_n he_o show_v his_o zeal_n for_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o teach_v therein_o every_o day_n 47_o the_o ruler_n will_v destroy_v he_o but_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o people_n verse_n 1_o and_o enter_v in_o church_n he_o walk_v through_o jericho_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o behold_v a_o man_n name_v zachaeus_n and_o this_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o the_o publican_n and_o he_o scotfree_a â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o seek_v to_o see_v jesus_n what_o he_o be_v and_o he_o can_v not_o for_o the_o multitude_n because_o he_o be_v little_a of_o stature_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o run_v before_o he_o â³_o go_v up_o into_o a_o sycomore_n tree_n that_o he_o may_v see_v he_o because_o he_o be_v to_o pass_v by_o it_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o place_n jesus_n look_v up_o zachaeus_n see_v he_o and_o say_v to_o he_o zachaeus_n come_v down_o in_o haste_n because_o this_o day_n i_o must_v abide_v in_o thy_o house_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o he_o in_o haste_n come_v down_o and_o receive_v he_o rejoice_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o all_o see_v it_o they_o murmur_v say_v that_o he_o turn_v in_o to_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o sinner_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o zachaeus_n stand_v say_v to_o our_o lord_n behold_v the_o half_a of_o my_o good_n lord_n i_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o if_o i_o have_v defraud_v any_o man_n of_o any_o thing_n â³_o i_o restore_v fourfold_a â_o verse_n 9_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o that_o this_o day_n salvation_n be_v make_v to_o this_o house_n 12._o because_o that_o he_o also_o be_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 10_o *_o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v come_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o save_v that_o which_o be_v lose_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 11_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n he_o add_v and_o speak_v a_o parable_n for_o that_o he_o be_v nigh_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o because_o they_o think_v that_o forthwith_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v manifest_v â_o verse_n 12_o he_o say_v therefore_o 25._o *_o a_o certain_a noble_a man_n go_v into_o a_o far_a country_n to_o take_v to_o himself_o a_o kingdom_n 14._o and_o to_o return_v â_o verse_n 13_o and_o call_v his_o ten_o servant_n he_o give_v they_o ten_o pound_n and_o say_v to_o they_o occupie_n till_o i_o come_v â_o verse_n 14_o and_o his_o citizen_n hate_v he_o and_o they_o send_v a_o legacy_n after_o he_o say_v we_o will_v not_o have_v this_o man_n reign_n over_o us._n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o he_o return_v have_v receive_v his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o command_v his_o servant_n to_o be_v call_v to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o money_n that_o he_o may_v know_v how_o much_o every_o man_n have_v gain_v by_o occupy_v â_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o first_o come_v say_v lord_n thy_o pound_n have_v get_v ten_o pound_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o well_o fare_v thou_o good_a servant_n because_o thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o a_o little_a thou_o shall_v have_v power_n over_o everlasting_a ten_o city_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o second_o come_v say_v lord_n thy_o pound_n have_v make_v five_o pound_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o and_o be_v thou_o over_o five_o city_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o a_o other_o come_v say_v lord_n lo_o here_o thy_o pound_n which_o i_o have_v have_v lay_v up_o in_o a_o napkin_n â_o verse_n 21_o for_o i_o fear_v thou_o because_o thou_o be_v a_o austêre_fw-la man_n thou_o take_v up_o that_o thou_o do_v not_o set_v down_o and_o thou_o reape_v that_o which_o thou_o do_v not_o sow_o â_o verse_n 22_o he_o say_v to_o he_o by_o thy_o own_o mouth_n i_o judge_v thou_o naughty_a servant_n thou_o do_v know_v that_o i_o be_o a_o austere_a man_n take_v up_o that_o i_o set_v not_o down_o and_o reap_v that_o which_o i_o sow_v not_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o why_o do_v thou_o not_o give_v my_o money_n to_o the_o bank_n etc._n and_o i_o come_v may_v certes_o with_o usury_n have_v
to_o they_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o they_o be_v glad_a and_o bargain_v to_o give_v he_o money_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o he_o promise_v and_o he_o seek_v opportunity_n to_o betray_v he_o apart_o from_o the_o multitude_n â_o verse_n 7_o *_o and_o the_o day_n of_o the_o azyme_n come_v 12._o wherein_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o pasche_n shall_v be_v kill_v â_o verse_n 8_o and_o he_o send_v peter_n and_o john_n thursday_n say_v go_v and_o prepare_v we_o the_o pasche_n that_o we_o may_v eat_v â_o verse_n 9_o but_o they_o say_v where_o will_v thou_o that_o we_o prepare_v it_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o behold_v as_o you_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n there_o shall_v meet_v you_o a_o man_n carry_v a_o pitcher_n of_o water_n follow_v he_o into_o the_o house_n into_o which_o he_o enter_v â_o verse_n 11_o and_o you_o shall_v say_v to_o the_o good_a manof_n the_o house_n the_o master_n say_v to_o thou_o where_o be_v the_o inn_n where_o i_o may_v eat_v the_o pasche_n with_o my_o disciple_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o he_o will_v show_v you_o a_o great_a refectorie_n adorn_v and_o there_o prepare_v â_o verse_n 13_o and_o they_o go_v find_v as_o he_o say_v to_o they_o and_o prepare_v the_o pasche_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o when_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v he_o sit_v down_o and_o the_o twelue_v apostle_n with_o he_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o â³_o with_o desire_v i_o have_v desire_v to_o eat_v this_o pasche_n with_o you_o before_o i_o suffer_v â_o verse_n 16_o for_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o from_o this_o time_n i_o will_v not_o eat_v it_o till_o it_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o â³_o take_n the_o chalice_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o say_v take_v and_o divide_v among_o you_o â_o verse_n 18_o for_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o i_o will_v not_o drink_v of_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o vine_n till_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n do_v come_v â_o verse_n 19_o *_o and_o take_a bread_n 22._o he_o give_v thanks_n and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o they_o say_v â³_o this_o be_v my_o body_n â³_o which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o 24._o â³_o do_v this_o â³_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o â_o verse_n 20_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o chalice_n also_o after_o he_o have_v sup_v say_v place_n this_o be_v the_o chalice_n â³_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n â³_o which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o â_o verse_n 21_o *_o but_o yet_o behold_v 20._o the_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o betray_v i_o be_v with_o i_o on_o the_o table_n 18_o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n in_o deed_n go_v according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v determine_v but_o yet_o wo_n to_o that_o man_n by_o who_o he_o shall_v be_v betray_v â_o verse_n 23_o and_o they_o begin_v to_o question_v among_o themselves_o which_o of_o they_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o shall_v do_v this_o â_o verse_n 24_o *_o and_o there_o fall_v also_o a_o contention_n between_o they_o 25._o which_o of_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v great_a 42._o â_o verse_n 25_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n over-rule_v they_o and_o they_o that_o have_v power_n upon_o they_o be_v call_v beneficial_a â_o verse_n 26_o but_o you_o not_o so_o but_o he_o that_o be_v the_o great_a among_o you_o let_v he_o become_v as_o the_o young_a &_o he_o that_o be_v the_o leader_n as_o the_o waiter_n â_o verse_n 27_o for_o which_o be_v great_a he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n or_o he_o that_o minister_v be_v not_o he_o that_o sit_v but_o i_o be_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o you_o as_o he_o that_o minister_v â_o verse_n 28_o &_o you_o be_v they_o that_o have_v remain_v with_o i_o in_o my_o tentation_n â_o verse_n 29_o and_o i_o dispose_v to_o you_o as_o my_o father_n dispose_v to_o i_o a_o kingdom_n â_o verse_n 30_o that_o you_o may_v eat_v &_o drink_v upon_o my_o table_n in_o my_o kingdom_n &_o may_v sit_v supremacy_n upon_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelue_fw-mi tribe_n of_o israel_n â_o verse_n 31_o and_o our_o lord_n say_v â³_o simon_n simon_n behold_v satan_n have_v require_v to_o have_v you_o for_o to_o sift_v as_o wheat_v â_o verse_n 32_o but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o thou_o once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n â_o verse_n 33_o who_o say_v to_o he_o lord_n with_o thou_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o go_v both_o into_o prison_n and_o unto_o death_n 30._o â_o verse_n 34_o and_o he_o say_v *_o i_o say_n to_o thou_o peter_n the_o cock_n shall_v not_o crow_v to_o day_n till_o thou_o deny_v thrice_o that_o thou_o know_a i_o â_o verse_n 35_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o when_o i_o send_v you_o *_o without_o purse_n and_o skrippe_v and_o shoe_n 4._o do_v you_o lack_v any_o thing_n but_o they_o say_v nothing_o â_o verse_n 36_o he_o say_v therefore_o unto_o they_o but_o now_o he_o that_o have_v a_o purse_n let_v he_o take_v it_o likewise_o also_o a_o skrippe_n and_o he_o that_o have_v not_o let_v he_o sell_v his_o coat_n and_o buy_v a_o sword_n â_o verse_n 37_o for_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o yet_o this_o that_o be_v write_v must_v be_v fulfil_v in_o i_o 12_o and_o with_o the_o wicked_a be_v he_o repute_v for_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v concern_v i_o have_v a_o end_n â_o verse_n 38_o but_o they_o say_v lord_n loe_o two_o sword_n here_o but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o it_o be_v enough_o 32._o â_o verse_n 39_o *_o and_o go_v forth_o he_o go_v according_a to_o his_o custom_n into_o mount-olivet_a and_o his_o disciple_n also_o follow_v he_o night_n â_o verse_n 40_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o place_n 1_o he_o say_v to_o they_o pray_v lest_o you_o enter_v into_o tentation_n â_o verse_n 41_o and_o he_o be_v pull_v away_o from_o they_o a_o stone_n cast_v and_o kneel_v he_o pray_v â_o verse_n 42_o saying_n father_n if_o thou_o will_v transfer_v this_o chalice_n from_o i_o but_o yet_o not_o my_o will_v but_o thou_o be_v do_v â_o verse_n 43_o and_o there_o appear_v to_o he_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n strengthen_v he_o and_o be_v in_o a_o agony_n he_o pray_v the_o long_o â_o verse_n 44_o and_o his_o sweat_n become_v as_o drop_n of_o blood_n trikle_v down_o upon_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 45_o and_o when_o he_o be_v rise_v up_o from_o prayer_n and_o be_v come_v to_o his_o disciple_n he_o find_v they_o sleep_v for_o pensifenes_n â_o verse_n 46_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o why_o sleep_v you_o arise_v pray_v lest_o you_o enter_v into_o tentation_n â_o verse_n 47_o as_o he_o be_v yet_o speak_v behold_v a_o multitude_n and_o he_o that_o be_v call_v judas_n one_o of_o the_o twelue_fw-mi go_v before_o they_o and_o approach_v to_o jesus_n for_o to_o kiss_v he_o â_o verse_n 48_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o judas_n with_o a_o kiss_n do_v thou_o betray_v the_o son_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 49_o and_o they_o that_o be_v about_o he_o see_v what_o will_v be_v say_v to_o he_o lord_n shall_v we_o strike_v with_o the_o sword_n â_o verse_n 50_o and_o one_o of_o they_o smite_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o cut_v of_o his_o right_a ear_n â_o verse_n 51_o but_o jesus_n answer_v say_v suffer_v you_o thus_o far_o and_o when_o he_o have_v touch_v his_o ear_n he_o heal_v he_o â_o verse_n 52_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v come_v unto_o he_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o magistrate_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o ancient_n as_o it_o be_v to_o a_o thief_n be_v you_o come_v forth_o with_o sword_n and_o club_n â_o verse_n 53_o when_o i_o be_v daily_o with_o you_o in_o the_o temple_n you_o do_v not_o lay_v hand_n upon_o i_o but_o this_o be_v your_o hour_n and_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n â_o verse_n 54_o and_o apprehend_v he_o they_o lead_v he_o to_o the_o high_a priest_n house_n but_o peter_n follow_v a_o far_o of_o â_o verse_n 55_o and_o a_o fire_n be_v kindle_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o court_n &_o they_o sit_v about_o it_o peter_n be_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o they_o â_o verse_n 56_o who_o when_o a_o certain_a wench_n see_v sit_v at_o the_o light_n and_o have_v behold_v he_o she_o say_v this_o fellow_n also_o be_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 57_o but_o he_o deny_v he_o say_v woman_n i_o know_v he_o not_o â_o verse_n 58_o and_o after_o a_o while_o a_o other_o man_n see_v he_o say_v and_o thou_o be_v of_o they_o but_o peter_n say_v o_o man_n i_o be_o not_o â_o verse_n 59_o and_o after_o the_o space_n as_o it_o be_v of_o one_o hour_n a_o certain_a other_o man_n affirm_v
to_o release_v jesus_n â_o verse_n 21_o but_o they_o cry_v again_o say_v crucify_v crucify_v he_o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o he_o the_o three_o time_n say_v to_o they_o why_o what_o evil_a have_v this_o man_n do_v i_o find_v no_o cause_n of_o death_n in_o he_o i_o will_v correct_v he_o therefore_o and_o let_v he_o go_v â_o verse_n 23_o but_o they_o be_v instant_a with_o loud_a voice_n require_v that_o he_o may_v be_v crucify_v and_o their_o voice_n prevail_v â_o verse_n 24_o and_o pilate_n adjudge_v their_o petition_n to_o be_v do_v â_o verse_n 25_o and_o he_o release_v unto_o they_o he_o that_o for_o murder_n and_o sedition_n have_v be_v cast_v into_o prison_n who_o they_o demand_v but_o jesus_n he_o deliver_v to_o their_o pleasure_n â_o verse_n 26_o and_o when_o they_o lead_v he_o they_o take_v one_o simon_n of_o cyréne_a come_n from_o the_o country_n and_o they_o lay_v the_o cross_n upon_o he_o to_o carry_v after_o jesus_n â_o verse_n 27_o and_o there_o follow_v he_o a_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n and_o of_o woman_n which_o bewail_v and_o lament_v he_o â_o verse_n 28_o but_o jesus_n turn_v to_o they_o say_v daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n weep_v not_o upon_o i_o but_o weep_v upon_o yourselves_o and_o upon_o your_o child_n â_o verse_n 29_o for_o behold_v the_o day_n shall_v come_v wherein_o they_o will_v say_v bless_a be_v the_o barren_a and_o the_o womb_n that_o have_v not_o bear_v and_o the_o pap_n that_o have_v not_o give_v suck_v 8._o â_o verse_n 30_o then_o shall_v they_o begin_v to_o say_v to_o the_o mountain_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o to_o the_o hill_n cover_v us._n â_o verse_n 31_o for_o if_o in_o the_o green_a wood_n they_o do_v these_o thing_n in_o the_o dry_a what_o shall_v be_v do_v â_o verse_n 32_o and_o there_o be_v lead_v also_o other_o two_o malefactor_n with_o he_o to_o be_v execute_v â_o verse_n 33_o and_o after_o they_o come_v to_o the_o place_n which_o be_v call_v caluarie_n there_o they_o crucify_v he_o and_o the_o thief_n one_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o other_o on_o the_o left_a â_o verse_n 34_o and_o jesus_n say_v father_n forgive_v they_o for_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v but_o they_o devide_v his_o garment_n do_v cast_v lot_n â_o verse_n 35_o and_o the_o people_n stand_v behold_v expect_v '_o and_o the_o prince_n with_o they_o deride_v he_o say_v other_o he_o have_v save_v let_v he_o save_v himself_o if_o this_o be_v christ_n the_o elect_a of_o god_n â_o verse_n 36_o and_o the_o soldier_n also_o mock_v he_o come_v to_o he_o and_o offer_v he_o vinegar_n â_o verse_n 37_o saying_n if_o thou_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n save_v thyself_o â_o verse_n 38_o and_o there_o be_v also_o a_o superscription_n write_v over_o he_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a and_o hebrew_v letter_n this_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o one_o of_o those_o thief_n that_o be_v hang_v blaspheme_v he_o say_v if_o thou_o be_v christ_n save_v thyself_o and_o us._n â_o verse_n 40_o but_o the_o other_o answer_v rebuke_v he_o say_v neither_o do_v thou_o fear_v god_n where_o as_o thou_o be_v in_o the_o same_o damnation_n â_o verse_n 41_o and_o we_o in_o deed_n just_o for_o we_o receive_v worthy_a of_o our_o do_n but_o this_o man_n have_v do_v no_o evil_a â_o verse_n 42_o and_o he_o say_v to_o jesus_n lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o shall_v come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n â_o verse_n 43_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o this_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o â³_o in_o paradise_n â_o verse_n 44_o and_o it_o be_v almost_o the_o sixth_o hour_n and_o there_o be_v make_v darkness_n upon_o the_o whole_a earth_n until_o the_o ninthe_n hour_n â_o verse_n 45_o and_o the_o apollophanen_n sun_n be_v darken_v and_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v rend_v in_o the_o mid_n â_o verse_n 46_o and_o jesus_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n 6._o say_v father_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n and_o say_v this_o he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n â_o verse_n 47_o and_o the_o centurion_n see_v that_o which_o be_v do_v glorify_v god_n say_v in_o deed_n this_o man_n be_v just_a â_o verse_n 48_o and_o all_o the_o multitude_n of_o they_o that_o be_v present_a together_o at_o that_o sight_n and_o see_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v return_v knock_v their_o breast_n â_o verse_n 49_o and_o all_o his_o acquaintance_n stand_v a_o far_o of_o and_o the_o woman_n that_o have_v follow_v he_o from_o galilee_n see_v these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 50_o *_o and_o behold_v a_o man_n name_v joseph_n 43_o which_o be_v a_o senator_n a_o good_a man_n and_o a_o just_a â_o verse_n 51_o he_o have_v not_o consent_v to_o their_o counseil_fw-fr and_o do_n 38_o of_o arimathaea_n a_o city_n of_o jewrie_n who_o also_o himself_o expect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 52_o this_o man_n come_v to_o pilate_n and_o ask_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n â_o verse_n 53_o and_o take_v it_o down_o wrap_v it_o in_o sindon_n and_o lay_v he_o in_o a_o monument_n hew_v of_o stone_n â³_o wherein_o never_o yet_o any_o man_n have_v be_v lay_v â_o verse_n 54_o and_o it_o be_v the_o day_n of_o parasceve_fw-la and_o the_o sabbath_n draw_v near_o â_o verse_n 55_o and_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v come_v with_o he_o from_o galilee_n follow_a after_o â³_o see_v the_o monument_n and_o how_o his_o body_n be_v lay_v â_o verse_n 59_o and_o return_v they_o prepare_v spice_n and_o ointment_n and_o on_o the_o sabbath_n they_o rest_v according_a to_o the_o commandment_n annotation_n chap._n xxiii_o 34._o forgive_v they_o a_o perfect_v example_n of_o charity_n in_o our_o saviour_n pray_v for_o his_o crucifier_n which_o the_o first_o martyr_n s._n steven_n do_v follow_v act._n 7_o and_o the_o prayer_n of_o âoth_n be_v hear_v christ_n prayer_n take_v effect_n in_o the_o centurion_n and_o other_o steven_n in_o paul_n 43._o in_o paradise_n thou_o may_v not_o hereupon_o differre_fw-la thy_o conversion_n or_o amendment_n thief_n presume_v of_o grace_n at_o the_o last_o hour_n of_o thy_o life_n not_o look_v to_o have_v salvation_n by_o say_v and_o confession_n of_o christ_n without_o good_a work_n noâ_n to_o go_v straight_o to_o heaven_n without_o satisfaction_n penance_n or_o punishment_n for_o thy_o former_a sin_n and_o life_n il_fw-mi spend_v nor_o challenge_v security_n and_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o thy_o salvation_n for_o this_o good_a thief_n case_n be_v not_o common_a but_o a_o rare_a example_n of_o mercy_n and_o prerogative_n but_o for_o the_o first_o point_n learn_v only_o not_o to_o despair_v though_o thou_o have_v be_v ill_a to_o the_o last_o moment_n of_o thy_o life_n for_o the_o second_o that_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n repentance_n and_o good_a will_v be_v sufficient_a and_o good_a work_n not_o require_v satisfaction_n where_o for_o want_n of_o time_n and_o opportunity_n they_o can_v be_v have_v for_o the_o three_o that_o christ_n give_v to_o this_o happy_a man_n for_o his_o âelous_a confession_n of_o he_o and_o reprehend_v his_o fellow_n not_o only_a remission_n of_o his_o sin_n but_o also_o by_o extraordinary_a grace_n a_o pardon_n of_o all_o penance_n and_o satisfaction_n due_a either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o the_o next_o for_o the_o same_o even_o as_o the_o holy_a church_n by_o his_o examle_n and_o commission_n give_v pardon_n also_o to_o some_o of_o her_o zealous_a child_n of_o all_o punishment_n due_a for_o their_o offence_n and_o such_o go_v straight_o to_o heaven_n last_o that_o every_o one_o have_v not_o a_o revelation_n of_o his_o salvation_n as_o this_o man_n have_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v so_o sure_a as_o he_o be_v â3_n wherein_o never_n as_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o marie_n none_o be_v conceive_v before_o nor_o after_o he_o so_o in_o this_o monument_n none_o be_v lay_v before_o nor_o after_o he_o which_o prerogative_n no_o doubt_n be_v of_o god_n providence_n this_o joseph_n no_o less_o abstain_v afterward_o to_o be_v bury_v in_o it_o than_o the_o other_o joseph_n from_o copulation_n with_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n s._n augustine_n ââ_o see_v the_o monument_n these_o good_a woman_n of_o great_a devotion_n observe_v the_o sepulchre_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o holy_a body_n sepulcher_n whereupon_o the_o devotion_n of_o faithful_a folk_n watch_v and_o visit_v on_o good-friday_n and_o easter_n eve_o the_o sepulchre_n make_v in_o every_o church_n for_o memory_n of_o our_o lord_n burial_n be_v exceed_o good_a and_o godly_a special_o the_o b._n sacrament_n for_o more_o signification_n sake_n be_v present_a in_o the_o same_o sepulchre_n chap._n xxiiii_o devout_a woman_n not_o find_v his_o body_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n 4_o angel_n tell_v
flee_v flee_v every_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n be_v bind_v to_o abide_v with_o his_o flock_n in_o time_n of_o danger_n and_o persecution_n even_o to_o death_n except_o himself_o be_v personal_o seek_v for_o rather_o than_o the_o flock_n or_o the_o flock_n itself_o forsake_v he_o for_o in_o such_o case_n the_o pastor_n may_v flee_v as_o the_o apostle_n do_v and_o s._n athanasius_n and_o other_o s._n athan._n apol._n de_fw-la sva_fw-la fuââ_n august_n ep_v 100l_n 21._o the_o dedication_n machabaeus_n this_o be_v the_o feast_n of_o dedication_n institute_v by_o judas_n machabaeus_n li._n 1_o mach._n c._n 4._o christ_n vouchsafe_v to_o honouran_n keep_v that_o feast_n institute_v by_o he_o &_o our_o heretic_n vouchsafe_v not_o to_o pray_v and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a church_n 12._o use_v and_o approve_v by_o he_o the_o dedication_n also_o of_o christian_a church_n be_v warrant_v thereby_o with_o the_o annual_a memory_n thereof_o and_o it_o prove_v that_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v institute_v without_o any_o express_a commandment_n in_o scripture_n 2d_o that_o which_o he_o give_v i_o father_n thus_o read_v also_o diverse_a of_o the_o father_n namely_o s._n hilar._n trin._n li._n 7_o post_v medium_n s._n ambr._n de_fw-fr sp._n s._n li._n 3._o c._n 18._o s._n august_n in_o io._n tract_n 4â_n s._n cyril_n li._n 7_o in_o io_n c._n 10._o and_o use_v it_o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n have_v his_o essence_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o some_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n wicked_o accuse_v the_o council_n of_o lateran_n for_o falsify_v this_o place_n and_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n autotheisme_n which_o they_o less_o can_v abide_v for_o that_o it_o be_v against_o caluins_n autotheisme_n hold_v that_o christ_n take_v his_o person_n of_o the_o father_n but_o not_o his_o substance_n see_v the_o 2_o annot._n in_o 1_o io._n v._o 1._o chap._n xi_o he_o come_v once_o again_o into_o jewrie_n bold_o the_o time_n that_o he_o will_v be_v kill_v of_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v and_o raise_v lazarus_n four_a day_n bury_v 47._o at_o which_o miracle_n the_o blind_a malice_n of_o the_o ruler_n so_o increase_v that_o in_o council_n they_o conclude_v to_o make_v he_o away_o howbeit_o the_o high_a priest_n prophesi_v unaware_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o his_o death_n â4_n he_o thereupon_o go_v again_o out_o of_o the_o way_n verse_n 1_o and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a sick_a man_n lent_n lazarus_n of_o bethánia_n 37_o of_o the_o town_n of_o marie_n and_o martha_n her_o sister_n 3._o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o marie_n be_v she_o *_o that_o anoint_a our_o lord_n with_o ointment_n and_o wipe_v his_o foot_n with_o she_o hear_v who_o brother_n lazarus_n be_v sick_a â_o verse_n 3_o his_o sister_n therefore_o send_v to_o he_o say_v lord_n behold_v he_o who_o thou_o love_v be_v sick_a â_o verse_n 4_o and_o jesus_n hear_v say_v to_o they_o this_o sickness_n be_v not_o to_o death_n but_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v by_o it_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o jesus_n love_v martha_n and_o her_o sister_n marie_n and_o lazarus_n â_o verse_n 6_o as_o he_o hear_v therefore_o that_o he_o be_v sick_a than_o he_o tarry_v in_o the_o same_o place_n two_o day_n â_o verse_n 7_o then_o after_o this_o he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n let_v we_o go_v into_o jewrie_n again_o â_o verse_n 8_o the_o disciple_n say_v to_o he_o rabbi_n now_o the_o jew_n seek_v to_o stone_n thou_o and_o go_v thou_o thither_o again_o â_o verse_n 9_o jesus_n answer_v be_v there_o not_o twelue_fw-mi hour_n of_o the_o day_n if_o a_o man_n walk_v in_o the_o day_n he_o stumble_v not_o because_o he_o see_v the_o light_n of_o this_o world_n â_o verse_n 10_o but_o if_o he_o walk_v in_o the_o night_n he_o stumble_v because_o the_o light_n be_v not_o in_o he_o â_o verse_n 11_o these_o thing_n he_o say_v and_o after_o this_o he_o say_v to_o they_o lazarus_n our_o friend_n sleep_v but_o i_o go_v that_o i_o may_v raise_v he_o from_o sleep_n â_o verse_n 12_o his_o disciple_n therefore_o say_v lord_n if_o he_o sleep_v he_o shall_v be_v safe_a â_o verse_n 13_o but_o jesus_n speak_v of_o his_o death_n &_o they_o though_o that_o he_o speak_v somni_fw-la of_o the_o sleep_a of_o sleep_n â_o verse_n 14_o then_o therefore_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o plain_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a â_o verse_n 15_o and_o i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v because_o i_o be_v not_o there_o but_o let_v we_o go_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 16_o thomas_n therefore_o who_o be_v call_v didymus_n say_v to_o his_o condisciple_n let_v we_o also_o go_v to_o die_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 17_o jesus_n therefore_o come_v and_o find_v he_o now_o have_v be_v four_o day_n in_o the_o grave_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o bethánia_n be_v nigh_o to_o jerusalem_n about_o fiftene_o furlonge_v â_o verse_n 19_o and_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n be_v come_v to_o martha_n and_o marie_n to_o comfort_v they_o concern_v their_o brother_n â_o verse_n 20_o martha_n therefore_o when_o she_o hear_v that_o jesus_n be_v come_v go_v to_o meet_v he_o but_o marie_n sit_v at_o home_n deposition_n â_o verse_n 21_o martha_n therefore_o say_v to_o jesus_n lord_n if_o thou_o have_v be_v here_o my_o brother_n have_v not_o die_v â_o verse_n 22_o but_o now_o also_o i_o know_v that_o what_o thing_n soever_o thou_o shall_v ask_v of_o god_n god_n will_v give_v thou_o â_o verse_n 23_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o thy_o brother_n shall_v rise_v again_o â_o verse_n 24_o martha_n say_v to_o he_o i_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o in_o the_o resurrection_n in_o the_o last_o day_n â_o verse_n 25_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o although_o he_o be_v dead_a shall_v live_v â_o verse_n 26_o and_o every_o one_o that_o live_v and_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v not_o die_v for_o ever_o believe_v thou_o this_o â_o verse_n 27_o she_o say_v to_o he_o yea_o lord_n i_o have_v believe_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o be_v come_v into_o this_o world_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 28_o and_o when_o she_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n she_o go_v and_o call_v marie_n her_o sister_n secret_o say_v the_o master_n be_v come_v &_o call_v thou_o â_o verse_n 29_o she_o when_o she_o hear_v rise_v quick_o &_o come_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 30_o for_o jesus_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v into_o the_o town_n but_o he_o be_v yet_o in_o that_o place_n where_o martha_n have_v meet_v he_o â_o verse_n 31_o the_o jew_n therefore_o that_o be_v with_o she_o in_o the_o house_n and_o do_v comfort_v she_o when_o they_o see_v marie_n that_o she_o rise_v quick_o and_o go_v forth_o follow_v she_o say_v that_o she_o go_v to_o the_o grave_n to_o weep_v there_o â_o verse_n 32_o marie_n therefore_o when_o she_o be_v come_v where_o jesus_n be_v see_v he_o fall_v at_o his_o foot_n and_o say_v to_o he_o lord_n if_o thou_o have_v be_v here_o my_o brother_n have_v not_o die_v â_o verse_n 33_o jesus_n therefore_o when_o he_o see_v she_o weep_v and_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v come_v with_o she_o weep_v he_o groan_v in_o spirit_n and_o trouble_v himself_o â_o verse_n 34_o and_o say_v where_o have_v you_o lay_v he_o they_o say_v to_o he_o lord_n come_v and_o see_v â_o verse_n 35_o and_o jesus_n weep_v â_o verse_n 36_o the_o jew_n therefore_o say_v behold_v how_o he_o love_v he_o â_o verse_n 37_o but_o certain_a of_o they_o say_v can_v not_o he_o that_o *_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a man_n 6._o make_v that_o this_o man_n shall_v not_o die_v â_o verse_n 38_o jesus_n therefore_o again_o groan_v in_o himself_o come_v to_o the_o grave_n and_o it_o be_v a_o cave_n and_o a_o stone_n be_v lay_v over_o it_o â_o verse_n 39_o jesus_n say_v take_v away_o the_o stone_n martha_n the_o sister_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a say_v to_o he_o lord_n now_o he_o stink_v for_o he_o be_v now_o of_o four_o day_n â_o verse_n 40_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o do_v not_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o that_o if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 41_o they_o take_v therefore_o the_o stone_n away_o and_o jesus_n lift_v his_o eye_n upward_o say_v father_n i_o give_v thou_o thanks_n that_o thou_o have_v hear_v i_o â_o verse_n 42_o and_o i_o do_v know_v that_o thou_o do_v always_o hear_v i_o but_o for_o the_o people_n that_o stand_v about_o have_v i_o say_v it_o that_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o â_o verse_n 43_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n
his_o coat_n and_o his_o it_o coat_n be_v without_o seam_n wrought_v from_o the_o top_n through_o out_o â_o verse_n 24_o they_o say_v therefore_o one_o to_o a_o other_o let_v we_o not_o cut_v it_o but_o let_v we_o cast_v lot_n for_o it_o who_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v say_v 19_o they_o have_v part_v my_o garment_n among_o they_o and_o upon_o my_o vesture_n they_o have_v cast_v lot_n and_o the_o soldier_n do_v these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o there_o stand_v beside_o the_o cross_n of_o jesus_n whitsuntide_n he_o his_o mother_n and_o his_o mother_n sister_n marry_o of_o cléphas_n and_o marie_n magdalene_n â_o verse_n 26_o when_o jesus_n therefore_o have_v see_v his_o mother_n and_o the_o disciple_n stand_v who_o he_o love_v he_o say_v â³_o to_o his_o mother_n woman_n behold_v thy_o son_n â_o verse_n 27_o after_o that_o he_o say_v â³_o to_o the_o disciple_n behold_v thy_o mother_n and_o from_o that_o hour_n the_o disciple_n take_v she_o to_o his_o own_o â¢_o passion_n â_o verse_n 28_o afterwards_o jesus_n know_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v now_o consummate_a 22._o that_o the_o *_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v he_o say_v i_o thirst_v â_o verse_n 29_o a_o vessel_n therefore_o stand_v there_o full_a of_o vinegar_n and_o they_o put_v a_o spongeful_a of_o vinegar_n about_o hyssop_n offer_v it_o to_o his_o mouth_n â_o verse_n 30_o jesus_n therefore_o when_o he_o have_v take_v the_o vinegar_n say_v it_o be_v consummate_v and_o bow_v his_o head_n he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n â_o verse_n 31_o the_o jew_n therefore_o because_o it_o be_v the_o parasceve_fw-la that_o the_o body_n may_v not_o remain_v upon_o the_o cross_n on_o the_o sabbath_n for_o that_o be_v a_o great_a sabbath_n day_n they_o desire_v pilate_n that_o their_o leg_n may_v be_v break_v and_o they_o may_v be_v take_v away_o â_o verse_n 32_o the_o soldier_n therefore_o come_v and_o of_o the_o first_o in_o deed_n they_o break_v the_o leg_n and_o of_o the_o other_o that_o be_v crucify_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 33_o but_o after_o they_o be_v come_v to_o jesus_n when_o they_o see_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a they_o do_v not_o break_v his_o leg_n â_o verse_n 34_o but_o one_o of_o the_o soldier_n with_o a_o spear_n open_v his_o side_n and_o incontinent_a there_o come_v forth_o â³_o blood_n and_o water_n â_o verse_n 35_o and_o he_o that_o see_v it_o have_v give_v testimony_n and_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a â¢_o and_n he_o know_v that_o he_o say_v true_a that_o you_o also_o may_v believe_v 46._o â_o verse_n 36_o for_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v you_o shall_v not_o break_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o â_o verse_n 37_o and_o again_o a_o other_o scripture_n say_v 10._o they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o pierce_v â_o verse_n 38_o and_o after_o these_o thing_n 42._o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n because_o he_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n but_o secret_a for_o fear_v of_o the_o jew_n desire_v pilate_n that_o he_o may_v take_v away_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n 50._o and_o pilate_n permit_v he_o come_v therefore_o and_o take_v away_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n 50._o â_o verse_n 39_o *_o nicodemus_n also_o come_v he_o that_o at_o the_o first_o come_v to_o jesus_n by_o the_o night_n bring_v a_o mixture_n of_o myrrh_n and_o aâoés_n about_o a_o hundred_o pound_n â_o verse_n 40_o they_o take_v therefore_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n and_o bind_v it_o in_o linen_n clothes_n with_o the_o spice_n as_o the_o manner_n be_v with_o the_o jew_n to_o bury_v â_o verse_n 41_o and_o there_o be_v in_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_v a_o garden_n and_o in_o the_o garden_n a_o new_a monument_n wherein_o no_o man_n yet_o have_v be_v lay_v â_o verse_n 42_o there_o therefore_o because_o of_o the_o parasceve_fw-la of_o the_o jew_n they_o lay_v jesus_n because_o the_o monument_n be_v hard_o by_o annotation_n chap._n xix_o 15._o his_o own_o cross_n this_o cross_n for_o that_o it_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o altar_n of_o the_o supreme_a sacrifice_n cross_n high_o sanctify_v by_o the_o touch_n bear_v and_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v true_o call_v the_o holy_a cross_n and_o have_v be_v endue_v with_o virtue_n of_o miracle_n both_o the_o whole_a and_o every_o little_a piece_n thereof_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n and_o special_o for_o the_o most_o near_a memorial_n of_o christ_n passion_n it_o have_v be_v visit_v in_o pilgrimage_n honour_v by_o festival_n day_n and_o otherwise_o reserve_v &_o reverence_v of_o the_o ancient_a father_n with_o all_o devotion_n as_o contrariwise_o it_o have_v be_v abuse_v of_o pagan_n apostaraes_n and_o heretic_n seek_v in_o vain_a to_o deface_v and_o destroy_v it_o see_v s._n cyril_n li._n 6._o cont_n julian._n s._n hierom_n ep_v 17._o s._n paulinus_n ep_v 11._o ruffinus_n li._n 1._o c._n â_o &_o 8._o euagr._fw-la histo_fw-la li._n 4._o c._n 25._o s._n leo_n ep_n 72._o and_o ser._n â_o de_fw-fr passione_n paulus_n diac._n li._n 18._o 26._o to_o his_o mother_n rood_n the_o marvellous_a respect_n that_o christ_n have_v to_o his_o mother_n vouchsave_v to_o speak_v to_o she_o and_o to_o take_v order_n for_o she_o even_o from_o the_o cross_n in_o the_o mid_n of_o his_o infinite_a anguish_n and_o mystery_n a_o work_n for_o mankind_n 27._o to_o the_o disciple_n a_o great_a honour_n to_o john_n and_o charge_n to_o have_v that_o bless_a jewel_n in_o keep_v and_o a_o unspeakable_a comfort_n that_o from_o that_o day_n forward_o the_o one_o be_v to_o the_o other_o mother_n and_o son_n jovinian_a virginem_fw-la virgini_fw-la commendavit_fw-la say_v s._n hierom._n he_o commend_v the_o virgin_n to_o a_o virgin_n 34._o blood_n and_o water_n virtue_n this_o pierce_n of_o christ_n side_n though_o on_o the_o soldier_n part_v it_o be_v do_v blind_o and_o insolent_o yet_o by_o god_n ordinance_n it_o contain_v great_a mystery_n and_o be_v presigure_v by_o moses_n strike_v the_o rock_n with_o his_o rod_n 18._o as_o this_o stream_n of_o blood_n and_o water_n draw_v miraculous_o out_o of_o his_o dead_a body_n 30._o run_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o water_n of_o the_o same_o rock_n follow_v the_o israelite_n in_o the_o desert_n out_o of_o this_o side_n say_v s._n augustine_n issue_v the_o sacrament_n joan._n hence_o say_v s._n chrysostom_n the_o great_a mystery_n have_v their_o beginning_n who_o warn_v we_o that_o when_o we_o come_v to_o drink_v of_o the_o holy_a chalice_n we_o shall_v so_o approach_v joan._n as_o though_o we_o draw_v the_o blood_n out_o of_o christ_n side_n adam_n and_o both_o blood_n and_o water_n apart_o do_v flow_v forth_o to_o show_v we_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o two_o principal_a sacrament_n and_o their_o several_a matter_n baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n spring_v to_o life_n everlasting_a in_o the_o church_n the_o father_n also_o say_v that_o the_o church_n who_o be_v christ_n spouse_n and_o his_o coadiutrice_n in_o apply_v the_o blood_n and_o water_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v here_o form_v build_v and_o take_v out_o of_o this_o holy_a side_n of_o christ_n sleep_v on_o the_o cross_n 21._o as_o *_o eve_n be_v of_o adam_n side_n when_o he_o be_v cast_v a_o sleep_n in_o paradise_n chap._n xx._n upon_o easter_n day_n his_o body_n be_v miss_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n first_o by_o m._n magdalene_n 3_o second_o by_o peter_n also_o and_o john_n the_o wind_a clothes_n yet_o remain_v 11_o then_o to_o m._n magdalene_n after_o she_o have_v see_v two_o angel_n jesus_n also_o himself_o appear_v ãâã_d she_o have_v tell_v to_o the_o disciple_n he_o appear_v to_o they_o also_o the_o same_o day_n and_o send_v they_o as_o himself_o be_v send_v give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o remit_v and_o to_o retain_v sin_n 26_o again_o upon_o low_a sunday_n he_o appear_v to_o they_o let_v thomas_n see_v that_o he_o may_v believe_v and_o commend_v such_o as_o not_o see_v yet_o do_v believe_v 30_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o book_n verse_n 1_o and_o the_o 1._o first_o of_o the_o sabbath_n week_n marry_o magdalene_n come_v early_o day_n when_o it_o be_v yet_o dark_a 1_o unto_o the_o monument_n and_o she_o see_v the_o stone_n take_v away_o from_o the_o monument_n 1_o â_o verse_n 2_o she_o run_v therefore_o and_o come_v to_o simon_n peter_n 1_o and_o to_o the_o other_o disciple_n who_o jesus_n love_v and_o say_v to_o they_o they_o have_v take_v our_o lord_n out_o of_o the_o monument_n and_o we_o know_v not_o where_o they_o have_v lay_v he_o â_o verse_n 3_o peter_n therefore_o go_v forth_o and_o that_o other_o disciple_n
and_o they_o come_v to_o the_o monument_n 12._o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o both_o run_v together_o and_o that_o other_o disciple_n do_v outrun_v peter_n and_o come_v first_o to_o the_o monument_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o when_o he_o have_v stoop_v down_o he_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v but_o yet_o he_o go_v not_o in_o â_o verse_n 6_o simon_n peter_n therefore_o come_v follow_a he_o and_o go_v in_o to_o the_o monument_n and_o see_v the_o linen_n clothes_n lie_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o the_o napkin_n that_o have_v be_v upon_o his_o head_n not_o lie_v with_o the_o linen_n clothes_n but_o apart_o wrap_v up_o into_o one_o place_n â_o verse_n 8_o then_o therefore_o go_v in_o that_o other_o disciple_n also_o which_o come_v first_o to_o the_o monument_n and_o he_o see_v and_o believe_v â_o verse_n 9_o for_o as_o yet_o they_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o shall_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a â¢_o â_o verse_n 10_o the_o disciple_n therefore_o depart_v again_o to_o themselves_o â_o verse_n 11_o week_n but_o *_o marie_n stand_v at_o the_o christ_n monument_n without_o 1_o weep_v 5_o therefore_o as_o she_o be_v weep_v she_o stoop_v down_o &_o look_v into_o the_o monument_n 4._o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o she_o see_v two_o angel_n in_o white_a sit_v one_o at_o the_o head_n and_o one_o at_o the_o foot_n where_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n have_v be_v lay_v â_o verse_n 13_o they_o say_v to_o she_o woman_n why_o weep_v thou_o she_o say_v to_o they_o because_o they_o have_v take_v away_o my_o lord_n and_o i_o know_v not_o where_o they_o have_v put_v he_o â_o verse_n 14_o when_o she_o have_v say_v thus_o she_o turn_v backward_a and_o see_v jesus_n stand_v and_o she_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v jesus_n â_o verse_n 15_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o woman_n why_o weep_v thou_o who_o seek_v thou_o she_o think_v that_o it_o be_v the_o gardener_n say_v to_o he_o sir_n if_o thou_o have_v carry_v he_o away_o tell_v i_o where_o thou_o have_v lay_v he_o &_o i_o will_v take_v he_o away_o â_o verse_n 16_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o marry_o she_o turn_v say_v to_o he_o rabbóni_n which_o be_v to_o say_v master_n â_o verse_n 17_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o do_v not_o touch_v i_o for_o i_o be_o not_o yet_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n but_o go_v to_o my_o brethren_n and_o say_v to_o they_o i_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n my_o god_n and_o your_o god_n â_o verse_n 18_o marie_n magdalene_n come_v and_o tell_v the_o disciple_n that_o i_o have_v see_v our_o lord_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o sunday_n â¢_o verse_n 19_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v *_o late_o that_o day_n 36._o the_o first_o of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o â³_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v where_o the_o disciple_n be_v gather_v together_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o jew_n jesus_n come_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o mid_n 5._o and_o say_v to_o they_o peace_n be_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 20_o and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v this_o he_o show_v they_o his_o hand_n and_o side_n the_o disciple_n therefore_o be_v glad_a when_o they_o see_v our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 21_o he_o say_v therefore_o to_o they_o again_o again_o peace_n be_v to_o you_o â³_o as_o my_o father_n have_v send_v i_o i_o also_o do_v send_v you_o â_o verse_n 22_o when_o he_o have_v say_v this_o â³_o he_o breathe_v upon_o they_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 23_o â³_o whose_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v 21._o â_o verse_n 24_o but_o thomas_n one_o of_o the_o twelue_fw-mi who_o be_v call_v didymus_n be_v not_o with_o they_o when_o jesus_n come_v â_o verse_n 25_o the_o other_o disciple_n therefore_o say_v to_o he_o we_o have_v see_v our_o lord_n but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o unless_o i_o see_v in_o his_o hand_n the_o print_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o put_v my_o finger_n into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o nail_n and_o put_v my_o hand_n into_o his_o side_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v â_o verse_n 26_o and_o after_o eight_o day_n sunday_n again_o his_o disciple_n be_v within_o and_o thomas_n with_o they_o jesus_n come_v chapter_n the_o door_n be_v shut_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o mid_n and_o say_v peace_n be_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 27_o then_o he_o say_v to_o thomas_n put_v in_o thy_o finger_n hither_o and_o see_v my_o hand_n and_o bring_v hither_o thy_o hand_n and_o put_v it_o into_o my_o side_n &_o be_v not_o incredulous_a but_o faithful_a â_o verse_n 28_o thomas_n answer_v &_o say_v to_o he_o my_o lord_n &_o my_o god_n â_o verse_n 29_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o because_o thou_o have_v see_v i_o thomas_n thou_o have_v believe_v believe_v bless_v be_v they_o that_o have_v not_o see_v &_o have_v believe_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 30_o *_o many_o other_o sign_n also_o do_v jesus_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o disciple_n 25_o which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o this_o book_n â_o verse_n 31_o and_o these_o be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n xx._n 19_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v such_o heretic_n as_o deny_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v or_o that_o it_o can_v be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n for_o that_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o can_v not_o be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o nor_o without_o the_o natural_a manner_n of_o the_o quantity_n scripture_n space_n or_o place_n agreeable_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o humanity_n be_v invincible_a refute_v by_o christ_n enter_v into_o the_o disciple_n the_o door_n shut_v and_o by_o that_o that_o his_o true_a natural_a body_n whole_a and_o perfect_a in_o all_o his_o limb_n length_n breadth_n and_o thickness_n distincte_n and_o diverse_a from_o the_o substance_n and_o corpulence_n of_o the_o wood_n be_v in_o the_o same_o proper_a place_n that_o the_o wood_n be_v in_o and_o pass_v through_o the_o same_o as_o he_o also_o come_v out_o of_o his_o mother_n womb_n the_o clausure_n not_o stir_v and_o pass_v through_o the_o stone_n out_o of_o his_o sepulchre_n by_o all_o which_o the_o heretic_n be_v plain_o reprove_v and_o convince_v of_o infidelity_n they_o bold_o deny_v the_o plain_a scripture_n or_o so_o fond_o shift_v themselves_o from_o the_o evidence_n thereof_o that_o their_o impudency_n be_v special_o to_o be_v mark_v in_o this_o point_n some_o say_v scripture_n that_o he_o come_v in_o at_o the_o window_n some_o that_o the_o door_n open_v of_o itself_o to_o let_v he_o in_o some_o that_o to_o come_v in_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v signify_v no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o come_v in_o late_a in_o the_o evening_n at_o what_o time_n man_n use_v to_o shut_v their_o door_n and_o such_o other_o flight_n to_o defend_v falsehood_n against_o ââpresse_a scripture_n and_o against_o the_o apostle_n testimony_n who_o therefore_o take_v he_o to_o be_v a_o spirit_n because_o they_o see_v he_o stand_v sudden_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o they_o all_o the_o house_n be_v close_o shut_v and_o the_o father_n all_o confess_v that_o he_o go_v in_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v see_v s._n ambrose_n li._n 10_o in_o lucam_n c._n â4_n s._n augustine_n ep_v â_o ad_fw-la volusiân_n &_o li._n 22_o the_o civet_n c._n 8_o &_o s._n cyril_n in_o io._n li._n 12_o c._n 53_o &_o s._n hiero._n li._n 1_o count_n jovinâanum_fw-la c._n 21._o we_o know_v it_o be_v the_o natural_a course_n odd_a god_n ordinance_n that_o every_o body_n shall_v have_v but_o one_o and_o his_o own_o proper_a place_n fit_v to_o the_o lineament_n quantity_n term_n and_o limit_n of_o the_o same_o 37._o without_o which_o natural_o the_o body_n be_v not_o where_o nature_n and_o consequent_o not_o at_o all_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v ad_fw-la dardanum_n but_o that_o god_n supernatural_o and_o miraculous_o can_v not_o by_o his_o omnipotency_n dispose_v otherwise_o of_o his_o own_o body_n than_o the_o natural_a form_n or_o quantity_n or_o quality_n thereof_o require_v 19_o that_o be_v great_a incredulity_n see_v we_o must_v believe_v that_o he_o can_v do_v so_o with_o any_o other_o body_n of_o mere_a man_n or_o other_o creature_n dei_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a that_o he_o can_v make_v a_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n continue_v in_o his_o natural_a figure_n and_o quantity_n still_o and_o s._n augustine_n tell_v of_o a_o woman_n who_o ring_n fall_v from_o her_o girdle_n both_o be_v fast_o and_o whole_a and_o rupertus_n of_o a_o religious_a man_n who_o girdle_n fast_o buckle_v fall_v down_o before_o he_o from_o his_o body_n de_fw-fr off_z eccl._n therefore_o it_o be_v to_o
shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v in_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n the_o earthly_a prince_n in_o deed_n have_v also_o power_n to_o bind_v but_o the_o body_n only_o but_o that_o bond_n of_o priest_n which_o i_o speak_v of_o touch_v the_o very_a soul_n be_v self_n and_o reach_v even_o to_o the_o heaven_n in_o so_o much_o that_o whatsoever_v the_o priest_n shall_v do_v beneath_o the_o self_n same_o god_n do_v ratify_v above_o and_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o servant_n the_o lord_n do_v confirm_v for_o in_o deed_n what_o else_o be_v this_o then_o that_o the_o power_n of_o all_o heavenly_a thing_n be_v grant_v they_o of_o god_n who_o sin_n so_o ever_o say_v he_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v what_o power_n i_o beseech_v you_o can_v be_v great_a than_o this_o one_o the_o father_n give_v all_o power_n to_o the_o son_n but_o i_o see_v the_o same_o power_n altogether_o deliver_v by_o the_o son_n unto_o they_o and_o as_o this_o concern_v the_o priest_n high_a authority_n to_o absolve_v so_o thereupon_o concern_v confession_n also_o to_o be_v make_v unto_o they_o the_o ancient_a father_n speak_v in_o this_o sort_n s._n cyprian_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la nu_fw-la 11._o they_o say_v he_o that_o have_v great_a faith_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n though_o they_o do_v not_o fall_v in_o persecution_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v only_o think_v it_o in_o their_o mind_n this_o very_a cogitation_n they_o confess_v to_o god_n priest_n sorrowful_o and_o plain_o priest_n open_v their_o conscience_n utter_v and_o discharge_v the_o burden_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o seek_v wholesome_a medicine_n for_o their_o wound_n though_o but_o small_a and_o little_a and_o a_o little_a after_o let_v every_o one_o my_o brethren_n i_o beseech_v you_o confess_v his_o sin_n while_o he_o be_v yet_o alive_a while_o his_o confession_n may_v be_v admit_v while_o satisfaction_n and_o remission_n make_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v acceptable_a before_o god_n s._n cyril_n or_o as_o some_o think_v origen_n li._n 2_o in_o levit._n call_v it_o a_o great_a part_n of_o penance_n when_o a_o man_n be_v ashamed_a and_o yet_o open_v his_o sin_n to_o our_o lord_n priest_n see_v also_o tertul._n li._n de_fw-la poenit._fw-la s._n hiero._n in_o c._n 10_o ecclesiastae_fw-la s._n basil_n in_o regulis_fw-la brâu_fw-la quaest_a 229._o who_o compare_v sinner_n that_o refuse_v to_o confess_v to_o they_o that_o have_v some_o disease_n in_o their_o secret_a part_n and_o be_v ashamed_a to_o show_v it_o to_o the_o physician_n or_o surgeon_n that_o may_v cure_v it_o where_o they_o must_v needs_o mean_v secret_a confession_n to_o be_v make_v to_o they_o that_o may_v absolve_v and_o s._n leo_n ep_n 80_o most_o plain_o as_o before_o s._n cyril_n express_o name_v priest_n confession_n that_o confession_n be_v sufficient_a which_o be_v make_v first_o to_o god_n then_o to_o the_o priest_n also_o and_o again_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o guiltiness_n of_o man_n conscience_n be_v utter_v to_o the_o priest_n only_o by_o the_o secrecy_n of_o confession_n s._n hierome_n in_o 16_o mat._n say_v that_o priest_n loose_a or_o bind_v audita_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la varietate_fw-la have_v hear_v the_o variety_n and_o difference_n of_o sin_n s._n paulinus_n write_v of_o s._n ambrose_n finen_n that_o as_o often_o as_o any_o confess_v his_o sin_n unto_o he_o for_o too_o receive_v penance_n he_o so_o weep_v for_o compassion_n that_o thereby_o he_o cause_v the_o penitent_a to_o weep_v also_o he_o add_v moreover_o that_o this_o holy_a doctor_n be_v so_o secret_a in_o this_o case_n that_o no_o man_n know_v the_o sin_n confess_v but_o god_n and_o himself_o and_o s._n augustine_n ho._n 49_o de_fw-la 50_o homilijs_fw-la to_o 10._o say_v thus_o do_v penance_n such_o as_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n 18._o let_v no_o man_n say_v i_o do_v it_o secret_o i_o do_v it_o to_o god_n in_o vain_a than_o be_v it_o say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v in_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n see_v s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la through_o out_o s._n cyprian_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la the_o book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la panit_fw-la in_o s._n augustine_n beside_o all_o antiquity_n which_o be_v full_a of_o these_o speech_n concern_v absolution_n and_o confession_n chap._n xxi_o appear_v again_o in_o galilee_n where_o peter_n be_v fish_v with_o his_o fellow_n and_o cause_v they_o after_o they_o have_v all_o night_n take_v none_o to_o catch_v a_o great_a multitude_n which_o peter_n draw_v to_o land_n where_o he_o also_o dine_v they_o 15_o he_o express_v what_o this_o fish_n signify_v make_v peter_n his_o vicar_n commit_v unto_o he_o the_o feed_n of_o his_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n 18_o and_o reveal_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o also_o shall_v be_v crucify_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 20_o admonish_v he_o to_o mind_n that_o rather_o than_o to_o be_v curious_a about_o johns_n death_n verse_n 1_o after_o jesus_n manifest_v himself_o again_o at_o the_o sea_n of_o tibérias_n week_n and_o he_o manifest_v thus_o â_o verse_n 2_o there_o be_v together_o simon_n peter_n and_o thomas_n who_o be_v call_v didymus_n and_o nathanael_n which_o be_v of_o cana_n in_o galilee_n and_o the_o son_n of_o zebedee_n and_o two_o other_o of_o his_o disciple_n â_o verse_n 3_o simon_n peter_n say_v to_o they_o i_o go_v to_o fish_n they_o say_v to_o he_o we_o also_o come_v with_o thou_o and_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o get_v up_o into_o the_o boat_n and_o that_o night_n they_o take_v nothing_o â_o verse_n 4_o but_o when_o morning_n be_v now_o come_v jesus_n stand_v on_o the_o shore_n yet_o the_o disciple_n know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v jesus_n â_o verse_n 5_o jesus_n therefore_o say_v to_o they_o child_n have_v you_o any_o meat_n they_o answer_v he_o no._n â_o verse_n 6_o he_o say_v to_o they_o cast_v the_o net_n on_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o boat_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v they_o therefore_o do_v cast_v it_o and_o now_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o draw_v it_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o fish_n â_o verse_n 7_o that_o disciple_n therefore_o who_o jesus_n love_v say_v to_o peter_n it_o be_v our_o lord_n signify_v simon_n peter_n when_o he_o have_v hear_v that_o it_o be_v our_o lord_n gird_v his_o coat_n unto_o he_o for_o he_o be_v naked_a and_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o sea_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o the_o other_o disciple_n come_v in_o the_o boat_n for_o they_o be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o land_n but_o as_o it_o be_v two_o hundred_o cubit_n draw_v the_o net_n of_o fish_n â_o verse_n 9_o therefore_o after_o they_o come_v down_o to_o land_n they_o see_v hot_a coal_n lie_v and_o fish_n lay_v thereon_o and_o bread_n â_o verse_n 10_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o bring_v hither_o of_o the_o fish_n that_o you_o take_v now_o â_o verse_n 11_o simon_n peter_n go_v up_o and_o draw_v the_o net_n to_o the_o land_n full_a of_o great_a fish_n a_o hundred_o fifty_o three_o and_o although_o they_o be_v so_o many_o the_o net_n be_v not_o break_v â_o verse_n 12_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o come_v dine_v and_o none_o of_o disciple_n they_o that_o sit_v at_o meat_n '_o dare_v ask_v he_o who_o be_v thou_o know_v that_o it_o be_v our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o jesus_n come_v and_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o give_v they_o and_o the_o fish_n in_o like_a manner_n â_o verse_n 14_o this_o now_o the_o day_n three_o time_n jesus_n be_v manifest_v to_o his_o disciple_n after_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a â¢_o â_o verse_n 15_o therefore_o when_o they_o have_v dine_v jesus_n say_v to_o simon_n peter_n paul_n simon_n of_o john_n love_v thou_o i_o more_o than_o these_o he_o say_v to_o he_o yea_o lord_n thou_o know_a that_o i_o love_v thou_o he_o say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o lamb_n â_o verse_n 16_o he_o say_v to_o he_o again_o simon_n of_o john_n love_v thou_o i_o he_o say_v to_o he_o yea_o lord_n thou_o know_a that_o i_o love_v thou_o he_o say_v to_o he_o rule_n feed_v my_o lamb_n â_o verse_n 17_o he_o say_v to_o he_o the_o three_o time_n simon_n of_o john_n love_v thou_o i_o peter_n be_v strike_v sad_a because_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o the_o three_o time_n love_v thou_o i_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o lord_n thou_o know_a all_o thing_n thou_o know_a that_o i_o love_v thou_o he_o say_v to_o he_o â³_o feed_v my_o sheep_n â_o verse_n 18_o amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o when_o thou_o be_v young_a thou_o do_v gird_v thyself_o and_o do_v walk_v where_o thou_o will_v but_o when_o thou_o shall_v be_v old_a thou_o shall_v stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n and_o â³_o a_o other_o shall_v gird_v thou_o and_o lead_v thou_o whither_o thou_o will_v not_o
such_o grace_n and_o mercy_n as_o also_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o show_v how_o ready_o the_o gentile_n in_o so_o many_o nation_n 19_o be_v convert_v by_o one_o apostle_n only_o who_o from_o jerusalem_n even_o to_o illyâicum_n replenish_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o part_n of_o the_o work_n so_o make_v by_o s._n peter_n with_o the_o rest_n 9_o do_v s._n paul_n himself_o touch_v that_o we_o unto_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o unto_o the_o circuncision_n nevertheless_o before_o his_o come_n to_o rome_n not_o only_o be_v the_o church_n come_v to_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a act._n the_o last_o chap._n there_o plant_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o other_o as_o likewise_o by_o s._n peter_n it_o be_v plant_v in_o the_o first_o gentile_n before_o that_o s._n paul_n begin_v the_o take_n of_o it_o away_o from_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o translate_n of_o it_o to_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o gentile_n but_o also_o so_o not_o able_a be_v the_o same_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o s._n paul_n writing_n his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 8._o before_o he_o come_v thither_o say_v your_o faith_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o they_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v that_o nation_n whereof_o christ_n tell_v the_o jew_n 43._o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o you_o &_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o a_o nation_n yield_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o as_o before_o we_o note_v the_o gospel_n as_o they_o be_v read_v both_o at_o matin_n and_o mass_n through_o out_o the_o year_n in_o their_o convenient_a time_n and_o place_n so_o the_o book_n follow_a as_o also_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v read_v in_o the_o say_a service_n of_o the_o church_n for_o epistle_n and_o lesson_n in_o their_o time_n &_o place_n as_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v note_v in_o every_o of_o they_o see_v the_o very_a same_o order_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o s._n ambrose_n ep_v 33._o s._n augustine_n serm._n de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la 139_o 140_o 141_o 144._o s._n leo_n ser._n 2_o &_o 4_o the_o quadrag_n &_o ser._n 13_o &_o 19_o the_o pass_n domini_fw-la s._n gregory_n in_o his_o 40_o homily_n upon_o the_o gospel_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 10._o chap._n i._n part_n christ_n now_o ready_a to_o ascend_v church_n bid_v the_o apostle_n to_o expect_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v foretell_v where_o be_v strengthen_v by_o he_o they_o shall_v begin_v his_o church_n and_o how_o far_o they_o shall_v carry_v it_o 9_o after_o his_o ascension_n they_o be_v warn_v by_o two_o angel_n to_o set_v their_o mind_n upon_o his_o second_o come_v 14_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o expectation_n 15_o peter_n begin_v to_o execute_v his_o vicarship_n give_v instruction_n and_o order_n by_o which_o mathias_n be_v elect_v apostle_n in_o the_o place_n of_o judas_n verse_n 1_o the_o *_o first_o treatise_n i_o make_v of_o thing_n all_o thing_n 3._o o_o theophilus_n day_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o to_o teach_v â_o verse_n two_o until_o the_o day_n wherein_o â³_o give_v commandment_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o apostle_n who_o he_o choose_v he_o be_v assumpt_v â_o verse_n 3_o to_o whon_n he_o show_v also_o himself_o alive_a after_o his_o passion_n in_o many_o argument_n for_o forty_o day_n appear_v to_o they_o &_o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o eat_v with_o they_o 49._o *_o he_o command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n but_o shall_v expect_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n 26._o which_o you_o *_o have_v hear_v say_v he_o by_o my_o mouth_n â_o verse_n 5_o for_o john_n in_o deed_n baptize_v with_o ghost_n water_n but_o *_o you_o shall_v be_v baptism_n baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o these_o few_o day_n 16._o â_o â_o verse_n 6_o they_o therefore_o that_o be_v assemble_v ask_v he_o say_v lord_n whether_o at_o this_o time_n will_v thou_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n to_o israel_n â_o verse_n 7_o but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o â³_o it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o to_o know_v time_n or_o moment_n which_o the_o father_n have_v put_v in_o his_o own_o power_n 1._o â_o verse_n 8_o but_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o *_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o all_o jewrie_n and_o samaria_n and_o even_o to_o the_o utmost_a of_o the_o earth_n 51._o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o *_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n in_o their_o sight_n he_o be_v elevate_v and_o a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o when_o they_o behold_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n behold_v two_o man_n stand_v beside_o they_o in_o white_a garment_n â_o verse_n 11_o who_o also_o say_v you_o man_n of_o galilee_n why_o stand_v you_o look_v into_o heaven_n this_o jesus_n which_o be_v â³_o assumpt_v from_o you_o into_o heaven_n shall_v so_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 12_o then_o they_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o mount_n that_o be_v call_v olivet_n which_o be_v by_o jerusalem_n distant_a a_o sabbath_n journey_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o when_o they_o be_v enter_v in_o they_o go_v up_o into_o a_o upper_a chamber_n where_o abode_n society_n peter_n &_o john_n james_n and_o andrew_n philippe_n and_o thomas_n bartholomew_n and_o matthew_n james_n of_o alphaeus_n and_o simon_n zelóte_v and_o jude_n of_o james._n â_o verse_n 14_o al_n these_o be_v perseuér_v with_o one_o mind_n in_o prayer_n with_o the_o 1579._o woman_n and_o â³_o marry_o the_o mother_n of_o jesus_n and_o his_o brethren_n â_o verse_n 15_o â4_n in_o those_o day_n â³_o peter_n rise_v up_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o brethren_n say_v and_o the_o multitude_n of_o person_n together_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o â_o verse_n 16_o you_o man_n brethren_n *_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v fulfil_v which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v before_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o david_n concern_v judas_n 9_o who_o be_v the_o *_o captain_n of_o they_o that_o apprehend_v jesus_n 18_o â_o verse_n 17_o who_o be_v number_v among_o we_o and_o obtain_v the_o lot_n of_o this_o ministry_n 3._o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o he_o in_o deed_n have_v possess_v a_o *_o field_n of_o the_o reward_n of_o iniquity_n 7._o and_o be_v hang_v he_o burst_v in_o the_o mid_n and_o all_o his_o bowel_n gush_v out_o â_o verse_n 19_o and_o it_o be_v make_v notorious_a to_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o that_o the_o same_o field_n be_v call_v in_o their_o tongue_n hacel-dema_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o field_n of_o blood_n â_o verse_n 20_o for_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o psalm_n 26._o be_v their_o habitation_n make_v desert_n and_o be_v there_o none_o to_o dwell_n in_o it_o and_o his_o bishopric_n let_v another_o take_v 8._o â_o verse_n 21_o therefore_o of_o these_o man_n that_o have_v assemble_v with_o we_o all_o the_o time_n that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n go_v in_o and_o go_v out_o among_o we_o â_o verse_n 22_o beginning_n from_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n until_o the_o day_n wherein_o he_o be_v assumpt_v from_o we_o again_o there_o must_v one_o of_o these_o be_v make_v a_o witness_v with_o we_o of_o his_o resurrection_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o they_o appoint_v two_o joseph_n who_o be_v call_v barsabas_n who_o be_v surname_v justus_n and_o mathias_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o pray_v they_o say_v thou_o lord_n that_o know_a the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n show_v of_o these_o two_o one_o who_o thou_o have_v choose_v â_o verse_n 25_o to_o take_v the_o place_n of_o this_o ministry_n and_o apostleship_n from_o the_o which_o judas_n have_v prevaricate_v that_o he_o may_v go_v to_o his_o own_o place_n â_o verse_n 26_o and_o they_o give_v they_o â³_o lot_n and_o the_o lot_n fall_v upon_o mathias_n and_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n 1._o 2._o give_v commandment_n he_o mean_v the_o power_n give_v they_o to_o preach_v to_o baptize_v to_o remit_v sin_n and_o general_o the_o whole_a commission_n and_o charge_n of_o government_n of_o the_o church_n after_o he_o and_o in_o his_o name_n steed_n and_o right_o the_o which_o regiment_n be_v give_v they_o together_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o assist_v they_o therein_o for_o ever_o 7._o it_o be_v not_o for_o you_o us._n it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o nor_o needful_a for_o the_o church_n to_o know_v the_o time_n &_o moment_n of_o the_o world_n the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n and_o such_o other_o god_n secret_n this_o be_v enough_o in_o that_o
of_o new_a wine_n â_o verse_n 14_o whitsonweeke_n but_o sermon_n peter_n stand_v with_o the_o eleven_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n and_o speak_v to_o they_o you_o man_n jew_n and_o all_o you_o that_o dwell_n in_o jerusalem_n be_v this_o know_v to_o you_o and_o with_o your_o ear_n receive_v my_o word_n â_o verse_n 15_o for_o these_o be_v not_o drink_v as_o you_o suppose_v whereas_o it_o be_v the_o three_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n â_o verse_n 16_o but_o this_o be_v it_o that_o be_v say_v by_o the_o prophet_n joël_n 28._o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n say_v our_o lord_n of_o my_o spirit_n i_o will_v power_n out_o upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o your_o son_n and_o your_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v and_o your_o young_a man_n shall_v see_v vision_n and_o your_o ancient_n shall_v dream_v dream_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o upon_o my_o servant_n true_o and_o upon_o my_o handmaid_n will_v i_o power_n out_o in_o those_o day_n of_o my_o spirit_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v â_o verse_n 19_o and_o i_o will_v give_v wonder_v in_o the_o heaven_n above_o and_o sign_n in_o the_o earth_n beneath_o blood_n and_o fire_n and_o vapour_n of_o smoke_n â_o verse_n 20_o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o darkness_n and_o the_o moon_n into_o blood_n before_o the_o great_a and_o manifest_a day_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v come_v â_o verse_n 21_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v every_o one_o whosoever_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 22_o you_o man_n of_o israël_n hear_v these_o word_n jesus_n of_o nazareth_n a_o man_n approve_v of_o god_n among_o you_o by_o miracle_n and_o wonder_v and_o sign_n which_o god_n do_v by_o he_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o you_o as_o you_o know_v â_o verse_n 23_o this_o same_o â³_o by_o the_o determinate_a counsel_n and_o prescience_n of_o god_n be_v deliver_v you_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o wicked_a man_n have_v crucify_v and_o slay_v â_o verse_n 24_o who_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o â³_o lose_v the_o sorrow_n of_o hell_n according_a as_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v of_o it_o â_o verse_n 25_o for_o david_n say_v concern_v he_o 8._o i_o foresee_v the_o lord_n in_o my_o sight_n always_o because_o he_o be_v at_o my_o right_a hand_n that_o i_o be_v not_o move_v â_o verse_n 26_o for_o this_o my_o hart_n have_v be_v glad_a and_o my_o tongue_n have_v rejoice_v moreover_o my_o flesh_n also_o shall_v rest_v in_o hope_n â_o verse_n 27_o because_o thou_o will_v not_o leave_v â³_o my_o soul_n 99_o in_o hell_n nor_o give_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v grave_n corruption_n â_o verse_n 28_o thou_o have_v make_v know_v to_o i_o the_o way_n of_o life_n thou_o shall_v make_v i_o full_o of_o joyfulness_n with_o thy_o face_n â_o verse_n 29_o you_o man_n brethren_n let_v i_o bold_o speak_v to_o you_o of_o the_o patriarch_n david_n 10._o that_o *_o he_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o his_o sepulchre_n be_v with_o we_o until_o this_o present_a day_n â_o verse_n 30_o whereas_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n 11._o and_o know_v that_o by_o a_o oath_n god_n have_v swear_v to_o he_o that_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o loin_n there_o shall_v sit_v upon_o his_o seat_n â_o verse_n 31_o forseeing_a he_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n for_o neither_o be_v he_o leave_v in_o hell_n neither_o do_v his_o flesh_n see_v corruption_n â_o verse_n 32_o this_o jesus_n have_v god_n raise_v again_o whereof_o all_o we_o be_v witness_n â_o verse_n 33_o be_v exalt_v therefore_o by_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o have_v receive_v of_o his_o father_n the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v pour_v out_o 1_o this_o who_o '_o you_o see_v and_o hear_v â_o verse_n 34_o for_o david_n ascend_v not_o into_o heaven_n but_o he_o say_v our_o lord_n have_v say_v to_o my_o lord_n sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n â_o verse_n 35_o until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n the_o footstool_n of_o thy_o foot_n â_o verse_n 36_o therefore_o let_v all_o the_o house_n of_o israël_n know_v most_o certain_o that_o god_n have_v make_v he_o both_o lord_n and_o christ_n this_o jesus_n who_o you_o have_v crucify_v â_o verse_n 37_o and_o hear_v these_o thing_n contrition_n they_o be_v compuncte_v in_o hart_n and_o say_v to_o peter_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v man_n brethren_n â_o verse_n 38_o but_o peter_n say_v to_o they_o 108._o do_v penance_n and_o be_v every_o one_o of_o you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o remission_n of_o your_o sin_n and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 39_o for_o to_o you_o be_v the_o promise_n and_o to_o your_o child_n and_o to_o all_o that_o be_v far_o of_o whomsoever_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v call_v â_o verse_n 40_o with_o very_a many_o other_o word_n also_o do_v he_o testify_v and_o exhort_v they_o say_v save_o yourselves_o from_o this_o perverse_a generation_n â_o verse_n 41_o they_o therefore_o that_o receive_v his_o word_n be_v baptize_v and_o there_o be_v add_v in_o that_o day_n about_o church_n three_o thousand_o soul_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o they_o be_v perseuér_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o the_o communication_n of_o 7._o the_o break_n of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n â_o verse_n 43_o and_o fear_n come_v upon_o every_o soul_n many_o wonder_v also_o and_o sign_n be_v do_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o there_o be_v great_a fear_n in_o al._n â_o verse_n 44_o al_n they_o also_o that_o believe_v 32._o be_v together_o *_o and_o have_v â³_o all_o thing_n common_a â_o verse_n 45_o their_o possession_n and_o substance_n they_o sell_v and_o divide_v they_o to_o all_o according_a as_o every_o one_o have_v need_v â_o verse_n 46_o daily_o also_o continue_v with_o one_o accord_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o break_v bread_n from_o house_n to_o house_n they_o take_v their_o meat_n with_o joy_n and_o simplicity_n of_o hart_n â_o verse_n 47_o praise_v god_n and_o have_v grace_n with_o all_o the_o people_n and_o our_o lord_n â³_o increase_v they_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v daily_o together_o annotation_n chap._n ii_o 1._o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n as_o christ_n our_o pasche_n for_o correspondence_n to_o the_o figure_n be_v offer_v at_o the_o jew_n great_a feast_n of_o pasche_n pentecost_n so_o fifty_o day_n after_o in_o greek_a pentecost_n for_o accomplish_v the_o like_a figure_n of_o the_o law-giving_a in_o mount_n sinal_n he_o send_v down_o the_o holy_a ghost_n just_a on_o the_o day_n of_o their_o pentecost_n which_o be_v always_o on_o sunday_n as_o appear_v levit._n 23_o 15._o both_o which_o day_n the_o church_n keep_v yearly_o for_o memory_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o the_o send_v down_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o they_o do_v the_o like_a for_o record_v of_o their_o delivery_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o their_o law_n give_v aforesaid_a the_o say_a feast_n with_o we_o contain_v beside_o the_o remembrance_n of_o benefit_n past_a great_a sacrament_n also_o of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v aug._n ep_v 119_o c._n 16._o 4._o all_o replenish_v though_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v baptize_v before_o and_o have_v thereby_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o sanctification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n thereof_o as_o for_o diverse_a other_o purpose_n also_o 49_o yet_o as_o christ_n *_o promise_a they_o they_o shall_v be_v further_o endue_v with_o strength_n and_o virtue_n from_o above_o so_o here_o he_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n visible_o pour_v down_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o all_o the_o company_n and_o upon_o every_o one_o of_o they_o thereby_o replenish_n the_o apostle_n special_o with_o all_o truth_n wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n necessary_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o give_v both_o to_o they_o and_o to_o all_o other_o present_a the_o grace_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n accomplish_v corroborate_n and_o strengthen_v they_o in_o their_o say_v and_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o same_o and_o last_o for_o a_o visible_a token_n of_o god_n spirit_n he_o endue_v they_o all_o with_o the_o gift_n of_o diverse_a strange_a tongue_n all_o i_o say_v there_o present_a lady_n as_o well_o our_o lady_n as_o other_o holy_a woman_n and_o brethren_n beside_o the_o apostle_n though_o â_o the_o heretic_n fond_o argue_v 1._o for_o the_o desire_n they_o have_v to_o dishonour_v christ_n mother_n that_o neither_o she_o nor_o they_o be_v there_o present_a nor_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a text_n that_o say_v they_o be_v all_o together_o to_o wit_n all_o the_o 120_o mention_v
to_o caesaréa_o and_o send_v he_o away_o to_o tarsus_n â_o verse_n 31_o the_o ⸬_o church_n true_o through_o all_o jewrie_n &_o galilee_n and_o samaria_n have_v peace_n persecution_n &_o be_v edify_v walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o be_v replenish_v with_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 32_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o peter_n as_o he_o pass_v through_o all_o come_v to_o the_o saint_n that_o dwell_v at_o lydda_n â_o verse_n 33_o and_o he_o find_v there_o a_o certain_a man_n name_v aeneas_n lie_v in_o his_o bed_n from_o eight_o year_n before_o who_o have_v the_o palsy_n â_o verse_n 34_o and_o peter_n say_v to_o he_o aeneas_z our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n heal_v heal_v '_o thou_o arise_v and_o make_v thy_o bed_n and_o incontinent_a he_o arise_v â_o verse_n 35_o and_o all_o that_o dwell_v at_o lydda_n and_o satóna_n see_v he_o who_o convert_v to_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 36_o and_o in_o joppé_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a disciple_n name_v tabytha_n which_o by_o interpretation_n be_v call_v dorcas_n this_o woman_n be_v full_a of_o life_n good_a work_n and_o almsdeed_n which_o she_o do_v â_o verse_n 37_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o those_o day_n that_o she_o be_v sick_a and_o die_v who_o when_o they_o have_v wash_v they_o lay_v she_o in_o a_o upper_a chamber_n â_o verse_n 38_o and_o whereas_o lydda_n be_v nigh_o to_o joppé_v the_o disciple_n hear_v that_o peter_n be_v in_o it_o they_o send_v two_o man_n unto_o he_o desire_v he_o be_v not_o loath_a to_o come_v so_o far_o as_o to_o us._n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o peter_n rise_v up_o come_v with_o they_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v they_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o upper_a chamber_n and_o all_o the_o widow_n stand_v about_o he_o weep_v purgatory_n and_o show_v he_o the_o coat_n and_o garment_n which_o dorcas_n make_v they_o â_o verse_n 40_o and_o all_o be_v put_v forth_o peter_n fall_v on_o his_o knee_n pray_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o body_n he_o say_v tabytha_n arise_v and_o she_o open_v her_o eye_n and_o see_v peter_n she_o sit_v up_o â_o verse_n 41_o and_o give_v she_o his_o hand_n he_o lift_v she_o up_o and_o when_o he_o have_v call_v the_o saint_n and_o the_o widow_n he_o present_v her_o alive_a â_o verse_n 42_o and_o it_o be_v make_v know_v through_o out_o all_o joppé_n and_o many_o believe_v in_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 43_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o abide_v many_o day_n in_o joppé_n with_o one_o simon_n a_o tanner_n chap._n x._o because_o the_o jew_n so_o much_o abhor_v the_o gentile_n part_n for_o the_o better_a warrant_n of_o their_o christen_n also_o a_o angel_n appear_v to_o cornelius_n the_o devout_a italian_a 9_o and_o a_o vision_n be_v show_v to_o peter_n himself_o the_o chief_a and_o pastor_n of_o all_o 19_o and_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o he_o 34_o yea_o and_o as_o he_o be_v catechise_v they_o about_o jesus_n 44_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v visible_o upon_o they_o and_o therefore_o not_o fear_v any_o long_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o command_v to_o baptize_v they_o verse_n 1_o and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a man_n in_o caesaréa_n name_v cornelius_n centurion_n of_o that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o italian_a band_n â_o verse_n 2_o religious_a &_o fear_v god_n with_o all_o his_o house_n â³_o do_v many_o almsdeed_n to_o the_o people_n and_o always_o pray_v to_o god_n â_o verse_n 3_o he_o see_v in_o a_o vision_n manifest_o about_o the_o ninthe_n hour_n of_o the_o day_n a_o angel_n of_o god_n come_v in_o unto_o he_o and_o say_v to_o he_o cornelius_z â_o verse_n 4_o but_o he_o behold_v he_o take_v with_o fear_n say_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o thy_o prayer_n and_o thy_o almsdeed_n be_v ascend_v into_o remembrance_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o now_o send_v man_n unto_o joppé_n and_o call_v hither_o one_o simon_n that_o be_v surname_v peter_n â_o verse_n 6_o he_o lodge_v with_o one_o simon_n a_o tanner_n who_o house_n be_v by_o the_o sea_n side_n he_o will_v tell_v thou_o what_o thou_o must_v do_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o the_o angel_n be_v depart_v that_o speak_v to_o he_o he_o call_v two_o of_o his_o household_n and_o a_o soldier_n that_o fear_v our_o lord_n of_o they_o that_o be_v under_o he_o â_o verse_n 8_o to_o who_o when_o he_o have_v tell_v all_o he_o send_v they_o unto_o joppé_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o the_o next_o day_n while_o they_o be_v go_v on_o their_o journey_n and_o draw_v nigh_o to_o the_o city_n peter_n go_v up_o into_o the_o high_a part_n â³_o to_o pray_v about_o the_o sixth_o hour_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o be_v hungry_a he_o be_v desirous_a to_o take_v somewhat_o and_o as_o they_o be_v prepare_v there_o fall_v upon_o he_o a_o excess_n of_o mind_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o he_o see_v the_o heaven_n open_v and_o a_o certain_a vessel_n descend_v as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a linen_n sheet_n with_o four_o corner_n let_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 12_o wherein_o be_v all_o fourfooted_a beast_n and_o that_o creep_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o there_o come_v a_o voice_n to_o he_o arise_v peter_n kill_v and_o eat_v â_o verse_n 14_o but_o peter_n say_v god_n forbid_v lord_n for_o i_o do_v never_o eat_v any_o common_a and_o unclean_a thing_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o law_n a_o voice_n come_v to_o he_o again_o the_o second_o time_n that_o which_o god_n have_v purify_v do_v not_o thou_o call_v common_a â_o verse_n 16_o and_o this_o be_v do_v thrice_o and_o forthwith_o the_o vessel_n be_v take_v up_o again_o into_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o while_o peter_n doubt_v within_o himself_o what_o the_o vision_n shall_v be_v that_o he_o have_v see_v behold_v the_o man_n that_o be_v send_v from_o cornelius_n inquire_v for_o simons_n house_n stand_v at_o the_o gate_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o when_o they_o have_v call_v they_o ask_v if_o simon_n that_o be_v surname_v peter_n be_v lodge_v there_o â_o verse_n 19_o and_o as_o peter_n be_v think_v of_o the_o vision_n the_o spirit_n say_v to_o he_o behold_v three_o man_n do_v seek_v thou_o â_o verse_n 20_o arise_v therefore_o and_o get_v thou_o down_o and_o go_v with_o they_o doubt_v nothing_o for_o i_o have_v send_v they_o â_o verse_n 21_o and_o peter_n go_v down_o to_o the_o man_n say_v behold_v i_o be_o he_o who_o you_o seek_v what_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o the_o which_o you_o be_v come_v â_o verse_n 22_o who_o say_v cornelius_n the_o centurion_n a_o just_a man_n &_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o have_v testimony_n of_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n receive_v a_o answer_n of_o a_o holy_a angel_n to_o send_v for_o thou_o into_o his_o house_n and_o to_o hear_v word_n of_o thou_o â_o verse_n 23_o therefore_o bring_v they_o in_o he_o lodge_v they_o â_o and_n the_o day_n follow_a he_o arise_v and_o go_v with_o they_o and_o certain_a of_o the_o brethren_n of_o joppé_n accompany_v he_o â_o verse_n 24_o and_o on_o the_o morrow_n he_o enter_v into_o caesaréa_n and_o cornelius_n expect_v they_o have_v call_v together_o his_o kin_n and_o special_a friend_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o peter_n be_v come_v in_o cornelius_n come_v to_o meet_v he_o and_o fall_v at_o his_o foot_n â³_o adore_a â_o verse_n 26_o but_o peter_n lift_v he_o up_o say_v arise_v myself_o also_o be_o a_o man_n â_o verse_n 27_o and_o talk_v with_o he_o he_o go_v in_o and_o find_v many_o that_o be_v assemble_v â_o verse_n 28_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o you_o know_v how_o abominable_a it_o be_v for_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o jewe_n to_o join_v or_o to_o approach_v unto_o a_o stranger_n but_o god_n have_v show_v to_o i_o to_o call_v no_o man_n common_a or_o unclean_a â_o verse_n 29_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n make_v no_o doubt_n i_o come_v when_o i_o be_v send_v for_o i_o demand_v therefore_o for_o what_o cause_n you_o have_v send_v for_o i_o â_o verse_n 30_o and_o cornelius_n say_v four_o day_n since_o pray_v until_o this_o hour_n i_o be_v visitation_n pray_v the_o ninthe_n hour_n in_o my_o house_n and_o behold_v write_v a_o man_n stand_v before_o i_o in_o white_a apparel_n â_o verse_n 31_o and_o say_v cornelius_n thy_o prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o thy_o almsdeed_n be_v in_o memory_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 32_o send_v therefore_o to_o joppé_v and_o call_v hither_o simon_n that_o be_v surname_v peter_n he_o lodge_v in_o the_o house_n of_o simon_n a_o tanner_n by_o the_o sea_n side_n â_o verse_n 33_o
immediate_o therefore_o i_o send_v to_o thou_o and_o thou_o have_v do_v well_o in_o come_v now_o therefore_o all_o we_o be_v present_a in_o thy_o sight_n to_o hear_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o be_v command_v thou_o of_o the_o lord_n â_o verse_n 34_o and_o peter_n open_v his_o mouth_n say_v in_o very_a deed_n i_o perceive_v that_o god_n be_v not_o a_o accepter_n of_o person_n â_o verse_n 35_o but_o in_o every_o nation_n he_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o he_o work_v justice_n be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o â_o verse_n 36_o the_o word_n do_v god_n send_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israël_n preach_v peace_n by_o jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v lord_n of_o al._n â_o verse_n 37_o week_n you_o know_v the_o word_n that_o have_v be_v make_v through_o all_o jewrie_n 12_o for_o *_o beginning_n from_o galilee_n after_o the_o baptism_n which_o john_n preach_v â_o verse_n 38_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n how_o god_n anoint_v he_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o power_n who_o go_v through_o out_o do_v good_a and_o heal_a all_o that_o be_v oppress_v of_o the_o devil_n because_o god_n be_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 39_o and_o we_o be_v witness_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v in_o the_o country_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n who_o they_o kill_v hang_v he_o upon_o a_o tree_n â_o verse_n 40_o him_n god_n raise_v up_o the_o three_o day_n and_o â³_o give_v he_o to_o be_v make_v manifest_a â_o verse_n 41_o not_o to_o all_o the_o people_n but_o to_o we_o who_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o he_o after_o he_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a whitsonweeke_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o he_o command_v we_o to_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v he_o that_o of_o god_n be_v appoint_v judge_n of_o the_o live_n and_o of_o the_o dead_a â_o verse_n 43_o to_o he_o all_o the_o prophet_n give_v testimony_n that_o all_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o his_o name_n which_o believe_v in_o he_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 44_o as_o peter_n be_v yet_o speak_v these_o word_n the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v upon_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n â_o verse_n 45_o and_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o circumcision_n that_o come_v with_o peter_n be_v astonish_v for_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o gentile_n also_o â_o verse_n 46_o for_o they_o hear_v they_o speak_v with_o tongue_n and_o magnify_v god_n then_o peter_n answer_v â_o verse_n 47_o can_v any_o man_n forbid_v water_n that_o these_o shall_v not_o be_v â³_o baptize_v which_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o we_o â_o verse_n 48_o and_o he_o command_v they_o to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â¢_o than_o they_o desire_v he_o that_o he_o will_v tarry_v with_o they_o certain_a day_n annotation_n chap._n x._o 2._o do_v many_o alm_n deed_n he_o know_v god_n creator_n of_o all_o but_o that_o his_o omnipotent_a son_n be_v incarnate_a meritorious_a he_o know_v not_o and_o in_o that_o faith_n he_o make_v prayer_n and_o give_v alm_n which_o please_v god_n and_o by_o well_o do_v he_o deserve_v to_o know_v god_n perfect_o to_o believe_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n locum_fw-la so_o say_v venerable_a bede_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n and_o s._n augustine_n thus_o li._n 1_o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 8._o because_o whatsoever_o goodness_n he_o have_v in_o prayer_n and_o alm_n the_o same_o can_v not_o profit_v he_o unless_o he_o be_v by_o the_o band_n of_o christian_a society_n and_o peace_n incorporate_v to_o the_o church_n he_o be_v bid_v to_o send_v unto_o peter_n that_o by_o he_o he_o may_v learn_v christ_n by_o he_o he_o may_v be_v baptize_v etc._n etc._n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o such_o work_n as_o be_v do_v before_o justification_n though_o they_o suffice_v not_o to_o salvation_n yet_o be_v acceptable_a preparative_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n and_o such_o as_o move_v god_n to_o mercy_n as_o it_o may_v appear_v also_o by_o god_n like_o provident_a mercifulnes_n *_o to_o the_o eunuch_n 8._o though_o all_o such_o work_n preparative_n come_v of_o grace_n also_o otherwise_o they_o can_v never_o deserve_v at_o god_n hand_n of_o congruity_n or_o any_o otherwise_o towards_o justification_n 9_o to_o pray_v about_o the_o sixth_o hour_n the_o hour_n be_v specify_v for_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a appoint_v time_n of_o pray_v use_v in_o the_o law_n hour_n which_o devout_a person_n according_a to_o the_o public_a service_n in_o the_o temple_n observe_v also_o private_o and_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o holy_a church_n afterward_o both_o keep_v and_o increase_v orat._n whereof_o thus_o write_v s._n cyprian_n very_o notable_o in_o celebrate_v their_o prayer_n we_o find_v that_o the_o three_o child_n with_o daniel_n observe_v the_o three_o sixth_o 15._o and_o ninthe_n hour_n as_o in_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a after_o which_o space_n of_o hour_n the_o worshipper_n of_o god_n spiritual_o or_o mystical_o determine_v long_o since_o observe_v set_v time_n to_o pray_v and_o afterward_o the_o thing_n become_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v for_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n that_o the_o just_a so_o pray_v for_o at_o the_o three_o hour_n the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n 2._o fulfil_v the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n promise_n and_o at_o the_o sixth_o hour_n peter_n go_v up_o to_o the_o high_a room_n of_o the_o house_n 10._o be_v both_o by_o voice_n and_o sign_n from_o god_n instruct_v that_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o salvation_n 23._o whereas_o of_o cleanse_v the_o gentile_n he_o doubt_v before_o and_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v at_o the_o sixth_o hour_n at_o ninthe_n wash_v away_o our_o sin_n with_o his_o blood_n but_o to_o we_o dear_o belove_v beside_o the_o season_n observe_v of_o old_a both_o the_o time_n and_o sacrament_n of_o pray_v be_v increase_v for_o we_o must_v pray_v in_o the_o morning_n early_o matin_n that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v celebrate_v by_o morning_n prayer_n as_o of_o old_a the_o holy_a ghost_n design_v in_o the_o psalm_n 5._o say_v in_o the_o morning_n early_o will_v i_o stand_v up_o to_o thou_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n will_v thou_o hear_v my_o voice_n evensong_n towards_o the_o evening_n also_o when_o the_o sun_n depart_v and_o the_o day_n end_v we_o must_v of_o necessity_n pray_v again_o s._n hierom_n also_o writing_n of_o daniel_n pray_v three_o time_n in_o a_o day_n 6._o say_v there_o be_v three_o time_n wherein_o we_o must_v bow_v our_o knee_n to_o god_n the_o three_o the_o sixth_o and_o the_o ninthe_n hour_n the_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n do_v well_o understand_v moreover_o at_o the_o three_o hour_n the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o the_o apostle_n at_o the_o sixth_o 3._o peter_n go_v up_o into_o a_o high_a chamber_n to_o pray_v at_o the_o ninthe_n *_o peter_n and_o john_n go_v to_o the_o temple_n again_o writing_n to_o eustochium_fw-la a_o virgin_n and_o nun_n ep_v 22._o c._n 16._o though_o the_o apostle_n bid_v we_o pray_v always_o and_o to_o holy_a person_n their_o very_a sleep_n be_v prayer_n yet_o we_o must_v have_v distinct_a hour_n of_o prayer_n that_o if_o perhaps_o we_o be_v otherwise_o occupy_v the_o very_a time_n may_v admonish_v we_o of_o our_o office_n or_o duty_n the_o three_o sixth_o ninthe_n hour_n morning_n early_o and_o the_o evening_n no_o man_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o and_o to_o demetrias_n ep_v 8._o c._n 8._o that_o in_o the_o psalm_n and_o prayer_n she_o must_v keep_v always_o the_o three_o sixth_o ninthe_n hour_n evening_n midnight_n and_o morning_n he_o have_v the_o like_a ep_n 7_o c._n 5._o and_o ep_n 27_o c._n 10._o he_o tell_v how_o paula_n the_o holy_a abbess_n with_o her_o religious_a nonnes_n sing_v the_o psalter_n in_o order_n in_o the_o morning_n at_o the_o three_o sixth_o ninthe_n hour_n evening_n midnight_n by_o midnight_n mean_v the_o time_n of_o martin_n therefore_o call_v nocturne_n agreable_o to_o s._n cyprian_n de_fw-fr orat._n do._n num_fw-la 15_o and_o by_o the_o morning_n the_o first_o hour_n call_v prime_a all_o correspondent_a to_o the_o time_n and_o hour_n of_o christ_n passion_n as_o in_o s._n matthew_n be_v note_v c_o 26._o 27._o by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v how_o agreeable_a the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n service_n be_v even_o at_o this_o time_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o primitive_a church_n and_o how_o wicked_a the_o puritan_n caluiniste_n be_v that_o count_v all_o such_o order_n and_o set_v season_n of_o prayer_n superstition_n and_o last_o how_o insufficient_a and_o unlike_a the_o new_a pretend_a church-seruice_n of_o
send_v of_o god_n at_o the_o continual_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n make_v for_o her_o chief_a pastor_n â9_n 19_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o such_o pride_n that_o at_o caesarea_n he_o refuse_v not_o to_o be_v honour_v as_o god_n 23_o be_v miraculous_o strike_v of_o god_n angel_n 24_o and_o so_o after_o the_o persecutor_n death_n the_o church_n preach_v prosper_v exceed_o verse_n 1_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n herod_n the_o king_n set_v his_o hand_n to_o afflict_v certain_a of_o the_o church_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o kill_v james_n the_o brother_n of_o john_n with_o the_o sword_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o see_v that_o it_o please_v the_o jew_n he_o add_v to_o apprehend_v peter_n also_o and_o it_o be_v the_o day_n of_o the_o azyme_n â_o verse_n 4_o who_o when_o he_o have_v apprehend_v he_o cast_v into_o prison_n deliver_v he_o to_o marvellous_a four_o quaternion_n of_o soldier_n to_o be_v keep_v mean_v after_o the_o pasche_n to_o bring_v he_o forth_o to_o the_o people_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o peter_n in_o deed_n be_v keep_v in_o prison_n but_o â³_o prayer_n be_v make_v of_o the_o church_n without_o intermission_n unto_o god_n for_o he_o â_o verse_n 6_o and_o when_o herod_n will_v have_v bring_v he_o forth_o the_o same_o night_n peter_n be_v sleep_v between_o two_o soldier_n bind_v with_o â³_o two_o chain_n and_o the_o keeper_n before_o the_o door_n keep_v the_o prison_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o behold_v a_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n stand_v in_o presence_n and_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o house_n and_o strike_v peter_n side_n he_o raise_v he_o say_v arise_v quick_o and_o the_o chain_n fall_v from_o his_o hand_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o he_o gird_v thou_o and_o put_v on_o thy_o shoe_n and_o he_o do_v so_o and_o he_o say_v to_o he_o put_v thy_o garment_n about_o thou_o &_o follow_v i_o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o go_v forth_o he_o follow_v he_o &_o he_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v true_a which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o angel_n but_o he_o think_v that_o he_o see_v a_o vision_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o pass_v through_o the_o first_o &_o the_o second_o watch_n they_o come_v to_o the_o iron_n gate_n that_o lead_v to_o the_o city_n which_o of_o itself_o open_v to_o they_o and_o go_v out_o they_o go_v forward_o one_o street_n and_o incontinent_a the_o angel_n depart_v from_o he_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o peter_n return_v to_o himself_o say_v now_o i_o know_v in_o very_a deed_n that_o our_o lord_n have_v send_v his_o angel_n and_o deliver_v i_o out_o of_o herod_n hand_n &_o from_o all_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o consider_v he_o come_v to_o the_o reign_v house_n of_o marry_o the_o mother_n of_o john_n who_o be_v surname_v mark_n where_o many_o be_v gather_v and_o pray_v â_o verse_n 13_o and_o when_o he_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o gate_n there_o come_v forth_o a_o wench_n to_o see_v name_v rhodè_fw-la â_o verse_n 14_o and_o as_o she_o know_v peter_n voice_n for_o joy_n she_o open_v not_o the_o gate_n but_o run_v in_o she_o tell_v that_o peter_n stand_v before_o the_o gate_n â_o verse_n 15_o but_o they_o say_v to_o she_o thou_o be_v mad_a but_o she_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v so_o but_o they_o say_v it_o be_v â³_o his_o angel_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o peter_n continue_v knock_v and_o when_o they_o have_v open_v they_o see_v he_o &_o be_v astonish_v â_o verse_n 17_o and_o becken_v with_o his_o hand_n to_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v hold_v their_o peace_n he_o tell_v how_o our_o lord_n have_v bring_v he_o out_o of_o prison_n and_o he_o say_v â³_o tell_v these_o thing_n to_o james_n &_o to_o the_o brethren_n and_o go_v forth_o he_o go_v time_n into_o a_o other_o place_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o when_o day_n be_v come_v there_o be_v no_o little_a a_o do_v between_o the_o soldier_n what_o be_v become_v of_o peter_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o herod_n when_o he_o have_v seek_v he_o and_o have_v not_o find_v make_v inquisition_n of_o the_o keeper_n command_v they_o to_o be_v lead_v away_o &_o go_v down_o from_o jewrie_n into_o caesaréa_n there_o he_o abode_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o he_o be_v angry_a with_o the_o tyrian_n and_o the_o sidonian_n but_o they_o with_o one_o accord_n come_v to_o he_o and_o persuade_v blastus_n that_o be_v chief_a of_o the_o king_n chamber_n they_o desire_v peace_n for_o that_o their_o country_n be_v nourish_v by_o he_o â_o verse_n 21_o and_o upon_o a_o day_n appoint_v herod_n be_v array_v with_o kingly_a attire_n sit_v in_o the_o judgement_n seat_n and_o make_v a_o oration_n to_o they_o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o the_o people_n make_v acclamation_n the_o voice_n of_o a_o god_n &_o not_o of_o a_o man_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o forthwith_v a_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n example_n strike_v he_o because_o he_o have_v not_o give_v the_o honour_n to_o god_n and_o be_v consume_v of_o worm_n he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n â_o verse_n 24_o but_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n increase_v and_o multiply_v â_o verse_n 25_o and_o barnabas_n and_o saul_n return_v from_o jerusalem_n 29._o have_v accomplish_v their_o *_o ministry_n take_v with_o they_o john_n that_o be_v surname_v mark_n annotation_n chap._n xii_o 5._o prayer_n be_v make_v the_o church_n pray_v incessant_o for_o her_o chief_a pastor_n and_o be_v hear_v of_o god_n and_o all_o christian_a people_n be_v warn_v thereby_o to_o pray_v for_o their_o bishope_n and_o pastor_n in_o prison_n 6._o two_o chain_n chain_n these_o chain_n be_v famous_a for_o miracle_n and_o be_v bring_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o rome_n by_o eudoxia_n the_o empress_n wife_n to_o theodosius_n the_o young_a where_o they_o be_v match_v &_o place_v with_o a_o other_o chain_n that_o the_o same_o apostle_n be_v tie_v with_o by_o nero_n &_o a_o church_n found_v thereupon_o name_v petri_n ad_fw-la vincula_fw-la where_o they_o be_v religious_o keep_v and_o reverence_v until_o this_o day_n and_o there_o be_v a_o feast_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o same_o the_o first_o of_o august_n which_o we_o call_v lammas_n day_n 15._o his_o angel_n if_o proper_a angel_n say_v s._n chrysostom_n be_v depute_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o such_o as_o have_v only_o charge_n of_o their_o own_o life_n angel_n as_o one_o of_o the_o just_a say_v 16_o *_o the_o angel_n which_o have_v deliver_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n upward_o much_o more_o be_v supernal_a spirit_n at_o hand_n to_o help_v they_o unto_o who_o the_o charge_n and_o burden_n of_o the_o world_n be_v commit_v chrys_n in_o laud._n pauli_n ho._n 7_o to_o 3._o 17._o tell_v james._n head_n he_o will_v they_o to_o show_v this_o to_o s._n james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o to_o the_o christian_n that_o they_o may_v see_v the_o effect_n of_o their_o prayer_n for_o he_o &_o give_v god_n thanks_n for_o s._n james_n no_o doubt_n publish_v common_a prayer_n for_o s._n peter_n chap._n xiii_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n prepare_v themselves_o part_n the_o holy_a ghost_n out_o of_o they_o all_o barnabas_n choose_v saul_n and_o barnabas_n 3_o they_o be_v first_o consecrate_v bishop_n 4_o goâ_n their_o appoint_a circuit_n over_o all_o thâ_n land_n of_o cypress_n the_o proconsul_n whereof_o be_v also_o convert_v see_v the_o miraculous_a excecation_n of_o a_o jew_n by_o paul_n 13_o thence_o into_o pamphilia_n 14_o and_o pisidia_n where_o in_o antioch_n paul_n preach_v to_o the_o jew_n show_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n 38_o and_o that_o in_o he_o be_v salvation_n and_o not_o in_o their_o law_n of_o moses_n 40_o warning_n they_o to_o beware_v of_o the_o reprobation_n foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n 44_o but_o the_o next_o sabbath_n they_o blasphen_v he_o in_o plain_a term_n forsake_v they_o and_o turn_v to_o the_o gentile_n whereat_o the_o gentile_n be_v as_o glad_a on_o the_o contrary_a side_n 50_o final_o the_o jew_n raise_v persecution_n they_o forsake_v they_o pronounce_v they_o to_o be_v obstinate_a contemner_n verse_n 1_o and_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v at_o antioch_n prophet_n and_o doctor_n among_o who_o be_v barnabas_n &_o simon_n that_o be_v call_v niger_n and_o lucius_n of_o cyréne_n and_o manahen_n who_o be_v the_o foster-brother_n of_o herod_n the_o tetrarch_n and_o saul_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o ãâã_d as_o they_o be_v â³_o minister_a to_o our_o lord_n and_o fast_v the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v â³_o separate_a i_o saul_n and_o barnabas_n unto_o the_o work_n whereto_o i_o have_v take_v they_o â_o verse_n 3_o then_o they_o â³_o fast_v and_o pray_v and_o â³_o impose_v hand_n upon_o they_o dimiss_v they_o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o they_o be_v â³_o send_v of_o the_o holy_a
ghost_n go_v to_o seleucia_n and_o thence_o sail_v to_o cypress_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o salamîna_n they_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o synagog_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o they_o have_v john_n also_o in_o their_o ministry_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o when_o they_o have_v walk_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a island_n as_o far_o as_o paphos_n they_o find_v a_o certain_a man_n that_o be_v a_o magician_n a_o false-prophete_n a_o jew_n who_o name_n be_v barieu_o bar-iesu_a '_o â_o verse_n 7_o who_o be_v with_o the_o proconsul_n sergius_n paulus_n a_o wise_a man_n he_o send_v for_o barnabas_n &_o saul_n desire_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o elymas_n the_o magician_n for_o so_o be_v his_o name_n interpret_v resist_v they_o seek_v to_o avert_v the_o proconsul_n from_o the_o faith_n â_o verse_n 9_o but_o saul_n otherwise_o paul_n replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n look_v upon_o he_o â_o verse_n 10_o say_v o_o full_a of_o all_o guile_n and_o all_o deceit_n son_n of_o the_o devil_n enemy_n of_o all_o justice_n thou_o cease_v not_o to_o subvert_v the_o right_a way_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o now_o behold_v the_o hand_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v be_v blind_a not_o see_v the_o sun_n until_o a_o time_n and_o forthwith_o there_o fell_a dimness_n and_o darkness_n upon_o he_o and_o go_v about_o he_o seek_v some_o body_n that_o will_v give_v he_o his_o hand_n â_o verse_n 12_o then_o the_o proconsul_n when_o he_o have_v see_v that_o which_o be_v do_v believe_v marueling_n at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o when_o paul_n and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o have_v sail_v from_o paphos_n they_o come_v to_o pergè_a in_o pamphylia_n and_o john_n depárt_v from_o they_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n â_o verse_n 14_o but_o they_o pass_v through_o pergè_a come_v to_o antioch_n in_o pisidia_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o synagogue_n on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n they_o sit_v down_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o after_o the_o lesson_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o synagogue_n send_v to_o they_o say_v man_n brethren_n if_o there_o be_v among_o you_o any_o sermon_n of_o exhortation_n to_o the_o people_n speak_v â_o verse_n 16_o and_o paul_n rise_v up_o and_o with_o his_o hand_n becken_v for_o silence_n say_v you_o man_n of_o israël_n and_o you_o that_o fear_n god_n harken_v â_o verse_n 17_o the_o god_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israël_n choose_v our_o father_n and_o exalt_v the_o people_n when_o they_o be_v seiourner_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n exod._n and_o in_o a_o mighty_a arm_n bring_v they_o out_o thereof_o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o for_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n tolerate_v their_o manner_n in_o the_o desert_n josue_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o destroy_v seven_o nation_n in_o the_o land_n of_o chanaan_n by_o lot_n he_o divide_v their_o land_n among_o they_o â_o verse_n 20_o as_o it_o be_v after_o four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n and_o after_o these_o thing_n he_o give_v judge_n jud._n until_o samuël_n the_o prophet_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o thenceforth_o they_o desire_v a_o king_n 8._o and_o he_o give_v they_o *_o saul_n the_o son_n of_o cis_n 16_o a_o man_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n forty_o year_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o remove_v he_o 21_o he_o raise_v they_o up_o *_o david_n to_o be_v king_n to_o who_o give_v testimony_n he_o say_v i_o have_v find_v david_n the_o son_n of_o jesse_n 11._o a_o man_n according_a to_o my_o hart_n who_o shall_v do_v all_o my_o will_n â_o verse_n 23_o of_o his_o seed_n god_n according_a to_o his_o *_o promisse_fw-la have_v bring_v forth_o to_o israël_n a_o saviour_n jesus_n 3._o â_o verse_n 24_o john_n *_o preach_v before_o the_o face_n of_o his_o come_n baptism_n of_o penance_n to_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israël_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o when_o john_n fulfil_v his_o course_n 15._o he_o say_v who_o do_v *_o you_o think_v i_o to_o be_v i_o be_o not_o he_o but_o behold_v there_o come_v after_o i_o who_o shoe_n of_o his_o foot_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o unloose_v â_o verse_n 26_o man_n brethren_n week_n child_n of_o the_o stock_n of_o abraham_n &_o they_o among_o you_o that_o fear_n god_n to_o you_o the_o word_n of_o this_o salvation_n be_v send_v â_o verse_n 27_o for_o they_o that_o inhabit_v jerusalem_n and_o the_o prince_n thereof_o not_o know_v he_o nor_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o be_v read_v every_o sabbath_n judge_v have_v fulfil_v they_o 1_o â_o verse_n 28_o and_o find_v no_o cause_n of_o death_n in_o he_o *_o desire_a of_o pilate_n that_o they_o may_v kill_v he_o â_o verse_n 29_o and_o when_o they_o have_v consummate_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v of_o he_o take_v he_o down_o from_o the_o tree_n they_o put_v he_o in_o a_o monument_n â_o verse_n 30_o but_o god_n raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a the_o three_o day_n â_o verse_n 31_o who_o be_v *_o see_v for_o many_o day_n of_o they_o that_o come_v up_o together_o with_o he_o from_o galilee_n into_o jerusalem_n 3._o who_o until_o this_o present_a be_v his_o witness_n to_o the_o people_n â_o verse_n 32_o and_o we_o preach_v unto_o you_o that_o promise_v which_o be_v make_v to_o our_o father_n â_o verse_n 33_o that_o god_n have_v fulfil_v this_o same_o 7._o to_o our_o child_n '_o raise_v up_o jesus_n as_o in_o the_o second_o psalm_n also_o it_o be_v write_v my_o son_n be_v thou_o this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o â_o verse_n 34_o and_o that_o he_o raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a not_o to_o return_v now_o any_o more_o into_o corruption_n thus_o he_o say_v that_o i_o will_v give_v you_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o david_n faithful_a 3._o â_o verse_n 35_o and_o therefore_o in_o a_o other_o place_n also_o he_o say_v 10_o thou_o shall_v not_o give_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n â_o verse_n 36_o for_o david_n in_o his_o generation_n when_o he_o have_v serve_v according_a to_o the_o will_v of_o god_n sleep_v and_o he_o be_v lay_v to_o his_o father_n &_o see_v corruption_n â_o verse_n 37_o but_o he_o who_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o see_v no_o corruption_n â_o verse_n 38_o be_v it_o know_v therefore_o to_o you_o man_n brethren_z that_o through_o he_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v preach_v to_o you_o from_o all_o the_o thing_n from_o the_o which_o you_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o la_o of_o moses_n â_o verse_n 39_o in_o he_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v be_v justify_v â_o verse_n 40_o take_v heed_n therefore_o lest_o that_o come_v upon_o you_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o prophet_n 5_o â_o verse_n 41_o see_v you_o contemner_n and_o wonder_v and_o perish_v because_o i_o work_v a_o work_n in_o your_o day_n a_o work_n which_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v tell_v it_o you_o â_o verse_n 42_o and_o they_o go_v forth_o desire_v they_o desire_v they_o that_o the_o sabbath_n follow_a they_n will_v speak_v unto_o they_o these_o word_n â_o verse_n 43_o and_o when_o the_o synagogue_n be_v dimiss_v many_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o the_o proselyte_n stranger_n serve_v god_n follow_v paul_n &_o barnabas_n who_o speak_v exhort_v they_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 44_o but_o the_o next_o sabbath_n the_o whole_a city_n almost_o assemble_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 45_o and_o the_o jew_n see_v the_o multitude_n be_v replenish_v with_o envy_n &_o contradict_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v say_v of_o paul_n blaspheme_v â_o verse_n 46_o then_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n constant_o say_v to_o you_o it_o behove_v we_o first_o to_o speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o because_o providence_n you_o repel_v it_o and_o judge_v yourselves_o unworthy_a of_o eternal_a life_n behold_v we_o turn_v to_o the_o gentile_n â_o verse_n 47_o for_o so_o our_o lord_n command_v we_o i_o have_v put_v thou_o to_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v salvation_n unto_o the_o utmost_a of_o the_o earth_n 6_o â_o verse_n 48_o and_o the_o gentile_n hearing_n it_o be_v glad_a and_o glorify_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o there_o believe_v as_o many_o as_o be_v preordinate_a to_o life_n everlasting_a â_o verse_n 49_o and_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v spread_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a country_n â_o verse_n 50_o but_o the_o jew_v stir_v up_o religious_a and_o honest_a woman_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o city_n and_o raise_v persecution_n against_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n and_o they_o do_v cast_v they_o forth_o out_o of_o
12_o and_o other_o confirm_v his_o sentence_n with_o miracle_n 13_o and_o with_o scripture_n 22_o and_o the_o apostle_n and_o priest_n do_v write_v and_o command_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v 30_o and_o the_o faithful_a thereby_o be_v straightway_o quiet_v in_o mind_n 36_o after_o which_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n think_v to_o go_v again_o their_o above_o say_a circuit_n together_o be_v by_o occasion_n of_o mark_v part_v to_o the_o great_a increase_n of_o the_o church_n verse_n 1_o and_o certain_a come_n down_o from_o jewrie_n teach_v the_o brethren_n 2._o that_o *_o unless_o you_o be_v circumcise_v according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o moses_n you_o can_v not_o be_v save_v â_o verse_n 2_o no_o little_a sedition_n therefore_o be_v rise_v to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n against_o they_o they_o â³_o appoint_a that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n shall_v go_v up_o &_o certain_a other_o of_o they_o the_o rest_n '_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o ãâã_d priest_n unto_o jerusalem_n upon_o this_o question_n â_o verse_n 3_o they_o therefore_o be_v bring_v on_o their_o way_n by_o the_o church_n pass_v through_o phoenîce_n and_o samaria_n report_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o make_v great_a joy_n to_o all_o the_o brethren_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n they_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o galat._n ancient_n ãâã_d declare_v whatsoever_o god_n have_v do_v with_o they_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o there_o arise_v certain_a of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o pharisee_n that_o believe_v say_v that_o they_o must_v be_v circumcise_v command_v also_o to_o keep_v the_o la_o of_o moses_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o the_o â³_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n â³_o assemble_v to_o consider_v of_o this_o word_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o there_o be_v make_v a_o end_n great_a disputation_n â³_o peter_n rise_v up_o say_v to_o they_o 20._o man_n brethren_z you_o know_v that_o *_o of_o old_a day_n god_n among_o we_o â³_o choose_v that_o by_o my_o mouth_n the_o gentile_n shall_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o believe_v â_o verse_n 8_o and_o god_n which_o know_v the_o heart_n 45._o give_v testimony_n *_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o to_o we_o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o have_v put_v no_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o they_o 31._o by_o faith_n purify_n their_o heart_n â_o verse_n 10_o now_o therefore_o why_o tempt_v you_o god_n to_o put_v a_o yoke_n upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o disciple_n which_o neither_o our_o father_n nor_o we_o have_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v â_o verse_n 11_o but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v save_v in_o like_a manner_n as_o they_o also_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o all_o the_o multitude_n hold_v their_o peace_n and_o they_o hear_v barnabas_n and_o paul_n tell_v what_o great_a sign_n and_o wonder_v god_n have_v do_v among_o the_o gentile_n by_o they_o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o after_o they_o hold_v their_o peace_n â³_o james_n answer_v say_v man_n brethren_n hear_v i_o â_o verse_n 14_o simon_n have_v tell_v how_o god_n first_o visit_v to_o take_v of_o the_o gentile_n a_o people_n to_o his_o name_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o to_o this_o accord_n the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 11._o â_o verse_n 16_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o will_v return_v and_o will_v re-edify_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o david_n which_o be_v fall_v and_o the_o ruin_n thereof_o i_o will_v re-edify_v and_o set_v it_o up_o â_o verse_n 17_o that_o the_o residue_n of_o man_n may_v seek_v after_o the_o lord_n and_o all_o nation_n upon_o who_o my_o name_n be_v invocate_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o do_v these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 18_o to_o our_o lord_n be_v his_o own_o work_n know_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n â_o verse_n 19_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n â³_o i_o judge_v that_o they_o which_o of_o the_o gentile_n be_v convert_v to_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v disquiet_v â_o verse_n 20_o but_o to_o write_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o refrain_v themselves_o from_o the_o contamination_n of_o idol_n and_o â³_o fornication_n and_o strangle_v thing_n and_o blood_n â_o verse_n 21_o for_o moses_n of_o old_a time_n have_v in_o every_o city_n they_o that_o preach_v he_o in_o the_o synagog_n where_o he_o be_v read_v every_o sabbath_n â_o verse_n 22_o then_o it_o please_v the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o choose_v man_n out_o of_o they_o &_o to_o send_v to_o antioch_n with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n judas_n who_o be_v surname_v barsabas_n &_o silas_n chief_a man_n among_o the_o brethren_n â_o verse_n 23_o thing_n writing_n by_o their_o hand_n the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n the_o brethren_n to_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o gentile_n that_o be_v at_o antioch_n and_o in_o syria_n and_o cilicia_n greeting_n â_o verse_n 24_o because_o we_o have_v hear_v that_o certain_a â³_o go_v forth_o from_o we_o have_v trouble_v you_o with_o word_n subvert_v your_o soul_n to_o who_o we_o give_v no_o commandment_n â_o verse_n 25_o it_o have_v please_v we_o be_v gather_v in_o one_o to_o choose_v out_o man_n and_o to_o send_v they_o unto_o you_o with_o our_o dear_a barnabas_n and_o paul_n â_o verse_n 26_o man_n that_o have_v give_v their_o life_n for_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 27_o we_o have_v send_v therefore_o judas_n &_o silas_n who_o themselves_o also_o will_v in_o word_n report_v unto_o you_o the_o same_o thing_n â_o verse_n 28_o for_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a â³_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o to_o we_o to_o lay_v no_o further_o burden_n upon_o you_o then_o these_o necessary_a thing_n â_o verse_n 29_o that_o you_o abstain_v from_o the_o thing_n immolate_a to_o idol_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o which_o be_v strangle_v and_o fornication_n from_o the_o which_o thing_n keep_v yourselves_o you_o shall_v do_v well_o fare_v you_o well_o â_o verse_n 30_o they_o therefore_o be_v dimiss_v go_v down_o to_o antioch_n and_o gather_v the_o multitude_n deliver_v the_o epistle_n â_o verse_n 31_o which_o when_o they_o have_v read_v they_o â³_o rejoice_v upon_o the_o consolation_n â_o verse_n 32_o but_o judas_n and_o silas_n themselves_o also_o be_v prophet_n with_o many_o word_n comfort_v the_o brethren_n and_o confirm_v they_o â_o verse_n 33_o and_o have_v spend_v some_o time_n there_o they_o be_v with_o peace_n dimiss_v of_o the_o brethren_n unto_o they_o that_o have_v send_v they_o â_o verse_n 34_o but_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o silas_n to_o remain_v there_o and_o judas_n depart_v alone_o â_o verse_n 35_o and_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n tarry_v at_o antioch_n teach_v and_o evangelize_a with_o many_o other_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 36_o and_o after_o certain_a day_n paul_n say_v to_o barnabas_n let_v we_o return_v and_o laity_n visit_v our_o brethren_n in_o all_o city_n wherein_o we_o *_o have_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n 14._o how_o they_o do_v â_o verse_n 37_o and_o barnabas_n will_v have_v take_v with_o they_o john_n also_o that_o be_v surname_v mark_n 13._o â_o verse_n 38_o but_o paul_n desire_v that_o he_o as_o who_o *_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o out_o of_o pamphylia_n and_o have_v not_o go_v with_o they_o to_o the_o work_n may_v not_o be_v receive_v â_o verse_n 39_o and_o there_o rise_v a_o â³_o dissension_n so_o that_o they_o depart_v one_o from_o a_o other_o &_o that_o barnabas_n in_o deed_n take_v mark_v sail_v to_o cypress_n â_o verse_n 40_o but_o paul_n choose_v silas_n depart_v be_v deliver_v of_o the_o brethren_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 41_o and_o he_o walk_v through_o syria_n and_o cilicia_n confirm_v the_o church_n not_o command_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o ancient_n annotation_n chap._n xv._o 1._o appoint_a we_o learn_v by_o this_o example_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v when_o any_o controversy_n arise_v in_o religion_n between_o the_o teacher_n or_o other_o christian_a people_n we_o see_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o contend_v by_o allegation_n of_o scripture_n or_o other_o proof_n seem_v to_o make_v for_o either_o part_n for_o so_o of_o contentious_a part_n take_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n but_o the_o more_o writing_n wrestle_v strive_v there_o be_v every_o one_o for_o his_o own_o fancy_n cloak_v it_o with_o the_o title_n of_o god_n word_n and_o scripture_n the_o more_o schism_n sect_n and_o division_n will_v fall_v as_o we_o see_v special_o in_o the_o restless_a heresy_n of_o our_o time_n who_o factor_n admit_v no_o judge_n stand_v to_o no_o trial_n of_o mortal_a man_n to_o no_o
in_o asia_n for_o he_o hasten_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o to_o keep_v the_o day_n of_o â_o pentecost_n at_o jerusalem_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o send_v from_o milétum_n to_o ephesus_n he_o call_v the_o there_o ancient_n of_o the_o church_n â_o verse_n 18_o who_o be_v come_v to_o he_o and_o assemble_v together_o 1_o he_o say_v to_o they_o you_o know_v *_o from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o i_o enter_v into_o asia_n in_o what_o manner_n i_o have_v be_v with_o you_o all_o the_o time_n â_o verse_n 19_o serve_v our_o lord_n with_o all_o humility_n and_o tear_n and_o tentation_n that_o do_v chance_n to_o i_o by_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o the_o jew_n â_o verse_n 20_o how_o i_o have_v withdraw_v nothing_o that_o be_v profitable_a but_o that_o i_o preach_v it_o to_o you_o &_o teach_v you_o open_o and_o from_o house_n to_o house_n â_o verse_n 21_o testify_v to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n people_n penance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o now_o behold_v be_v bind_v by_o the_o spirit_n i_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n not_o know_v what_o thing_n shall_v befall_v i_o in_o it_o â_o verse_n 23_o but_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n through_o out_o all_o city_n do_v protest_v to_o i_o say_v that_o band_n and_o tribulation_n abide_v i_o at_o jerusalem_n â_o verse_n 24_o but_o i_o fear_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n neither_o do_v i_o make_v my_o life_n more_o precious_a they_o myself_o so_o that_o i_o may_v consummate_v my_o course_n &_o ministry_n which_o i_o receive_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n to_o testify_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o now_o behold_v i_o do_v know_v that_o you_o shall_v no_o more_o see_v my_o face_n all_o you_o through_o who_o i_o have_v pass_v preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 26_o wherefore_o i_o take_v you_o to_o witness_v this_o present_a day_n that_o i_o be_o clear_a from_o the_o blood_n of_o al._n â_o verse_n 27_o for_o i_o have_v not_o spare_v to_o declare_v unto_o you_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 28_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a flock_n wherein_o the_o ghost_n holy_a ghost_n have_v place_v you_o bishop_n to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n â_o verse_n 29_o i_o know_v that_o after_o my_o departure_n there_o will_v â_o raven_a wolf_n enter_v in_o among_o you_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n â_o verse_n 30_o and_o out_o of_o your_o own_o self_n shall_v arise_v man_n speak_v perverse_a thing_n to_o draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o themselves_o â_o verse_n 31_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n be_v vigilant_a keep_v in_o memory_n that_o for_o three_o year_n night_n and_o day_n i_o cease_v not_o with_o tear_n to_o admonish_v every_o one_o of_o you_o â_o verse_n 32_o and_o now_o i_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n who_o be_v able_a to_o edify_v and_o to_o give_v inheritance_n in_o all_o the_o sanctify_a â_o verse_n 33_o no_o man_n silver_n and_o gold_n or_o garment_n have_v i_o covet_v â_o verse_n 34_o yourselves_o know_v that_o for_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v needful_a for_o i_o and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o i_o these_o hand_n have_v minister_v â_o verse_n 35_o i_o have_v show_v you_o all_o thing_n that_o so_o labour_v you_o must_v receive_v the_o weak_a and_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n because_o he_o say_v â_o it_o be_v a_o more_o bless_a thing_n to_o give_v rather_o than_o to_o take_v â_o verse_n 36_o and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n fall_v on_o his_o knee_n he_o pray_v with_o all_o they_o â_o verse_n 37_o and_o there_o be_v great_a weep_v make_v of_o all_o and_o fall_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o paul_n they_o kiss_v he_o â_o verse_n 38_o be_v sorry_a most_o of_o all_o for_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v say_v that_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o and_o they_o bring_v he_o go_v unto_o the_o ship_n annotation_n chap._n xx._n 16._o pentecost_n pentecost_n though_o the_o apostle_n may_v desire_v to_o come_v to_o the_o jew_n festivity_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o general_a concourse_n of_o people_n to_o the_o same_o the_o better_a to_o deal_v for_o their_o salvation_n and_o âo_o spread_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v like_a that_o they_o now_o keep_v solemn_o the_o christian_a pentecost_n or_o whitsuntide_n for_o memory_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o s._n paul_n go_v to_o that_o feast_n of_o the_o christian_n rather_o than_o the_o other_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o ven._n bede_n say_v here_o the_o apostle_n make_v haste_n to_o keep_v the_o fift_v day_n that_o be_v of_o remission_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o that_o the_o christian_n already_o keep_v the_o eight_o day_n that_o be_v sunday_n the_o sunday_n or_o our_o lord_n day_n and_o have_v alter_v already_o the_o ordinary_a sabbath_n into_o the_o same_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 16_o 2._o apoc._n 1_o 10._o and_o by_o antiquity_n justin_n mart._n apolog._n 2_o ad_fw-la anton._n pium_fw-la in_o fine_a and_o it_o be_v as_o like_v that_o they_o change_v the_o jew_n pasche_n and_o pentecost_n as_o that_o special_o when_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o *_o these_o festivity_n be_v keep_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n 1._o and_o approve_v by_o the_o use_n of_o all_o ancient_a church_n and_o counsel_n â9_n raven_a wolf_n age_n the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v foretell_v of_o the_o great_a danger_n that_o shall_v fall_v to_o the_o people_n by_o wolf_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o heretic_n who_o cruelty_n towards_o the_o catholic_n be_v note_v by_o this_o term_n they_o be_v know_v by_o the_o forsake_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o be_v before_o by_o go_v out_o and_o draw_v many_o disciple_n after_o they_o and_o by_o their_o perverse_a doctrine_n such_o wolf_n come_v afterward_o in_o deed_n in_o diverse_a age_n arius_n mâcedonius_n nestorius_n eutyches_n luther_n caluin_n great_a bloudsucking_a wolf_n and_o waster_n of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n 35._o more_o bless_a to_o give_v gospel_n among_o many_o other_o infinite_a goodly_a thing_n and_o speech_n which_o christ_n speak_v and_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o gospel_n this_o sentence_n be_v one_o which_o s._n paul_n hear_v of_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n daily_o conversant_a with_o he_o or_o else_o learned_a of_o christ_n himself_o or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o it_o signify_v that_o whereas_o the_o world_n common_o count_v he_o happy_a that_o receive_v any_o benefit_n as_o alm_n either_o temporal_a or_o spiritual_a bless_v yet_o in_o deed_n he_o that_o give_v or_o bestow_v be_v more_o happy_a which_o if_o the_o world_n do_v well_o consider_v man_n will_v give_v alm_n fast_o than_o they_o do_v if_o it_o be_v but_o for_o their_o own_o benefit_n chap._n xxi_o from_o milentum_n go_v on_o his_o journey_n 4_o he_o can_v not_o be_v dissuade_v neither_o as_o tyre_n 8_o nor_o at_o caesarea_n in_o both_o which_o place_n the_o holy_a ghost_n revel_v how_o he_o shall_v be_v handle_v in_o jerusalem_n 10_o the_o prophet_n agabuâ_n express_o foretell_v that_o the_o jew_n there_o shall_v deliver_v he_o to_o the_o gentile_n 15_o but_o to_o jerusalem_n he_o come_v where_o be_v welcome_a to_o the_o christian_n and_o namely_o to_o james_n the_o bishop_n and_o to_o the_o priest_n while_o he_o go_v about_o to_o satisfy_v the_o christian_a jew_n there_o who_o have_v be_v misinform_v of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v teach_v it_o to_o be_v unlawful_a for_o the_o jew_n to_o keep_v moses_n law_n 27_o he_o be_v invade_v by_o the_o infidel_n jew_v and_o ready_a to_o be_v murder_v by_o they_o until_o the_o roman_a soldier_n do_v rescue_v he_o verse_n 1_o and_o when_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o sail_v be_v carry_v from_o they_o with_o a_o straight_a course_n we_o come_v to_o cóos_n and_o the_o day_n follow_a to_o rhodes_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o pátara_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o when_o we_o have_v find_v a_o ship_n that_o pass_v over_o to_o phoenîce_n go_v up_o into_o it_o we_o sail_v â_o verse_n 3_o and_o when_o we_o werâ_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o cypress_n leave_v it_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n we_o sail_v into_o syria_n and_o come_v to_o tyre_n for_o there_o the_o ship_n be_v to_o discharge_v her_o load_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o find_v disciple_n we_o tarry_v there_o seven_o day_n who_o say_v to_o paul_n by_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o the_o day_n be_v expire_v depart_v we_o go_v forward_o all_o bring_v we_o on_o
the_o way_n with_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n till_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o fall_v upon_o our_o knee_n on_o the_o shore_n we_o pray_v â_o verse_n 6_o and_o when_o we_o have_v bid_v one_o a_o other_o farewell_n we_o go_v up_o into_o the_o ship_n and_o they_o return_v unto_o their_o own_o â_o verse_n 7_o but_o we_o have_v end_v the_o navigation_n from_o tyre_n come_v down_o to_o prolomáis_n and_o salute_v the_o brethren_n we_o tarry_v one_o day_n with_o they_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o next_o day_n depart_v we_o come_v to_o caesarêa_n 5_o and_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o *_o philip_n the_o evangelist_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o we_o tarry_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o he_o have_v deacon_n four_o daughter_n virgin_n that_o do_v prophesy_v â_o verse_n 10_o and_o as_o we_o abide_v there_o for_o certain_a day_n there_o come_v a_o certain_a prophet_n from_o jewrie_n name_v agabus_n â_o verse_n 11_o he_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o we_o take_v paul_n girdle_n and_o bind_v his_o own_o hand_n &_o foot_n he_o say_v thus_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o man_n who_o girdle_n this_o be_v so_o shall_v the_o jew_n bind_v in_o jerusalem_n &_o shall_v deliver_v he_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o gentile_n â_o verse_n 12_o which_o when_o we_o have_v hear_v we_o &_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o place_n desire_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n â_o verse_n 13_o then_o paul_n answer_v and_o say_v what_o do_v you_o weep_v and_o afflict_v my_o hart_n for_o i_o be_o ready_a not_o only_o to_o be_v bind_v but_o to_o die_v also_o in_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o when_o we_o can_v not_o persuade_v he_o we_o cease_v say_v the_o will_v of_o our_o lord_n be_v do_v â_o verse_n 15_o and_o after_o these_o day_n be_v prepare_v we_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o there_o come_v also_o of_o the_o disciple_n from_o caesarêa_n with_o we_o bring_v with_o they_o one_o jason_n a_o cyprian_a with_o who_o we_o shall_v lodge_v a_o old_a disciple_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o when_o we_o be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n the_o brethren_n receive_v we_o glad_o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o day_n follow_a paul_n go_v in_o with_o we_o to_o james_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_n be_v assemble_v â_o verse_n 19_o who_o when_o he_o have_v salute_v he_o tell_v particular_o what_o god_n have_v do_v among_o the_o gentile_n by_o his_o ministry_n â_o verse_n 20_o but_o they_o hear_v it_o magnify_v god_n and_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o see_v brother_n how_o many_o thousand_o there_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n that_o have_v believe_v and_o all_o be_v zelátour_n of_o the_o law._n â_o verse_n 21_o but_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o thou_o that_o thou_o do_v teach_v those_o jew_n that_o be_v among_o the_o gentile_n to_o depart_v from_o moses_n say_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o circumcise_v their_o child_n nor_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n â_o verse_n 22_o what_o be_v it_o then_o needs_o must_v the_o multitude_n assemble_v for_o they_o will_v hear_v that_o thou_o be_v come_v â_o verse_n 23_o do_v this_o therefore_o which_o we_o tell_v thou_o there_o be_v with_o we_o four_o man_n that_o have_v a_o vow_n on_o they_o â_o verse_n 24_o take_v these_o unto_o thou_o sanctify_v thyself_o with_o they_o and_o bestow_v on_o they_o 18._o that_o they_o may_v *_o shave_v their_o head_n and_o all_o shall_v know_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o hear_v of_o thou_o be_v false_a but_o that_o thyself_o also_o walk_v â_o keep_n the_o law._n â_o verse_n 25_o but_o concern_v they_o that_o believe_v of_o the_o gentile_n 20._o *_o we_o have_v write_v decree_a that_o they_o shall_v refrain_v themselves_o from_o the_o immolate_a to_o idol_n and_o blood_n and_o suffocate_v and_o fornication_n â_o verse_n 26_o then_o paul_n take_v the_o man_n unto_o he_o the_o next_o day_n be_v purify_v with_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n show_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o *_o day_n of_o the_o purification_n 13_o until_o a_o oblation_n be_v offer_v for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o â_o verse_n 27_o but_o while_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v a_o finish_n those_o jew_n that_o be_v of_o asia_n when_o they_o have_v see_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n stir_v up_o all_o the_o people_n and_o lay_v hand_n upon_o he_o â_o verse_n 28_o cry_v you_o man_n of_o israël_n this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o against_o the_o people_n &_o the_o law_n and_o this_o place_n teach_v all_o man_n every_o where_o have_v also_o moreover_o bring_v in_o gentile_n into_o the_o temple_n and_o have_v violate_v this_o holy_a place_n â_o verse_n 29_o for_o they_o have_v see_v tromphimus_n the_o ephesian_a in_o the_o city_n with_o he_o who_o they_o suppose_v that_o paul_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o temple_n â_o verse_n 30_o and_o the_o whole_a city_n be_v in_o a_o uproar_n and_o there_o be_v make_v a_o concourse_n of_o the_o people_n and_o apprehend_v paul_n they_o draw_v he_o forth_o of_o the_o temple_n and_o immediate_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v â_o verse_n 31_o and_o as_o they_o seek_v to_o kill_v he_o it_o be_v tell_v the_o tribune_n of_o the_o band_n that_o all_o jerusalem_n be_v in_o a_o confusion_n â_o verse_n 32_o who_o forthwith_n take_v unto_o he_o soldier_n &_o centurion_n run_v down_o to_o they_o who_o when_o they_o have_v see_v the_o tribune_n and_o the_o soldier_n cease_v to_o strike_v paul_n â_o verse_n 33_o then_o the_o tribune_n come_v near_o apprehend_v he_o and_o command_v he_o to_o be_v bind_v with_o two_o chain_n and_o he_o demand_v who_o he_o be_v and_o what_o he_o have_v do_v â_o verse_n 34_o and_o some_o cry_v one_o thing_n some_o a_o other_o in_o the_o multitude_n and_o whereas_o he_o can_v not_o know_v the_o certainty_n for_o the_o tumult_n he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v lead_v follow_a into_o the_o castle_n â_o verse_n 35_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o stair_n it_o chance_v that_o he_o be_v carry_v of_o the_o soldier_n because_o of_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o people_n â_o verse_n 36_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o people_n follow_v cry_v away_o with_o he_o â_o verse_n 37_o and_o when_o paul_n begin_v to_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o castle_n he_o say_v to_o the_o tribune_n be_v it_o lawful_a for_o i_o to_o speak_v something_o to_o thou_o who_o say_v can_v thou_o speak_v greek_a â_o verse_n 38_o art_n not_o thou_o the_o egyptian_a that_o before_o these_o day_n do_v raise_v a_o tumult_n and_o do_v lead_v forth_o into_o the_o desert_n four_o thousand_o man_n that_o be_v murderer_n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o paul_n say_v to_o he_o 3._o *_o i_o be_o a_o man_n true_o a_o jewâ_n of_o tarsus_n a_o citizen_n not_o of_o a_o obscure_a city_n of_o cilicia_n and_o i_o desire_v thou_o permit_v i_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n â_o verse_n 40_o and_o when_o he_o have_v permit_v he_o paul_n stand_v on_o the_o stair_n beckon_v with_o his_o hand_n to_o the_o people_n and_o great_a silence_n be_v make_v he_o speak_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n say_v annotation_n chap._n xxi_o 9_o virgin_n virgin_n s._n luke_n note_v special_o that_o his_o daughter_n be_v virgin_n mean_v no_o doubt_n that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o state_n profession_n or_o purpose_n of_o perpetual_a virginity_n not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v young_a maid_n unmarried_a and_o that_o they_o be_v the_o rather_o for_o that_o endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n as_o s._n hierom_n say_v li._n 1_o adu_fw-la jovin_n c._n 24._o see_v oecum_fw-la c._n 29_o in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la â4_n keep_v the_o law._n unlawful_a all_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n be_v now_o in_o themselves_o dead_a and_o unprofitable_a yet_o till_o further_a propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o be_v not_o damnable_a to_o the_o keeper_n nor_o offensive_a to_o god_n but_o may_v be_v observe_v even_o of_o the_o christian_a jew_n and_o for_o fear_n of_o scandalize_a the_o weak_a of_o that_o nation_n new_o convert_v or_o prone_a to_o receive_v the_o faith_n the_o apostle_n by_o god_n suggestion_n do_v think_v it_o good_a to_o observe_v they_o as_o occasion_v require_v chap._n xxii_o be_v license_v by_o the_o tribune_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n he_o show_v they_o that_o he_o be_v once_o as_o earnest_n on_o that_o side_n as_o they_o now_o be_v 6_o and_o how_o strange_a and_o miraculous_a his_o conversion_n be_v 17_o they_o hear_v he_o quiet_o until_o he_o begin_v to_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o vision_n that_o send_v he_o away_o from_o they_o to_o the_o gentile_n 22_o then_o they_o cry_v out_o
be_v take_v act._n 21_o and_o from_o the_o tribune_n lysias_n deliver_v to_o felix_n the_o governor_n 2_o act._n 23_o 58_o and_o by_o he_o leave_v to_o festus_n 25_o act._n 24._o he_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n act._n 25_o and_o so_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n act._n 27_o where_o he_o arrive_v act._n 28._o neronis_n nativit_fw-la ascen_n  _fw-fr 2_o 58_o 25_o at_o rome_n he_o remain_v in_o free_a prison_n two_o year_n act._n 28._o and_o then_o be_v deliver_v 2_o tim._n 4._o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr after_o his_o delivery_n he_o preach_v in_o sundry_a country_n of_o the_o west_n namely_o in_o spain_n hiero._n in_o cataloge_n epiph._n hare_n 27._o himself_o write_v that_o he_o purpose_v so_o to_o do_v ro._n 15._o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n c._n â_o he_o mind_v to_o visâe_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n which_o also_o he_o do_v genebrard_n in_o chron._n  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr he_n write_v last_o of_o all_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothee_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n 2_o tim._n 4._o be_v now_o the_o second_o time_n apprehend_v and_o in_o band_n at_o rome_n theodoret._n 14_o 70_o 37_o he_o be_v behead_v at_o rome_n 14_o the_o same_o day_n that_o peter_n be_v crucify_v 70_o s._n ambros_n ser_fw-mi ãâã_d 68_o s_o maximus_n 37_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n the_o act_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o twelue_fw-mi apostle_n be_v not_o much_o write_v of_o in_o this_o book_n author_n but_o as_o *_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n do_v testify_v they_o preach_v special_o in_o these_o nation_n as_o follow_v andrew_n in_o aâhaia_n john_n in_o asia_n philip_n in_o pbrygia_n james_n in_o jewrie_n bartholomew_n in_o scythia_n thomas_n in_o india_n matthew_n in_o aethiopia_n simon_n in_o persia_n thaddâus_n in_o mesopotamia_n the_o other_o jame_v in_o spain_n mathias_n in_o palestine_n so_o distribute_v themselves_o through_o out_o the_o world_n to_o gather_v one_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o nation_n according_a as_o christ_n give_v they_o commission_n mat._n 28_o 19_o and_o as_o it_o be_v prophesy_v of_o they_o before_o psal_n 18._o their_o sound_n be_v go_v forth_o into_o every_o country_n and_o their_o word_n into_o the_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o before_o they_o depart_v one_o from_o a_o other_o the_o time_n whereof_o be_v not_o certain_o know_v *_o all_o twelue_fw-mi assemble_v together_o hieros_n &_o full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n each_o lay_v down_o his_o sentence_n agree_v upon_o twelue_v principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o appoint_v they_o for_o a_o rule_n to_o all_o believer_n which_o be_v therefore_o call_v and_o be_v the_o apostle_n crede_fw-la not_o write_v in_o paper_n as_o the_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n ruff._n &_o hiero._n locis_fw-la citatis_fw-la which_o as_o of_o old_a hiero._n count_n lucifer_n so_o at_o this_o day_n all_o solemn_o profess_v in_o their_o baptism_n either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o other_o and_o all_o that_o be_v of_o age_n and_o capacity_n be_v bind_v to_o know_v and_o believe_v every_o article_n of_o the_o âame_n which_o be_v these_o that_o follow_n the_o apostle_n crede_fw-la or_o symbolum_fw-la apostolorum_n 1_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 2_o and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n 3_o who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n 4_o suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v descend_v into_o hel._n 5_o the_o three_o day_n be_v rose_n again_o from_o death_n 6_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a 7_o from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 8_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 9_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n 10_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n 11_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n 12_o life_n everlasting_a amen_n â§_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o epistle_n in_o general_z after_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v a_o story_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o after_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o story_n of_o christ_n church_n now_o follow_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o write_v of_o such_o matter_n as_o they_o have_v then_o occasion_n to_o write_v of_o for_o be_v the_o founder_n and_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v in_o their_o time_n as_o the_o doctor_n that_o succeed_v they_o do_v after_o they_o who_o from_o the_o beginning_n unto_o this_o day_n have_v write_v epistle_n &_o book_n against_o heresy_n ever_o as_o they_o arise_v and_o of_o all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n as_o they_o have_v occasion_n minister_v unto_o they_o of_o which_o their_o do_v the_o apostle_n first_o give_v here_o the_o ensample_n as_o also_o s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n lead_v the_o way_n to_o all_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n after_o he_o for_o all_o though_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n between_o they_o for_o authority_n for_o asmuch_o as_o these_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o so_o be_v not_o any_o write_n of_o their_o successor_n yet_o the_o occasion_n and_o matter_n as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v like_a most_o of_o these_o epistle_n be_v s._n paul_n epistle_n 22._o the_o rest_n be_v call_v *_o catholicae_fw-la epistolae_fw-la the_o epistle_n catholic_a for_o s._n paul_n write_v not_o any_o epistle_n to_o all_o howbeit_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v for_o all_o the_o church_n but_o some_o to_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o to_o the_o roman_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o the_o galatian_n to_o the_o ephesian_n to_o the_o philippian_n to_o the_o colossian_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o some_o to_o particular_a person_n as_o to_o timothee_n to_o tite_n who_o be_v bishop_n among_o the_o gentile_n to_o wit_n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o crete_n and_o to_o philémon_a and_o then_o one_o to_o the_o hebrews_n who_o be_v the_o jew_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o jury_n but_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o other_o apostle_n that_o be_v of_o s._n james_n s._n peter_n s._n john_n and_o s._n jude_n be_v not_o so_o entitle_v to_o any_o one_o church_n or_o person_n except_o s._n johns_n two_o late_a short_a epistle_n which_o yet_o may_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o first_o because_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o author_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v term_v catholic_a that_o be_v universal_a for_o so_o write_v s._n james_n to_o the_o twelue_fw-mi tribe_n that_o be_v in_o dispersion_n greeting_n and_o s._n peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n thus_o to_o the_o elect_a stranger_n of_o the_o dispersion_n of_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n &_o bythinia_n in_o his_o second_o thus_o to_o they_o that_o have_v obtain_v equal_a faith_n with_o us._n likewise_o s._n jude_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o god_n the_o father_n belove_v and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n preserve_v and_o call_v s._n johns_n first_o be_v without_o title_n now_o for_o the_o occasion_n of_o their_o writing_n whereby_o we_o shall_v perceive_v the_o matter_n or_o argument_n that_o they_o handle_v it_o must_v be_v remember_v as_o the_o story_n of_o that_o time_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v at_o large_a declare_v that_o the_o church_n than_o beginning_n be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o in_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o in_o the_o gentile_n yea_o and_o special_o in_o the_o gentile_n which_o thing_n offend_v the_o jew_n many_o way_n for_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o see_v so_o much_o as_o their_o own_o country_n to_o receive_v he_o for_o christ_n who_o they_o have_v reject_v and_o crucify_v much_o less_o to_o see_v they_o preach_v he_o to_o the_o gentile_n also_o that_o offend_v even_o those_o jew_n also_o that_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n howbeit_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v catholic_n and_o therefore_o not_o obstinate_a be_v satisfy_v when_o they_o understand_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o it_o be_v god_n pleasure_n as_o act._n 11._o we_o read_v but_o other_o of_o the_o become_v heretic_n &_o preach_v to_o the_o christian_a gentile_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o receive_v also_o the_o jew_n religion_n of_o such_o we_o read_v act._n 15._o unless_o you_o be_v circumcise_v you_o can_v not_o be_v save_v and_o as_o these_o do_v so_o preach_v against_o the_o truth_n so_o do_v the_o unchristened_a jew_v not_o only_a themselves_o persecute_v but_o also_o stir_v up_o the_o idolatrous_a gentile_n every_o where_o to_o persecute_v the_o christian_n by_o such_o obstinacy_n provoke_v god_n to_o reprobate_v their_o nation_n which_o yet_o they_o think_v unpossible_a to_o be_v do_v because_o they_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o
for_o he_o be_v god_n minister_v unto_o thou_o for_o good_a but_o if_o thou_o do_v evil_a fear_n for_o he_o â³_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n without_o cause_n for_o he_o be_v god_n minister_n a_o revenger_n unto_o wrath_n to_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a â_o verse_n 5_o therefore_o be_v subject_a of_o necessity_n not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n â_o verse_n 6_o for_o therefore_o â³_o you_o give_v tribute_n also_o for_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n serve_v unto_o this_o purpose_n 21._o â_o verse_n 7_o render_v therefore_o to_o all_o man_n their_o dew_n epiphanie_n *_o to_o who_o tribute_n tribute_n to_o who_o custom_n custom_n to_o who_o fear_n fear_v to_o whon_fw-mi honour_n honour_n â_o verse_n 8_o owe_v no_o man_n any_o thing_n but_o that_o you_o love_v one_o a_o other_o for_o he_o that_o love_v his_o neighbour_n 13._o have_v commandment_n fulfil_v the_o la_o â_o verse_n 9_o for_o thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v advoutrie_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_v thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o commandment_n 18._o it_o be_v comprise_v in_o this_o word_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o â_o verse_n 10_o the_o love_n of_o thy_o neighbour_n work_v no_o evil_a love_n therefore_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o la_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o that_o know_v the_o season_n advent_a that_o it_o be_v now_o the_o hour_n for_o we_o to_o rise_v from_o sleep_n for_o now_o our_o salvation_n be_v near_a than_o when_o we_o believe_v â_o verse_n 12_o the_o night_n be_v pass_v and_o the_o day_n be_v at_o hand_n let_v we_o therefore_o cast_v of_o the_o work_n of_o darkness_n and_o do_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o light_n â_o verse_n 13_o as_o in_o the_o day_n let_v we_o walk_v honest_o not_o in_o banketing_n and_o drunkenness_n not_o in_o chambering_n and_o impudicity_n not_o in_o contention_n and_o emulation_n â_o verse_n 14_o but_o do_v you_o on_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â¢_o and_o make_v not_o provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n in_o concupiscenee_n annotation_n chap._n xiii_o 1._o every_o soul_n be_v subject_a because_o the_o apostle_n preach_v liberty_n by_o christ_n from_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n and_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o give_v all_o the_o faithful_a both_o example_n and_o commandment_n to_o obey_v god_n more_o than_o man_n and_o withal_o ever_o charge_v they_o express_o to_o be_v obedient_a and_o subject_a to_o their_o prelate_n as_o to_o they_o which_o have_v cure_v of_o their_o soul_n and_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n place_v over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v many_o in_o those_o day_n new_o convert_v that_o think_v they_o solue_v free_a from_o all_o temporal_a botestat_n carnal_a lord_n and_o humane_a creature_n or_o power_n whereupon_o the_o bondman_n take_v himself_o to_o be_v loose_a from_o his_o servitude_n the_o subject_n from_o his_o sovereign_n be_v he_o emperor_n king_n duke_z or_o what_o other_o secular_a case_n magistrate_n so_o ever_o special_o the_o prince_n of_o those_o day_n be_v heathen_n and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o christ_n religion_n for_o which_o cause_n and_o for_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v untrue_o charge_v of_o their_o adversary_n that_o they_o withdrew_n man_n from_o order_n and_o obedience_n to_o civil_a law_n and_o officer_n s._n paul_n here_o as_o s._n peter_n do_v 1_o chap._n 2._o clear_v himself_o and_o express_o charge_v every_o man_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o temporal_a prince_n and_o superior_a not_o every_o man_n to_o all_o that_o be_v in_o office_n or_o superiority_n but_o every_o one_o to_o he_o who_o god_n have_v put_v in_o authority_n over_o he_o by_o that_o he_o be_v his_o master_n lord_n king_n or_o such_o like_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d either_o to_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n or_o regiment_n of_o their_o soul_n for_o most_o part_n be_v pagan_n who_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o will_n man_n to_o obey_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o to_o they_o in_o such_o thing_n only_o as_o ãâ¦ã_o and_o what_o other_o cause_n so_o ever_o consist_v with_o god_n holy_a will_n and_o ordinance_n 29._o for_o *_o against_o god_n no_o power_n may_v be_v ãâã_d 1._o no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n god_n s._n chrysostome_n here_o note_v that_o power_n ãâã_d &_o superiority_n be_v god_n ordinance_n ãâã_d but_o not_o ofâsomes_n all_o prince_n because_o to_o any_o may_v usur_v ãâã_d who_o reign_n by_o his_o permission_n only_o and_o not_o by_o his_o appointment_n nor_o all_o action_n that_o every_o one_o do_v in_o and_o by_o his_o sovereign_a power_n as_o juâians_n apostaste_n and_o ãâã_d of_o catholic_n ãâ¦ã_o oppression_n of_o the_o israelite_n achaâs_n persecution_n of_o the_o prophet_n neros_n execute_v of_o the_o apostle_n herod_n and_o pilat_n condemn_v of_o christ_n all_o which_o thing_n god_n permit_v they_o by_o he_o abuse_v of_o their_o power_n to_o accomplish_v ãâã_d they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o cause_v and_o ordinance_n 2._o they_o that_o resist_v superior_n whosoever_o resist_v or_o obei_v not_o his_o lawful_a superior_a in_o those_o cause_n wherein_o he_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o withstand_v god_n appointment_n &_o sin_v âoadly_o and_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v both_o in_o this_o world_n by_o his_o superior_a and_o by_o god_n in_o the_o next_o life_n for_o in_o temporal_a government_n and_o cause_n the_o christian_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v their_o heathen_a imperour_n though_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o be_v bind_v under_o pain_n of_o deââation_n to_o obey_v their_o apostle_n and_o prelate_n and_o not_o to_o obey_v their_o king_n or_o emperor_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o when_o we_o be_v command_v to_o obey_v our_o superior_n it_o be_v mean_v always_o and_o only_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o may_v lawful_o command_v and_o in_o respect_n of_o such_o matter_n wherein_o they_o be_v our_o superior_n 4._o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v here_o special_o of_o temporal_a power_n we_o may_v see_v by_o the_o sword_n power_n tribute_n &_o external_a compulsion_n which_o he_o here_o attribute_v to_o they_o and_o the_o christian_a man_n than_o have_v no_o doubt_n whether_o they_o shall_v obey_v their_o spiritual_a power_n but_o now_o the_o disease_n be_v clean_o contrary_a for_o all_o be_v give_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n and_o nothing_o to_o the_o spiritual_a which_o express_o be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v command_v to_o be_v subject_a there_o unto_o as_o to_o christ_n own_o word_n and_o will_n superiority_n there_o be_v heretic_n call_v begardi_n that_o take_v away_o all_o rule_n and_o superiority_n the_o wââlefists_n will_v obey_v nor_o prince_n nor_o prelate_n if_o he_o be_v once_o in_o deadly_a sin_n the_o protestant_n of_o our_o time_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o all_o country_n where_o the_o secular_a sword_n be_v draw_v against_o their_o sect_n care_v neither_o for_o the_o one_o nor_o for_o the_o other_o though_o they_o extol_v only_o the_o secular_a when_o it_o make_v for_o they_o superior_n the_o catholic_n only_o most_o humble_o obey_v both_o even_o according_a to_o god_n ordinance_n the_o one_o in_o temporal_a cause_n and_o the_o other_o in_o spiritual_a in_o which_o order_n both_o these_o state_n have_v bless_o flourish_v in_o all_o christian_a country_n ever_o since_o christeâ_n time_n and_o it_o be_v the_o very_a way_n to_o preserve_v both_o as_o one_o day_n all_o the_o world_n shall_v confess_v with_o us._n 6._o ten_o give_v tribute_n though_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v ready_a to_o serve_v his_o temporal_a prince_n with_o his_o good_n 17._o by_o tribute_n of_o what_o other_o lawful_a tax_n and_o subsidy_n so_o ever_o yet_o they_o may_v exempt_v by_o privilege_n who_o they_o think_v good_a tribute_n as_o in_o all_o country_n christian_a priest_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n who_o minister_n they_o be_v have_v by_o the_o grant_v and_o ancient_a charter_n or_o king_n be_v he_o except_v and_o exempt_v notwithstanding_o they_o be_v never_o unready_a to_o serve_v voluntare_o their_o sovereign_a in_o all_o common_a cause_n with_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v see_v annot._n in_o mat._n 17_o 26._o ââ_o not_o in_o ãâã_d this_o be_v the_o very_a place_n which_o s._n augustine_n that_o glorious_a doctor_n conversion_n be_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n direct_v unto_o at_o his_o first_o miraculous_a and_o happy_a conversion_n not_o only_o to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o also_o to_o perpetual_a continency_n by_o this_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n tolle_o lege_fw-la tolle_o lege_fw-la take_v up_o and_o read_v take_v up_o
and_o read_v as_o himself_o tell_v li._n 8_o confess_v 12._o chap._n xiiii_o like_o a_o moderator_n and_o peacemaker_n between_o the_o firm_a christian_n who_o be_v the_o gentile_n and_o the_o infirm_a who_o be_v the_o christian_a jew_n have_v yet_o a_o scruple_n to_o cease_v from_o keep_v the_o ceremonial_a merte_n and_o day_n of_o moses_n law_n be_v exhort_v the_o jew_n ãâã_d to_o condemn_v the_o gentil_n use_v his_o liberty_n and_o the_o gentil_n again_o ãâã_d to_o condemn_v the_o âârupulous_a âew_a but_o rather_o to_o abstain_v from_o use_v his_o liberty_n and_o they_o offend_v the_o jew_n ãâã_d be_v a_o occasion_n unto_o he_o of_o apo_v verse_n 1_o and_o he_o that_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n take_v unto_o you_o not_o in_o disputation_n of_o cogitation_n â_o verse_n 2_o for_o one_o believe_v that_o he_o may_v â³_o eat_v all_o thing_n but_o he_o that_o be_v weak_a eat_v let_v he_o eat_v '_o herb_n â_o verse_n 3_o let_v not_o he_o that_o eat_v despise_v he_o that_o eat_v not_o and_o he_o that_o eat_v not_o let_v he_o not_o judge_v he_o that_o eat_v for_o god_n have_v take_v he_o to_o he_o â_o verse_n 4_o who_o be_v thou_o that_o iudge_v a_o other_o man_n servant_n to_o his_o own_o lord_n he_o stand_v or_o fall_v and_o he_o shall_v stand_v for_o god_n be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o stand_v â_o verse_n 5_o for_o one_o judge_v â³_o between_o day_n and_o day_n and_o a_o other_o judge_v every_o day_n let_v every_o one_o abound_v â³_o in_o his_o own_o sense_n â_o verse_n 6_o he_o that_o respect_v the_o day_n respect_v to_o our_o lord_n and_o he_o that_o eat_v eat_v to_o our_o lord_n for_o he_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n and_o he_o that_o eat_v not_o to_o our_o lord_n he_o eat_v not_o and_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n â_o verse_n 7_o for_o none_o of_o we_o live_v to_o himself_o &_o no_o man_n die_v to_o himself_o â_o verse_n 8_o for_o whether_o we_o live_v we_o live_v to_o our_o lord_n or_o whether_o we_o die_v we_o die_v to_o our_o lord_n therefore_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o whether_o we_o die_v we_o be_v our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 9_o for_o to_o this_o end_n christ_n die_v and_o rise_v again_o that_o he_o may_v have_v dominion_n both_o of_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o the_o live_n â_o verse_n 10_o but_o thou_o why_o iudge_v thou_o thy_o brother_n or_o thou_o why_o do_v thou_o despise_v thy_o brother_n 10._o for_o *_o we_o shall_v all_o stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 11_o for_o it_o be_v write_v live_v i_o say_v our_o lord_n 23._o that_o every_o knee_n shall_v bow_n to_o i_o and_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v to_o god_n â_o verse_n 12_o therefore_o every_o one_o of_o we_o for_o himself_o shall_v render_v account_n to_o god_n â_o verse_n 13_o let_v we_o therefore_o no_o more_o judge_v one_o a_o other_o but_o this_o judge_v you_o rather_o that_o you_o put_v not_o a_o stumble_a block_n or_o a_o scandal_n to_o your_o brother_n â_o verse_n 14_o i_o know_v and_o be_o persuade_v in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o nothing_o be_v use_v common_a of_o itself_o but_o to_o he_o that_o suppose_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v common_a to_o he_o it_o be_v common_a â_o verse_n 15_o for_o if_o because_o of_o meat_n thy_o brother_n be_v greeve_v now_o thou_o walk_v not_o according_a to_o charity_n *_o do_v not_o with_o thy_o meat_n destroy_v he_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v 8._o â_o verse_n 16_o let_v not_o then_o our_o good_a be_v blaspheme_v â_o verse_n 17_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v â³_o not_o meat_n and_o drink_v but_o justice_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 18_o for_o he_o that_o in_o this_o serve_v christ_n please_v god_n and_o be_v acceptable_a to_o man_n â_o verse_n 19_o therefore_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o peace_n let_v we_o pursue_v and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o edify_v one_o towards_o a_o other_o let_v we_o keep_v â_o verse_n 20_o destroy_v not_o the_o work_n of_o god_n for_o meat_n 15_o *_o all_o thing_n in_o deed_n be_v clean_o but_o it_o be_v ill_a for_o the_o man_n that_o eat_v by_o give_v offence_n â_o verse_n 21_o it_o be_v good_a not_o to_o eat_v flesh_n and_o not_o to_o drink_v wine_n nor_o that_o wherein_o thy_o brother_n be_v offend_v or_o scandalize_v or_o weaken_v â_o verse_n 22_o haste_v thou_o faith_n â³_o have_v it_o with_o thyself_o fore_o god_n blessed_n be_v he_o that_o judge_v not_o himself_o in_o that_o which_o he_o approve_v â_o verse_n 23_o but_o â³_o he_o that_o discern_v if_o he_o eat_v be_v damn_v because_o not_o of_o faith_n for_o â³_o all_o that_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n annotation_n chap._n xiiii_o 2._o eat_v all_o thing_n by_o similitude_n of_o word_n the_o simple_a be_v soon_o deceive_v and_o heretic_n make_v their_o vantage_n of_o any_o thing_n to_o seduce_v the_o unlearned_a there_o be_v diverse_a meat_n forbid_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o for_o signification_n make_v and_o count_v unclean_a whereof_o the_o jew_n may_v not_o eat_v aâ_n all_o meat_n as_o pork_n hare_n coney_n and_o such_o like_a both_o of_o fish_n fowl_n and_o beast_n a_o great_a number_n christ_n discharge_v all_o they_o that_o become_v christian_n after_o his_o passion_n of_o that_o observance_n and_o all_o other_o ceremony_n of_o the_o old_a law_n notwithstanding_o because_o diverse_a that_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o law_n have_v a_o religion_n and_o conscience_n sudden_o to_o foresake_n their_o former_a manner_n the_o apostle_n here_o admonish_v such_o as_o bestrong_a and_o ãâã_d instruct_v in_o the_o case_n to_o hear_v with_o the_o weak_a sort_n that_o be_v christian_n can_v not_o you_o find_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o eat_v and_o use_v the_o meat_n forbid_v by_o god_n in_o the_o law_n as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o warn_v the_o weak_a that_o will_v not_o eat_v not_o to_o take_v offence_n or_o scandal_n at_o they_o that_o do_v eat_v without_o scruple_n any_o of_o the_o irregular_a or_o forbid_a meat_n in_o the_o law_n nor_o in_o any_o wise_a to_o judge_v or_o condemn_v the_o eater_n but_o to_o commit_v that_o to_o god_n and_o final_o that_o neither_o neither_o shall_v condemn_v the_o other_o for_o eat_v or_o not_o eat_v church_n now_o the_o protestant_n fonnd_o apply_v all_o this_o to_o the_o fast_n of_o the_o church_n and_o difference_n of_o meat_n in_o the_o same_o as_o though_o the_o church_n do_v forbid_v any_o meat_n whole_o never_o to_o be_v eat_v or_o touch_v or_o make_v any_o creature_n unclean_a or_o otherwise_o prescribe_v any_o abstinence_n then_o for_o chastise_v of_o man_n body_n and_o service_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o great_a blindness_n that_o they_o can_v put_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o christ_n fast_n of_o forty_o day_n mat._n 4._o johns_n abstain_v from_o all_o delicate_a meat_n and_o drink_n mat._n 11._o the_o widow_n annes_n luc._n â_o 1â_n the_o nazareite_n num._n 6._o the_o recabite_n jerem._n 15_o 14._o the_o ninivity_n jon._n 3._o s._n paul_n 2_o cor._n 11_o 27._o s._n timothees_n 1_o tim._n 5_o 23._o johns_n disciple_n and_o christ_n disciple_n fast_o mat._n 9_o 14._o 15._o thing_n which_o he_o say_v they_o shall_v keep_v after_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o and_o the_o ceremonial_a distinction_n of_o creature_n and_o meat_n clean_o and_o unclean_a in_o the_o old_a law._n of_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o apostle_n treat_v in_o all_o this_o chapter_n &_o of_o none_o other_o at_o al._n therefore_o when_o the_o protestant_n by_o the_o word_n of_o this_o place_n will_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v either_o make_v free_a from_o fast_v and_o from_o obey_v the_o church_n commandment_n or_o follow_a christ_n example_n in_o that_o matter_n or_o that_o the_o observer_n of_o christian_a fast_n be_v weak_a in_o faith_n &_o ought_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a condemn_v of_o sin_n the_o breaker_n of_o the_o prescribe_a fast_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n they_o do_v abuse_v ignorant_o or_o wilful_o the_o apostle_n word_n and_o discourse_n 5._o between_o day_n and_o day_n day_n by_o the_o like_a deceit_n they_o abuse_v this_o place_n against_o the_o holiday_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o b._n mother_n and_o saint_n which_o concern_v only_o the_o jew_n festivity_n and_o observation_n of_o time_n whereof_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n c_o 4._o 10._o 6._o every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o sense_n drink_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o give_v freedom_n as_o the_o church_n enemy_n will_v have_v it_o that_o every_o man_n may_v do_v or_o think_v what_o he_o listen_v but_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o judaical_a observation_n of_o day_n and_o meat_n &_o that_o for_o a_o time_n only_o till_o the_o
that_o this_o epistle_n be_v not_o send_v enclose_v to_o s._n peter_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o his_o mean_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o some_o of_o the_o assembly_n it_o be_v very_o like_o it_o be_v recommend_v to_o some_o one_o principal_a man_n or_o other_o that_o be_v not_o here_o name_v and_o twenty_o cause_n there_o may_v be_v unknowen_a to_o us._n why_o he_o salute_v he_o not_o about_o no_o cause_n why_o our_o adversary_n upon_o such_o frivolous_a reason_n shall_v reprove_v a_o approve_a truth_n for_o even_o as_o well_o may_v they_o say_v that_o s._n john_n be_v never_o at_o ephesus_n because_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n do_v not_o salute_v he_o and_o plain_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v the_o roman_a seat_n and_o faith_n of_o peter_n which_o they_o as_o all_o heretic_n before_o they_o do_v fear_n and_o hate_n see_v and_o which_o will_v be_v their_o bane_n and_o they_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o argument_n which_o convince_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n therefore_o to_o conclude_v we_o say_v to_o they_o in_o s._n augustine_n word_n 51._o why_o call_v you_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n what_o have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v against_o you_o in_o which_o s._n peter_n do_v sit_v and_o from_o which_o by_o nefarious_a fury_n you_o have_v separate_v yourselves_o 16._o holy_a kiss_n pax._n hereof_o and_o by_o the_o common_a usage_n of_o the_o first_o christian_n who_o have_v special_a regard_n of_o unity_n and_o peace_n among_o themselves_o and_o for_o asigne_n and_o protestation_n thereof_o ro._n kiss_v one_o a_o other_o come_v our_o holy_a ceremony_n of_o give_v the_o pax_n or_o kiss_v one_o a_o other_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o bless_a mass_n 17._o to_o mark_v they_o say_v he_o careful_o warn_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o sedition_n sower_n of_o sect_n and_o dissension_n in_o religion_n and_o this_o ever_o to_o be_v their_o mark_n if_o they_o shall_v teach_v or_o move_v they_o to_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o that_o which_o they_o have_v learn_v at_o their_o conversion_n not_o bid_v they_o to_o examine_v the_o case_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o their_o first_o form_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n deliver_v to_o they_o before_o they_o have_v or_o do_v read_v any_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 18._o but_o their_o own_o belly_n voluptuousness_n howsoever_o heretic_n pretend_v in_o word_n and_o external_a show_n of_o their_o sheep_n cote_n in_o deed_n they_o seek_v but_o after_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n &_o by_o the_o apostle_n to_o own_o testimony_n we_o be_v warrant_v so_o to_o judge_v of_o they_o as_o of_o man_n that_o in_o deed_n have_v no_o religion_n nor_o conscience_n 19_o your_o obedience_n against_o heretic_n and_o their_o illusion_n there_o be_v no_o better_a way_n than_o in_o simplicity_n to_o cleave_v unto_o that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v before_o for_o the_o which_o the_o roman_a obedience_n be_v much_o commend_v see_v annot._n upon_o the_o first_o chap._n vers_fw-la 8._o â§_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n how_o s._n paul_n plant_v the_o church_n at_o corinth_n continue_v there_o a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a together_o we_o read_v act._n 18._o after_o that_o when_o he_o be_v at_o ephesus_n act._n 19_o about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o year_n that_o he_o abide_v there_o he_o write_v this_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n for_o even_o as_o s._n luke_n there_o write_v when_o these_o thing_n be_v end_v 21._o paul_n purpose_v in_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o have_v go_v over_o macedonia_n and_o achaia_n to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n so_o likewise_o do_v s._n paul_n himself_o write_v here_o 5._o i_o will_v come_v to_o you_o in_o achaia_n when_o i_o shall_v have_v go_v over_o macedonia_n for_o i_o will_v go_v over_o macedonia_n but_o i_o will_v tarry_v at_o ephesus_n until_o pentecost_n the_o matter_n that_o he_o write_v of_o be_v not_o one_o as_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o diverse_a partly_o such_o fault_n of_o they_o as_o be_v signify_v unto_o he_o by_o they_o that_o be_v of_o chloè_fw-la 1_o cor._n 1_o 11._o partly_o such_o question_n as_o themselves_o write_v to_o he_o of_o and_o concern_v the_o thing_n that_o you_o write_v to_o i_o 1_o cor._n 7_o 1._o for_o so_o we_o may_v as_o it_o seem_v divide_v the_o epistle_n into_o these_o two_o part_n or_o to_o put_v all_o together_o he_o write_v of_o eight_o thing_n 1_o of_o ãâã_d schism_n begin_v among_o they_o by_o occasion_n of_o certain_a preacher_n who_o in_o ãâã_d second_o epistle_n he_o touch_v more_o plain_o as_o be_v false_a apostle_n chap._n 1._o â_o 3_o 4._o 2_o of_o a_o incestuous_a fornicator_n and_o some_o that_o go_v to_o la_o before_o infidel_n chap._n 5._o 6._o 3_o of_o matrimony_n and_o continency_n chap._n 7._o 4_o of_o ãâã_d saâraficed_v to_o idol_n chap._n 8._o 9_o 10._o 5_o of_o his_o tradition_n chap._n 11._o 6_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n chap._n 12._o 13._o 14._o 7_o of_o the_o resurrection_n chap._n ãâ¦ã_o of_o the_o gentile_n to_o succour_v the_o christian_n ãâã_d at_o hieru_n salem_fw-la chap._n 16._o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n chap._n i._n after_o salutation_n preacher_n 4_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o grace_n of_o their_o church_n 10_o he_o dehort_v they_o from_o their_o schismatical_a boast_n against_o one_o a_o other_o in_o their_o baptizer_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o must_v boast_v only_o in_o christ_n for_o their_o baptism_n 17_o and_o in_o their_o preacher_n who_o have_v the_o wisdom_n of_o word_n tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o cross_n whereby_o god_n save_v the_o world_n and_o wherein_o only_a christian_n shall_v boast_v 26_o see_v god_n of_o purpose_n choose_v the_o contemptible_a that_o so_o himself_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n verse_n 1_o paul_n call_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o will_v of_o god_n and_o sósthenes_n a_o brother_n â_o verse_n 2_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v at_o corinth_n to_o the_o sanctify_a in_o christ_n jesus_n call_v to_o be_v saint_n with_o all_o that_o invocate_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o every_o place_n of_o they_o and_o we_o â_o verse_n 3_o grace_n to_o you_o and_o peace_n from_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 4_o i_o give_v thanks_n to_o my_o god_n always_o for_o you_o for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o be_v give_v you_o in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 5_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n you_o be_v make_v scotfree_a in_o he_o in_o all_o utterance_n and_o â_o in_o all_o knowledge_n â_o verse_n 6_o as_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n be_v confirm_v in_o you_o â_o verse_n 7_o so_o that_o nothing_o be_v want_v to_o you_o in_o any_o grace_n expect_v the_o revelation_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 8_o who_o also_o will_v confirm_v you_o unto_o the_o end_n without_o crime_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 9_o god_n be_v faithful_a by_o who_o you_o be_v call_v into_o the_o society_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n by_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o you_o all_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n among_o you_o but_o that_o you_o be_v perfect_a in_o one_o sense_n &_o in_o one_o knowledge_n â_o verse_n 11_o for_o it_o be_v signify_v unto_o i_o my_o brethren_n of_o you_o by_o they_o that_o be_v of_o chloè_n that_o there_o be_v contention_n among_o you_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o i_o mean_v this_o for_o that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o say_v master_n i_o certes_o be_o paul_n &_o i_o apollo_n but_o i_o cephas_n and_o i_o christ_n â_o verse_n 13_o be_v christ_n divide_v why_o be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o or_o in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n be_v you_o baptize_v â_o verse_n 14_o i_o give_v god_n thanks_n 8._o that_o i_o baptize_v none_o of_o you_o but_o *_o crispus_n and_o caius_n â_o verse_n 15_o lest_o any_o man_n say_v that_o in_o my_o name_n you_o be_v baptize_v â_o verse_n 16_o and_o i_o baptize_v also_o the_o house_n of_o stéphanas_n but_o i_o know_v not_o if_o i_o have_v baptize_v any_o other_o â_o verse_n 17_o for_o christ_n send_v i_o not_o to_o baptize_v but_o to_o evangelise_v not_o in_o wisdom_n of_o speech_n that_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o make_v void_a â_o verse_n 18_o for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o they_o in_o deed_n
and_o just_o answer_v to_o the_o time_n and_o weight_n of_o his_o travel_n and_o work_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o scripture_n say_v 18._o dignus_fw-la est_fw-la operarius_fw-la mercede_fw-la sva_fw-la the_o workman_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o hire_n rather_o then_o a_o free_a gift_n though_o because_o faithful_a man_n must_v acknowledge_v that_o their_o merit_n be_v the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o rather_o use_v the_o word_n reward_n than_o hire_n 12._o stipend_n or_o repayment_n though_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o diverse_a place_n of_o holy_a write_v as_o *_o my_o merces_fw-la reward_n be_v with_o i_o to_o render_v to_o every_o one_o *_o according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o our_o lord_n will_v âender_v unto_o i_o according_a to_o my_o justice_n ps_n 1â_n and_o the_o very_a word_n itself_o merit_v equivalent_a to_o the_o greek_a be_v use_v thus_o ãâã_d mercy_n shall_v make_v a_o place_n to_o every_o one_o *_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n ecclâi_fw-la 16_o 15._o and_o if_o you_o do_v your_o justice_n before_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v reward_n in_o heaven_n mat._n 6_o 1._o where_o you_o see_v that_o the_o reward_n of_o heaven_n be_v recompense_n of_o justice_n and_o the_o evasion_n of_o the_o heretic_n be_v frivolous_a and_o evident_o false_a as_o the_o former_a and_o like_a word_n do_v convince_v for_o they_o say_v heaven_n be_v our_o merces_fw-la or_o reward_n not_o because_o be_v be_v due_a to_o our_o work_n but_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n where_o the_o word_n be_v plain_a according_a to_o every_o man_n work_n or_o labour_n upon_o which_o work_n and_o for_o which_o work_n conditional_o the_o promise_n of_o heaven_n be_v make_v 12._o upon_o this_o foundation_n the_o foundaion_n be_v christ_n and_o faith_n in_o he_o work_v by_o charity_n the_o uppe_n building_n may_v be_v either_o pure_a and_o perfect_a matter_n of_o gold_n stubble_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n which_o according_a to_o the_o most_o authentical_a and_o probable_a exposition_n be_v good_a work_n of_o charity_n and_o all_o christian_a justice_n do_v by_o god_n grace_n or_o else_o wood_n hay_n stubble_n which_o signify_v the_o manifold_a act_n of_o man_n infirmity_n and_o his_o venial_a sin_n which_o more_a or_o less_o mix_v and_o meddle_v with_o the_o better_a matter_n aforesaid_a require_v more_o or_o less_o punishment_n or_o purgation_n at_o the_o day_n of_o our_o death_n at_o which_o day_n if_o by_o penance_n or_o other_o mean_n in_o the_o church_n the_o say_v venial_a sin_n be_v before_o hand_n cleanse_v there_o shall_v need_v no_o purgiug_n at_o all_o but_o they_o shall_v straight_o receive_v the_o reward_n due_a to_o they_o 13._o shall_v be_v manifest_a whether_o our_o life_n and_o work_n be_v pure_a and_o need_v no_o cleanse_n fire_n now_o in_o this_o world_n be_v hard_o to_o judge_v but_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v at_o our_o death_n will_v make_v it_o plain_a in_o what_o term_n every_o man_n life_n be_v towards_o god_n for_o then_o purgatory_n fire_n shall_v reveal_v and_o prove_v it_o for_o whosoever_o have_v any_o impure_a matter_n of_o venial_a sin_n or_o such_o other_o dette_n to_o god_n justice_n paiable_a and_o purgable_a must_v into_o that_o fire_n and_o after_o due_a payment_n and_o cleanse_v be_v save_v through_o the_o same_o where_o the_o work_n of_o the_o perfect_a man_n and_o such_o as_o die_v with_o all_o dette_n pay_v cleanse_v or_o forgive_v be_v quit_v from_o the_o fire_n and_o never_o incur_v damage_n pain_n or_o loss_n thereby_o the_o place_n of_o father_n expound_v this_o for_o purgatory_n be_v very_o many_o most_o evident_a which_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o last_o annotation_n follow_a 1â_n the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v declare_v that_o this_o purgation_n rather_o signify_v the_o place_n of_o god_n justice_n after_o our_o death_n than_o any_o affliction_n in_o this_o life_n the_o apostle_n precise_a specify_v of_o fire_n declare_v and_o of_o reveal_v and_o notify_v the_o difference_n of_o man_n work_n by_o the_o same_o which_o be_v not_o do_v evident_o ever_o in_o this_o life_n lord_n and_o namely_o the_o word_n day_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o common_o and_o proper_o signify_v in_o scripture_n and_o namely_o in_o this_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 3_o 5._o 2_o cor._n 1_o 1â_n philip._n 1_o 10._o 6._o 1_o thes_n â_o 2._o 2_o thes_n 2_o 2._o either_o the_o particular_a or_o the_o general_a judgement_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o trial_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o proper_o nor_o literal_o mean_v any_o affliction_n or_o adversity_n of_o this_o life_n locum_fw-la as_o caluin_n also_o confess_v coin_v a_o foolish_a new_a construction_n of_o his_o own_o where_o you_o may_v note_v also_o in_o that_o man_n commentary_n that_o this_o word_n dies_fw-la domini_fw-la be_v so_o prejudicial_a against_o he_o and_o all_o other_o exposition_n of_o the_o trial_n to_o be_v make_v in_o this_o world_n that_o he_o will_v glad_o have_v domini_fw-la ouâ_n read_v thus_o a_o day_n shall_v ââme_n which_o shall_v open_v etc._n etc._n ãâã_d where_o understand_v that_o if_o it_o be_v only_a die_n as_o *_o in_o the_o greek_a yet_o thereby_o also_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o signify_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n as_o 2_o tim._n 1_o 12._o 28._o and_o 2_o tim._n 4_o 8._o and_o heb._n 10_o 25_o the_o day_n as_o in_o this_o place_n with_o the_o greek_a article_n only_o which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o dies_fw-la illa_fw-la or_o dies_fw-la domini_fw-la 15._o as_o by_o fire_n s._n augustine_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o psalm_n 37._o lord_n rebuke_v i_o not_o in_o thy_o indignation_n nor_o amend_v i_o in_o thy_o wrath_n for_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v say_v he_o that_o some_o be_v amend_v in_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o be_v rebuke_v in_o his_o indignation_n and_o not_o all_o perhaps_o that_o be_v rebuke_v shall_v be_v amend_v but_o yet_o some_o there_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o amend_v fire_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o sure_o because_o amend_v it_o âamed_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n but_o some_o there_o shall_v be_v that_o shall_v be_v rebuke_v and_o not_o amend_v to_o who_o he_o shall_v say_v go_v you_o into_o everlasting_a fire_n fear_v therefore_o these_o more_o grevous_a pain_n he_o desire_v that_o he_o may_v neither_o be_v rebuke_v in_o indignation_n by_o eternal_a fire_n nor_o amend_v in_o his_o wrath_n that_o be_v to_o say_v purge_v i_o in_o this_o life_n and_o make_v i_o such_o a_o one_o as_o shall_v not_o need_v the_o amend_v fire_n be_v for_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v save_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n wherefore_o but_o because_o here_o they_o build_v upon_o this_o foundation_n wood_n hay_n stubble_n for_o if_o they_o do_v build_v gold_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n they_o shall_v be_v secure_a from_o both_o fire_n not_o only_o from_o that_o eternal_a which_o shall_v torment_v the_o impious_a eternal_o but_o also_o from_o that_o which_o shall_v amend_v they_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o fire_n for_o it_o be_v say_v he_o shall_v be_v safe_a yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n and_o because_o it_o be_v say_v he_o shall_v be_v safe_a that_o fire_n be_v contemn_v yea_o very_o though_o safe_a by_o fire_n yet_o that_o fire_n shall_v be_v more_o grevous_a life_n than_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n can_v suffer_v in_o this_o life_n and_o you_o know_v how_o great_a evil_n the_o wicked_a have_v suffer_v and_o may_v suffer_v yet_o they_o have_v suffer_v such_o as_o the_o good_a also_o may_v suffer_v for_o what_o have_v any_o malefactor_n suffer_v by_o the_o law_n that_o a_o martyr_n have_v not_o suffer_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n these_o evil_n therefore_o that_o be_v here_o be_v much_o more_o easy_a and_o yet_o see_v how_o man_n not_o to_o suffer_v they_o do_v whatsoever_o thou_o command_v how_o much_o better_o do_v they_o that_o which_o god_n command_v that_o they_o may_v not_o suffer_v thâse_a great_a pain_n thus_o far_o s._n augustine_n see_v s._n ambr._n upon_o this_o place_n 1_o cor._n 3._o &_o ser._n 20_o in_o psal_n â18_n hiero._n li._n 2_o c._n 13_o adu_fw-la jovinianum_fw-la gieg._n li._n 4._o dialog_n c._n â9_n &_o in_o psal_n 1._o pânit_fw-la in_o principie_n origen_n ãâã_d â_o in_o c._n 15._o exod._n and_o bâ_n 14_o in_o c._n 24._o levit._n chap._n four_o he_o require_v to_o be_v esteem_v for_o his_o office_n but_o regard_v not_o to_o be_v praise_v of_o man_n for_o his_o virtue_n consider_v that_o neither_o his_o own_o conscience_n be_v a_o sufficient_a judge_n thereof_o but_o only_o god_n who_o see_v al._n 8_o he_o touch_v they_o for_o contemn_v in_o their_o pride_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o miserable_a 18_o threaten_v to_o come_v to_o those_o proud_a falseapostle_n who_o be_v the_o
author_n of_o all_o these_o schism_n verse_n 1_o so_o let_v a_o man_n esteem_v we_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n advent_a and_o the_o dispenser_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 2_o here_o now_o be_v require_v among_o the_o dispenser_n that_o a_o man_n be_v find_v faithful_a â_o verse_n 3_o but_o to_o i_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o lest_o account_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o you_o or_o of_o man_n day_n but_o i_o judge_v not_o myself_o neither_o â_o verse_n 4_o for_o i_o be_o not_o guilty_a in_o conscience_n of_o any_o thing_n â³_o but_o i_o be_o not_o justify_v herein_o but_o he_o that_o judge_v i_o be_v our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 5_o therefore_o judge_v not_o before_o the_o time_n until_o our_o lord_n do_v come_v who_o also_o will_v lighten_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n and_o will_v manifest_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n &_o then_o the_o praise_n shall_v be_v to_o every_o man_n of_o god_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 6_o but_o these_o thing_n brethren_n spare_v i_o have_v transfigure_v into_o myself_o and_o apollo_n for_o you_o that_o in_o we_o you_o may_v learn_v one_o not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o against_o a_o other_o above_o that_o be_v write_v â_o verse_n 7_o for_o who_o discern_v thou_o or_o what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v and_o if_o thou_o have_v receive_v what_o do_v thou_o glory_n as_o though_o thou_o have_v nor_o receive_v â_o verse_n 8_o now_o you_o be_v fill_v now_o be_v you_o become_v scotfree_a without_o we_o you_o reign_v &_o i_o will_v to_o god_n you_o do_v reign_v that_o we_o also_o may_v reign_v with_o you_o â_o verse_n 9_o 25._o for_o i_o think_v that_o god_n have_v show_v we_o apostle_n the_o last_o as_o it_o be_v depute_v to_o death_n because_o bishop_n we_o be_v make_v a_o spectacle_n to_o the_o world_n and_o to_o angel_n and_o man_n â_o verse_n 10_o we_o be_v fool_n for_o christ_n but_o you_o wise_a in_o christ_n we_o weak_a but_o you_o strong_a you_o noble_a but_o we_o base_a â_o verse_n 11_o until_o this_o hour_n we_o do_v both_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n and_o be_v naked_a and_o be_v beat_v with_o buffet_n and_o be_v night-wanderer_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o labour_n work_v with_o our_o own_o hand_n we_o be_v curse_v and_o do_v bless_v we_o be_v persecute_v and_o sustain_v it_o â_o verse_n 13_o we_o be_v blaspheme_v and_o we_o beseech_v we_o be_v make_v the_o refuse_n of_o this_o world_n the_o dross_n of_o all_o even_a until_o now_o â_o verse_n 14_o not_o to_o confound_v you_o do_v i_o write_v these_o thing_n but_o as_o my_o dear_a child_n i_o admonish_v you_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 15_o for_o man_n if_o you_o have_v ten_o thousand_o paedagoge_n in_o christ_n yet_o not_o many_o father_n for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n by_o the_o gospel_n i_o beget_v you_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 16_o i_o beseech_v you_o therefore_o be_v follower_n of_o i_o â_o verse_n 17_o therefore_o have_v i_o send_v to_o you_o timothee_n who_o be_v my_o dear_a son_n and_o faithful_a in_o our_o lord_n who_o will_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o my_o way_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n as_o every_o where_o in_o every_o church_n i_o teach_v â_o verse_n 18_o as_o though_o i_o will_v not_o come_v to_o you_o so_o certain_a be_v puff_v up_o â_o verse_n 19_o but_o i_o will_v come_v to_o you_o quick_o if_o our_o lord_n will_v and_o will_v know_v not_o the_o word_n of_o they_o that_o be_v puff_v up_o but_o the_o power_n â_o verse_n 20_o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n â_o verse_n 21_o what_o will_v you_o â_o in_o rod_n that_o i_o come_v to_o you_o or_o in_o charity_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n annotation_n chap._n four_o 4._o but_o not_o justify_v justification_n the_o heretic_n be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v in_o god_n grace_n but_o s._n paul_n though_o guilty_a of_o no_o crime_n in_o his_o conscience_n dare_v not_o assure_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v justify_v neither_o can_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o his_o own_o hart_n and_o cogitation_n whether_o they_o be_v pure_a or_o no_o but_o the_o trial_n thereof_o he_o leave_v only_o to_o god_n judge_a day_n 21._o in_o rod_n pardon_v the_o apostle_n have_v power_n of_o discipline_n and_o censure_n against_o offender_n and_o power_n of_o gentleness_n meekness_n and_o indulgence_n also_o to_o use_v either_o punish_v or_o pardon_v according_a to_o their_o wisdom_n and_o according_a to_o the_o occasion_n of_o time_n and_o place_n chap._n v._n sharp_o rebuke_v their_o clergy_n negligence_n infidel_n 3_o himself_o absent_a excommunicate_v that_o public_a incestuous_a person_n 6_o command_v that_o hereafter_o no_o christian_a be_v so_o tolerate_v in_o any_o open_a crime_n but_o excommunicate_v verse_n 1_o there_o be_v plain_o hear_v fornication_n among_o you_o and_o such_o fornication_n as_o the_o like_a be_v not_o among_o the_o heathen_a so_o that_o one_o have_v his_o *_o father_n wife_n 11_o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o you_o be_v puff_v up_o and_o excommunication_n have_v not_o mourn_v rather_o that_o he_o may_v be_v take_v away_o from_o among_o you_o that_o have_v do_v this_o deed_n â_o verse_n 3_o â_o i_o in_o deed_n absent_a in_o body_n but_o present_a in_o spirit_n have_v already_o judge_v as_o present_v he_o that_o have_v so_o do_v â_o verse_n 4_o in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o you_o be_v gather_v together_o and_o my_o spirit_n â_o with_o the_o virtue_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 5_o to_o deliver_v such_o a_o one_o â_o to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 6_o your_o glory_v be_v not_o good_a know_v you_o not_o that_o a_o little_a leaven_n corrupt_v the_o whole_a paste_n day_n â_o verse_n 7_o purge_v the_o old_a leaven_n that_o you_o may_v be_v a_o new_a paste_n as_o you_o be_v azyme_n for_o our_o pasche_n christ_n be_v immolate_a â_o verse_n 8_o therefore_o â_o let_v we_o feast_v not_o in_o the_o old_a leaven_n nor_o in_o the_o leaven_n of_o malice_n and_o wickedness_n but_o in_o the_o azyme_n of_o sincerity_n and_o verity_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 9_o i_o write_v to_o you_o in_o other_o a_o epistle_n not_o to_o keep_v company_n with_o fornicatour_n â_o verse_n 10_o i_o mean_v not_o the_o fornicatour_n of_o this_o world_n or_o the_o covetous_a or_o the_o extorsioner_n or_o seruer_n of_o idol_n otherwise_o you_o shall_v have_v go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n â_o verse_n 11_o but_o now_o i_o write_v to_o you_o not_o to_o keep_v company_n if_o he_o that_o be_v name_v a_o brother_n be_v a_o fornicatour_n or_o a_o covetous_a person_n or_o idolater_n a_o seruer_n of_o idol_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o drunkarde_n or_o a_o extorsioner_n with_o such_o a_o one_o â³_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o take_v meat_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o what_o be_v it_o to_o i_o to_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v without_o do_v not_o you_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v within_o â_o verse_n 13_o for_o they_o that_o be_v without_o god_n will_v judge_v take_v away_o â³_o the_o evil-one_a from_o among_o yourselves_o annotation_n chap._n v._n 2._o i_o absent_a s._n paul_n here_o use_v his_o apostolic_a power_n of_o bind_v this_o incestuous_a person_n excommunicate_v he_o by_o his_o letter_n and_o mandaâââ_n though_o absent_a 4._o you_o be_v gather_v though_o he_o command_v the_o act_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n as_o such_o sentence_n and_o censure_n be_v at_o this_o day_n execute_v also_o yet_o the_o judgement_n and_o authority_n of_o give_v sentence_n waâ_n in_o himself_o and_o not_o in_o the_o whole_a multitude_n as_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o popular_a sectary_n affirm_v for_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o prelate_n &_o to_o they_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o whole_a whereupon_o s._n chrysostome_n upon_o those_o word_n dic_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tell_v the_o church_n mat._n 18_o complain_v to_o the_o church_n that_o be_v say_v he_o to_o the_o prelate_n and_o precedent_n thereof_o 4._o with_o the_o virtue_n all_o such_o great_a power_n over_o sinner_n be_v hold_v and_o exercise_v in_o the_o name_n and_o virtue_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o whosoever_o set_v light_n by_o it_o despise_v our_o lord_n name_n and_o power_n 5._o to_o satan_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o all_o excommunicate_a person_n be_v in_o the_o power_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o quite_o out_o of_o christ_n protection_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v separate_v by_o the_o church_n
well_o in_o respect_n of_o reward_n at_o god_n hand_n the_o apostle_n confess_v express_o that_o all_o this_o that_o he_o do_v either_o of_o duty_n or_o of_o supererogation_n above_o duty_n as_o to_o preach_v of_o freecost_n and_o to_o work_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o get_v his_o own_o meat_n and_o his_o fellow_n and_o to_o abstain_v from_o many_o lawful_a thing_n all_o be_v the_o rather_o to_o attain_v the_o reward_n of_o heaven_n 24._o so_o run_v game_n if_o such_o as_o run_v for_o a_o price_n to_o make_v themselves_o more_o swift_a and_o to_o win_v the_o game_n abstain_v from_o many_o meat_n and_o pleasure_n what_o shall_v not_o we_o do_v or_o suffer_v to_o win_v the_o crown_n of_o glory_n propose_v and_o promise_v to_o none_o but_o such_o as_o run_v travail_n and_o endeavour_n for_o it_o 27._o i_o chastise_v the_o goal_n of_o everlasting_a glory_n be_v not_o promise_v nor_o set_v forth_o for_o onely-faith_n man_n for_o such_o run_v at_o random_n meritorious_a but_o it_o be_v the_o price_n of_o they_o that_o chastise_v and_o subdue_v their_o body_n and_o fleshly_a desire_n by_o fast_v watch_v voluntary_a poverty_n and_o other_o affliction_n lord_n how_o far_o be_v the_o carnal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o sectary_n and_o the_o maver_n of_o these_o day_n from_o the_o apostle_n spirit_n wherein_o even_o we_o that_o be_v catholic_n though_o we_o do_v not_o condemn_v with_o the_o protestant_n these_o voluntary_a affliction_n as_o superfluous_a much_o less_o as_o superstitious_a or_o injurious_a to_o christ_n death_n but_o much_o commend_v they_o yet_o we_o use_v nothing_o the_o zeal_n and_o diligence_n of_o our_o first_o christian_n aunceter_v herein_o and_o therefore_o be_v like_a to_o be_v more_o subject_a to_o god_n temporal_a chastisement_n at_o the_o least_o in_o the_o next_o life_n than_o they_o be_v 72._o lest_o perhaps_o locum_fw-la here_o may_v we_o lamb_n tremble_v say_v a_o holy_a father_n when_o the_o ram_n the_o guide_n of_o the_o flock_n salvation_n must_v so_o labour_v and_o punish_v himself_o beside_o all_o his_o other_o misery_n adjoin_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n lest_o perhaps_o he_o miss_v the_o mark_n a_o man_n may_v think_v s._n paul_n shall_v be_v as_o sure_a and_o as_o confident_a of_o god_n grace_n &_o salvation_n as_o we_o poor_a wretched_a caitiffs_n but_o the_o heretic_n unhappy_a security_n presumption_n and_o faithless_a persuasion_n of_o their_o salvation_n be_v not_o fides_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la but_o fides_fw-la daemoniorum_fw-la not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o devil_n cha._n x._o see_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o 9_o chapter_n which_o comprehend_v the_o content_n of_o this_o also_o verse_n 1_o for_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a brethren_n 21._o that_o our_o father_n be_v all_o *_o under_o the_o cloud_n 18_o &_o all_o *_o pass_v through_o the_o sea_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o all_o in_o moses_n be_v baptize_v in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n 22._o â_o verse_n 3_o and_o *_o all_o do_v eat_v â³_o the_o same_o spiritual_a food_n 15._o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o all_o *_o drink_v the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n and_o they_o *_o drink_v of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n that_o follow_v they_o 10._o and_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n â_o verse_n 5_o but_o in_o the_o more_o part_n of_o they_o god_n be_v not_o well_o please_v â¢_o for_o they_o *_o be_v overthrow_v in_o the_o desert_n 63._o â_o verse_n 6_o and_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o a_o figure_n of_o we_o pentecost_n that_o we_o be_v not_o cover_v evil_a thing_n 4_o as_o *_o they_o also_o covet_v â_o verse_n 7_o neither_o become_v you_o idolater_n 6._o as_o certain_a of_o they_o as_o be_v write_v the_o people_n sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o rise_v up_o to_o play_v â_o verse_n 8_o neither_o let_v we_o fornicate_v *_o as_o certain_a of_o they_o fornicate_v 1_o and_o there_o fall_v in_o one_o day_n three_o and_o twenty_o thousand_o â_o verse_n 9_o neither_o let_v we_o tempt_v christ_n as_o certain_a of_o they_o tempt_v 5_o and_o *_o perish_a by_o the_o serpent_n â_o verse_n 10_o neither_o do_v you_o murmur_v 37._o as_o *_o certain_a of_o they_o murmur_v and_o perish_v by_o the_o destroyer_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n chance_v to_o they_o in_o figure_n but_o they_o be_v write_v to_o our_o correption_n upon_o who_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v come_v â_o verse_n 12_o therefore_o he_o that_o think_v himself_o to_o stand_v let_v he_o take_v heed_n protestant_n lest_o he_o fall_v â_o verse_n 13_o apprthend_v let_v not_o tentation_n apprehend_v '_o you_o but_o humane_a and_o god_n be_v faithful_a who_o will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o which_o you_o be_v able_a but_o will_v make_v also_o with_o tentation_n ãâã_d issue_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o sustain_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 14_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n my_o dear_a flee_v from_o the_o serve_v of_o idol_n â_o verse_n 15_o i_o speak_v â³_o as_o to_o wise_a man_n yourselves_o judge_v what_o i_o say_v â_o verse_n 16_o the_o chalice_n of_o benediction_n â³_o which_o we_o do_v bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o â³_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 17_o for_o be_v many_o we_o be_v â³_o one_o bread_n one_o body_n all_o that_o participate_v of_o one_o bread_n â_o verse_n 18_o behold_v israël_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n â³_o they_o that_o eat_v the_o host_n be_v they_o not_o partaker_n of_o the_o altar_n â_o verse_n 19_o what_o then_o do_v i_o say_v that_o that_o which_o be_v immolate_a to_o idol_n be_v any_o thing_n or_o that_o the_o idol_n be_v any_o thing_n â_o verse_n 20_o but_o the_o thing_n that_o the_o heathen_a do_v immolate_a to_o devil_n they_o do_v immolate_a and_o not_o to_o god_n and_o â³_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o become_v fellow_n of_o devil_n â_o verse_n 21_o â³_o you_o can_v not_o drink_v the_o chalice_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o chalice_n of_o devil_n you_o can_v not_o be_v â³_o partaker_n of_o the_o table_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n â_o verse_n 22_o or_o do_v we_o emulate_v our_o lord_n why_o be_v we_o strong_a than_o he_o â³_o all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a for_o i_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a â_o verse_n 23_o all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a for_o i_o but_o all_o thing_n do_v not_o edify_v â_o verse_n 24_o let_v no_o man_n seek_v his_o own_o but_o a_o other_o man_n â_o verse_n 25_o al_n that_o be_v sell_v in_o the_o shambles_n eat_v ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n 1._o â_o verse_n 26_o the_o earth_n be_v our_o lord_n and_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o â_o verse_n 27_o if_o any_o invite_v you_o of_o the_o infidel_n and_o you_o will_v go_v eat_v of_o all_o that_o be_v set_v before_o you_o ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n â_o verse_n 28_o but_o if_o any_o man_n say_v this_o be_v immolate_a to_o idol_n do_v not_o eat_v for_o his_o sake_n that_o show_v it_o and_o for_o conscience_n â_o verse_n 29_o conscience_n i_o say_v not_o thou_o but_o the_o other_o for_o why_o be_v my_o liberty_n judge_v of_o a_o other_o man_n conscience_n â_o verse_n 30_o if_o i_o participate_v with_o thanks_n why_o be_o i_o blaspheme_v for_o that_o which_o i_o give_v thanks_n for_o â_o verse_n 31_o therefore_o whether_o you_o eat_v or_o drink_v or_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n do_v all_o thing_n unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 32_o be_v without_o offence_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o the_o gentile_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 33_o as_o i_o also_o in_o all_o thing_n do_v please_v all_o man_n not_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v profitable_a to_o myself_o but_o which_o be_v to_o many_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v annotation_n chap._n x._o 1._o the_o same_o sacrament_n the_o red_a sea_n and_o the_o cloud_n â_o figure_n of_o our_o baptism_n the_o manna_n from_o heaven_n and_o water_n miraculous_o draw_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n a_o figure_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n our_o sacrament_n contain_v the_o thing_n and_o grace_n in_o truth_n which_o they_o only_o signify_v they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o impudent_a forgery_n of_o the_o caluinist_n ãâã_d to_o write_v upon_o this_o place_n that_o the_o jew_n receive_v no_o less_o the_o truth_n and_o substance_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o benefit_n in_o their_o figure_n or_o sacrament_n than_o we_o do_v in_o we_o and_o that_o they_o and_o we_o all_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o the_o self_n same_o meat_n and_o drink_v the_o apostle_n say_v
de_fw-fr doct_v christ_n some_o few_o for_o many_o most_o easy_a to_o be_v do_v most_o honourable_a for_o signification_n and_o most_o clear_a and_o pure_a for_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o keep_v have_v our_o lord_n himself_o and_o the_o apostolical_a discipline_n deliver_v and_o li._n de_fw-la ver_fw-la relig_n c._n 17._o of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n itself_o many_o nature_n be_v take_v whereby_o we_o be_v call_v into_o liberty_n a_o few_o sacrament_n most_o holsom_a be_v appoint_v and_o institute_v which_o may_v contain_v the_o society_n of_o christian_a people_n that_o be_v of_o the_o free_a multitude_n under_o one_o god_n and_o again_o count_n faust_n li._n 19_o c._n 13._o the_o sacrament_n be_v change_v they_o be_v make_v caesier_n fewer_n holsom_a happy_a the_o same_o he_o have_v in_o the_o 118_o epistle_n c._n 1._o and_o many_o other_o place_n beside_o by_o which_o you_o may_v see_v it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o use_v element_n visible_a sacrament_n or_o ceremony_n and_o to_o serve_v they_o as_o the_o pagan_n do_v or_o to_o serve_v under_o they_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v wherewith_o the_o heretic_n calumnious_o charge_v the_o christian_n jew_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o small_a number_n facility_n efficacy_n and_o signification_n wherein_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n put_v the_o special_a difference_n who_o see_v not_o that_o for_o so_o many_o busy_a sacrifice_n we_o have_v but_o one_o for_o sacrament_n well_o never_o infinite_a but_o seven_o all_o so_o easy_a so_o full_a of_o grace_n so_o significant_a as_o can_v be_v possible_a as_o of_o every_o one_o in_o their_o several_a place_n be_v prove_v here_o only_o let_v the_o good_a reader_n take_v heed_n of_o a_o double_a deceit_n use_v by_o the_o adversary_n about_o s._n augustine_n place_n allege_v first_o in_o that_o they_o say_v he_o make_v but_o two_o sacrament_n which_o be_v untrue_a for_o although_o treat_v of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o jewish_a sacrament_n and_o we_o he_o namely_o give_v example_n in_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n as_o sometime_o also_o for_o example_n he_o name_v but_o one_o yet_o he_o have_v no_o word_n nor_o sign_n at_o all_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o but_o contrariwise_o in_o the_o foresay_a epistle_n 118_o he_o insinuate_v 1_o that_o beside_o those_o two_o there_o be_v other_o of_o the_o same_o sort_n in_o the_o scripture_n yea_o with_o water_n and_o bread_n which_o be_v the_o element_n of_o the_o two_o foresay_a sacrament_n he_o express_o name_v oil_n also_o li._n 2._o cont_n lit_fw-fr petil._n c._n 104._o the_o element_n or_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n augustine_n which_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o make_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n as_o baptism_n be_v so_o do_v he_o affirm_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n li._n 1_o de_fw-fr bapt_a c._n 1._o and_o also_o of_o matrimony_n li._n de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi coniug_n c._n 24._o of_o penance_n likewise_o he_o speak_v as_o of_o baptism_n which_o he_o call_v reconciliation_n li._n 1._o de_fw-fr adult_n conjug_n c._n 28._o last_o by_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr visitatione_n infirmorum_fw-la in_o s._n augustine_n li._n 2_o c._n 4._o by_o prosper_n de_fw-fr pradictionibus_fw-la p._n 2._o c._n 29._o s._n innocentius_n ad_fw-la eugubinum_fw-la io._n 1._o cont._n ep_v ad_fw-la eugub_fw-la c._n 8._o s._n cyril_n li._n 2._o in_o leviticum_fw-la and_o s._n chrysostom_n li._n 3_o de_fw-fr saterdotio_n conversat_fw-la extreme_a unction_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n it_o be_v false_a than_o that_o the_o heretic_n affirm_v of_o s._n augustine_n by_o who_o doctrine_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o though_o the_o element_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a la_o be_v but_o few_o and_o very_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o those_o in_o the_o old_a la_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o fewer_n then_o seven_o specify_v by_o he_o which_o number_n of_o seven_o the_o holy_a counsel_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n do_v express_o define_v to_o have_v be_v institute_v by_o christ_n against_o these_o late_a heretic_n see_v more_o of_o these_o sacrament_n in_o their_o place_n act._n 8._o 1_o tim_n 4._o io._n 20._o ja._n 5._o ephes_n 5._o the_o other_o forgery_n of_o the_o aduersaire_n concern_v the_o element_n or_o ceremony_n be_v that_o s._n augustine_n ep_n 119._o c._n 19_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o church_n and_o christian_a people_n in_o his_o day_n whereupon_o they_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v so_o much_o more_o now_o be_v so_o load_v with_o observation_n of_o unprofitable_a ceremony_n church_n that_o they_o be_v in_o as_o great_a servility_n and_o subjection_n to_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o jew_n he_o say_v so_o in_o deed_n of_o some_o particular_a presumption_n invention_n and_o usage_n of_o certain_a person_n as_o that_o some_o make_v it_o a_o heinous_a matter_n to_o touch_v the_o ground_n with_o their_o bare_a foot_n within_o their_o own_o octave_n and_o such_o like_a vanity_n whereby_o some_o simple_a folk_n may_v be_v infect_v which_o this_o holy_a doctor_n special_o mislike_v and_o wish_v such_o thing_n as_o they_o may_v without_o scandal_n to_o be_v take_v away_o but_o that_o he_o write_v or_o mean_v so_o of_o any_o ceremony_n that_o the_o church_n use_v either_o appoint_v by_o scripture_n or_o council_n or_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n himself_o deni_v it_o in_o express_a term_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o where_o he_o allow_v all_o the_o holy_a ceremony_n do_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o else_o where_o whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o church_n most_o comely_a order_n and_o significant_a ãâã_d pertain_v not_o to_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o old_a la_o much_o less_o to_o the_o superstition_n of_o gentility_n as_o heretic_n affirm_v but_o to_o the_o sweet_a yoke_n of_o christ_n and_o light_a burden_n of_o his_o la_o to_o order_n decency_n and_o instruction_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o all_o liberty_n love_n faith_n grace_n and_o spirit_n 9_o weak_a and_o poor_a whether_o he_o mean_v of_o the_o creature_n which_o the_o gentile_n serve_v as_o it_o may_v seem_v by_o the_o word_n before_o of_o serve_v strange_a god_n so_o the_o element_n be_v most_o base_a and_o beggarly_a or_o of_o the_o juaical_a ceremony_n and_o sacrament_n as_o most_o expound_v it_o even_o so_o also_o their_o element_n be_v weak_a and_o poor_a in_o themselves_o not_o give_v life_n salvation_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n nor_o be_v instrument_n or_o vessel_n of_o grace_n as_o the_o 7_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a la_o be_v 10._o you_o observe_v day_n etc._n that_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v against_o the_o idolotrical_a observation_n of_o day_n month_n and_o time_n dedicate_v by_o the_o heathen_a to_o their_o false_a god_n and_o to_o wicked_a man_n or_o spirit_n as_o to_o jupiter_n mercury_n janus_n juno_n diana_n and_o such_o like_a or_o against_o the_o superstitious_a difference_n of_o day_n fatal_a fortunate_a or_o disânol_n and_o other_o observation_n of_o time_n for_o good_a luck_n or_o ill_a luck_n in_o man_n action_n gather_v either_o by_o particular_a fancy_n or_o popular_a observation_n or_o curious_a and_o unlawful_a art_n or_o last_o of_o the_o judaical_a festivity_n that_o be_v then_o end_v and_o abrogate_a unto_o which_o notwithstanding_o certain_a christian_a jew_n will_v have_v reduce_v the_o galatian_n against_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n all_o that_o i_o say_v do_v the_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n false_o and_o deceitful_o interpret_v against_o the_o christian_a holiday_n and_o the_o sanctification_n and_o necessary_a keep_n of_o the_o same_o which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o father_n exposition_n but_o against_o the_o very_a scripture_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o whole_a church_n aug._n count_n adimâns_n c._n 16._o ep._n 118._o c._n 7._o hiero._n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la in_o the_o apocalypse_n c._n 1._o there_o be_v plain_a mention_n of_o the_o sunday_n whitsuntide_n that_o be_v our_o lord_n day_n dominicus_n die_v unto_o which_o the_o jew_n sabbath_n be_v alter_v their_o pasche_n into_o our_o easter_n their_o pentecost_n into_o our_o whitsuntide_n which_o be_v ordain_v &_o observe_v of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o christ_n nativity_n christ_n epiphanle_n &_o ascension_n be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v be_v refer_v to_o no_o other_o origine_fw-la but_o the_o apostle_n institution_n diverse_a who_o as_o s._n clement_n testify_v li._n â_o con_v apost_n c._n â9_n give_v order_n for_o celebrate_v their_o follow_v apostle_n s._n steven_n and_o other_o martyr_n day_n after_o their_o death_n and_o much_o more_o no_o doubt_n do_v they_o give_v order_n for_o christ_n festivity_n sanctis_fw-la according_a to_o which_o saint_n the_o church_n have_v keep_v not_o only_o he_o but_o s._n steven_n and_o the_o b._n innocent_n even_o on_o the_o
same_o dale_n they_o be_v now_o solemn_o keep_v &_o his_o b._n mother_n and_o other_o saint_n as_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v above_o 1300_o year_n fulgent_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o barbarous_a combatte_n between_o westphalus_n the_o lutheran_n &_o caluin_n and_o by_o the_o write_n betwixt_o the_o puritan_n and_o protestant_n leo._n for_o which_o purpose_n see_v also_o how_o old_a the_o holiday_n of_o s._n polycarpe_n be_v in_o eusebius_n li._n 4._o c._n 14_o of_o the_o 14._o assumption_n of_o our_o lady_n or_o her_o dormition_n in_o s._n athanasius_n lady_n s._n augustine_n s._n hierom._n s._n damase_v &_o both_o of_o that_o feast_n and_o of_o her_o nativity_n in_o s._n bernard_n who_o profess_v he_o receive_v they_o of_o the_o church_n &_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v most_o solemnel_n keep_v ep_v 174._o wherein_o we_o can_v not_o but_o wonder_n at_o the_o new_a church_n of_o england_n that_o though_o against_o the_o pure_a caluiniste_n will_v and_o doctrine_n keep_v other_o saint_n and_o apostle_n day_n of_o their_o death_n and_o yet_o have_v abolish_v this_o special_a feast_n of_o our_o lady_n departure_n which_o they_o may_v keep_v timotheus_n though_o they_o believe_v not_o her_o assumption_n in_o body_n whereof_o yet_o s._n denys_n give_v so_o great_a testimony_n be_v assure_v she_o be_v depart_v at_o the_o least_o except_o they_o either_o âare_v she_o or_o think_v her_o worthy_a of_o less_o remembrance_n than_o any_o other_o saint_n herself_o prophesy_v the_o contrary_a of_o all_o catholic_a generation_n 48._o that_o they_o shall_v bless_v she_o and_o in_o deed_n the_o assumption_n be_v her_o proper_a day_n as_o also_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o nativitle_n same_o the_o other_o of_o the_o purification_n and_o the_o annuneâation_n which_o they_o keep_v in_o england_n be_v not_o so_o peculiar_a to_o she_o but_o belong_v rather_o to_o christ_n presentation_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o his_o conception_n to_o conclude_v we_o may_v see_v in_o s._n cyprian_a ep_n 34._o origen_n ho._n 3._o in_o diverse_a 20_o tertulliau_n de_fw-fr cor_fw-la âil_n s._n gregory_n nazianzene_n de_fw-fr amore_fw-la pauperum_fw-la the_o council_n of_o gangre_n yea_o and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a itself_o give_v order_n for_o easter_n and_o the_o certain_a celebrate_n thereof_o that_o christian_a festivity_n be_v holy_a ancient_a and_o to_o be_v observe_v on_o prescript_n day_n and_o time_n and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o judaical_a observation_n of_o day_n epiphan_n as_o aërius_n teach_v for_o which_o he_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n 75._o as_o s._n epimphanius_n witness_v but_o of_o holiday_n s._n augustine_n show_v both_o the_o reason_n and_o his_o like_n day_n in_o these_o memorable_a word_n ãâã_d for_o the_o feast_n belong_v to_o our_o lord_n 16._o thus_o we_o dedicate_v and_o consecrate_v the_o memory_n of_o god_n benefit_n with_o solemnity_n feast_n and_o certain_a appoint_a day_n leave_v by_o tract_n of_o time_n there_o may_v creep_v in_o ingrateful_a and_o unkind_a oblivion_n of_o the_o festivity_n of_o martyr_n thus_o christian_n people_n celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n both_o to_o move_v themselves_o to_o imitation_n of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o their_o merit_n and_o be_v holpen_v with_o their_o prayer_n cont._n faust_n li._n 20._o c._n 21._o and_o of_o all_o saint_n day_n thus_o keep_v you_o and_o celebrate_v with_o sobriety_n the_o nativity_n of_o saint_n that_o we_o may_v imitate_v they_o which_o have_v go_v before_o we_o and_o they_o may_v rejoice_v of_o we_o which_o pray_v for_o us._n in_o ps_n 88_o conc._n 2._o in_o fine_a and_o as_o be_v say_v of_o prescript_n day_n of_o feast_n day_n so_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v har_z of_o fast_n which_o else_o where_o we_o have_v show_v to_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n ordinance_n and_o so_o also_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a division_n of_o the_o year_n into_o advent_n hour_n septuagesme_fw-fr etc._n etc._n the_o week_n into_o so_o many_o i_o ery_n the_o day_n into_o hour_n of_o prayer_n as_o the_o prime_n the_o three_o the_o sixth_z the_o none_o etc._n etc._n whereof_o see_v 15._o s._n cyprian_n who_o derive_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o apostle_n also_o and_o count_v these_o thing_n which_o the_o wicked_a heretic_n reprove_v to_o be_v full_a of_o mystery_n like_o unto_o this_o also_o be_v it_o year_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v so_o dispose_v of_o and_o divide_v that_o certain_a piece_n as_o be_v always_o observe_v and_o practise_v until_o this_o day_n shall_v be_v read_v at_o one_o time_n and_o other_o at_o other_o time_n and_o season_n through_o out_o the_o year_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o our_o lord_n action_n and_o benefit_n or_o the_o saint_n story_n then_o record_v which_o the_o puritan_n caluinist_n also_o condemn_v of_o superstition_n desire_v to_o bring_v in_o hellish_a horror_n and_o all_o disorder_n see_v conc_fw-fr carthag_n 3._o c._n 47._o &_o pag._n 288_o of_o this_o book_n 24._o by_o a_o allegory_n literal_a here_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v beside_o the_o literal_a sense_n a_o deep_a spiritual_a and_o more_o principal_a meaning_n which_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v take_v of_o the_o holy_a word_n but_o of_o the_o very_a fact_n and_o person_n report_v both_o the_o speech_n and_o the_o action_n be_v significative_a over_o and_o above_o the_o letter_n which_o pregnancy_n of_o manifold_a sense_n if_o s._n paul_n have_v not_o signify_v himself_o in_o certain_a place_n the_o heretic_n have_v be_v less_o wicked_a and_o presumptuous_a in_o condemn_v the_o holy_a father_n allegorical_a exposition_n almost_o whole_o who_o now_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v mere_a brutish_a and_o carnal_a man_n have_v no_o sense_n nor_o feeling_n of_o the_o profundity_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o our_o holy_a father_n the_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n see_v â1_n freedom_n liberty_n he_o mean_v the_o liberty_n and_o discharge_n from_o the_o old_a ceremony_n sacrament_n and_o the_o whole_a bondage_n of_o the_o law_n and_o from_o the_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o devil_n to_o such_o as_o obey_v he_o but_o not_o liberty_n to_o do_v what_o every_o man_n listen_v or_o to_o be_v under_o no_o obedience_n of_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a law_n and_o gonerner_n not_o a_o licence_n never_o to_o pray_v fast_o keep_v holiday_n or_o workday_o but_o when_o and_o how_o it_o seem_v best_a to_o every_o man_n fantasy_n such_o a_o dissolute_a licentious_a state_n be_v far_o from_o the_o true_a liberty_n which_o christ_n purchase_v for_o us._n chap._n v._n against_o the_o lie_n of_o the_o false_a apostle_n he_o protest_v his_o mind_n of_o circumcision_n 13_o and_o testify_v that_o they_o be_v call_v to_o liberty_n but_o yet_o leave_v any_o misconstrue_v christian_a liberty_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n unless_o they_o abstain_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v all_o mortal_a sin_n and_o do_v the_o fruitful_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n fulfil_v all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n by_o charity_n verse_n 1_o stand_v and_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o again_o with_o the_o yoke_n of_o servitude_n â_o verse_n 2_o behold_v i_o paul_n tell_v you_o that_o if_o you_o be_v circumcise_v christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o â_o verse_n 3_o and_o i_o testify_v again_o to_o every_o man_n circumcide_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v a_o debtor_n to_o do_v the_o whole_a law._n â_o verse_n 4_o you_o be_v evacuate_v from_o christ_n that_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o law_n you_o be_v fall_v from_o grace_n â_o verse_n 5_o for_o we_o in_o spirit_n by_o faith_n 15_o expect_v the_o hope_n of_o justice_n â_o verse_n 6_o for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n *_o neither_o circumcision_n avail_v aught_o nor_o prepuce_fw-la but_o â³_o faith_n that_o work_v by_o charity_n â_o verse_n 7_o you_o run_v well_o who_o have_v hinder_v you_o not_o to_o obey_v the_o truth_n â_o verse_n 8_o the_o persuasion_n be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o call_v you_o 6._o *_o â_o verse_n 9_o a_o little_a leaven_n corrupt_v the_o whole_a paste_n â_o verse_n 10_o i_o have_v confidence_n in_o you_o in_o our_o lord_n that_o you_o will_v be_v of_o no_o other_o mind_n but_o he_o that_o trouble_v you_o shall_v bear_v the_o judgement_n whosoever_o he_o be_v â_o verse_n 11_o and_o as_o for_o i_o brethren_z if_o as_o yet_o i_o preach_v circumcision_n why_o do_v i_o yet_o suffer_v persecution_n then_o be_v the_o scandal_n of_o the_o cross_n evacuate_v â_o verse_n 12_o i_o will_v they_o be_v also_o cut_v of_o that_o trouble_n you_o â_o verse_n 13_o for_o you_o brethren_z be_v call_v into_o liberty_n only_o make_v not_o this_o â³_o liberty_n a_o occasion_n to_o the_o flesh_n but_o by_o charity_n serve_v
with_o he_o â_o verse_n 10_o hence_o forth_o brethren_n pentecost_n be_v strengthen_v in_o our_o lord_n &_o in_o the_o might_n of_o his_o power_n â_o verse_n 11_o put_v you_o on_o the_o ãâã_d armour_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v stand_v against_o the_o deceit_n of_o the_o devil_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o our_o wrestle_n be_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o against_o prince_n and_o porestat_n 2_o against_o the_o *_o rector_n of_o the_o world_n of_o this_o darkness_n against_o the_o spiritual_n of_o wickedness_n in_o the_o celestial_n â_o verse_n 13_o therefore_o take_v the_o armour_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v resist_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o stand_v in_o all_o thing_n perfect_a â_o verse_n 14_o stand_v therefore_o have_v your_o loin_n gird_v in_o truth_n and_o justice_n clothe_v with_o the_o breastplate_n of_o justice_n â_o verse_n 15_o &_o have_v your_o foot_n shod_a to_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n â_o verse_n 16_o in_o all_o thing_n take_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n wherewith_o you_o may_v extinguish_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o most_o wicked_a one_o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o take_v unto_o you_o the_o *_o helmet_n of_o salvation_n 1._o and_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 18_o in_o all_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n pray_v at_o all_o time_n in_o spirit_n 8_o and_o in_o the_o same_o watch_v in_o all_o instance_n and_o supplication_n for_o all_o the_o saint_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o for_o i_o that_o speech_n may_v be_v give_v i_o in_o the_o open_n of_o my_o mouth_n with_o confidence_n to_o make_v know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 20_o for_o the_o which_o i_o be_o a_o legate_n in_o this_o chain_n so_o that_o in_o it_o i_o may_v be_v bold_a according_a as_o i_o ought_v to_o speak_v â_o verse_n 21_o and_o that_o you_o also_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n about_o i_o what_o i_o do_v tychicus_n my_o dear_a brother_n and_o faithful_a minister_n in_o our_o lord_n will_v make_v you_o understand_v all_o thing_n â_o verse_n 22_o who_o i_o have_v send_v to_o you_o for_o this_o same_o purpose_n that_o you_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n about_o we_o and_o he_o may_v comfort_v your_o heart_n â_o verse_n 23_o peace_n to_o the_o brethren_n and_o 7._o charity_n with_o faith_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 24_o grace_n with_o all_o that_o love_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o incorruption_n amen_n â_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o philippian_n how_o s._n paul_n be_v call_v by_o a_o vision_n into_o macedonia_n we_o read_v act._n 16._o and_o how_o he_o come_v to_o philippi_n be_v the_o first_o city_n thereof_o and_o of_o his_o preach_n miracle_n and_o suffer_v there_o and_o again_o act._n 19_o paul_n purpose_v in_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o have_v pass_v through_o macedonia_n and_o achaia_n to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n say_v after_o i_o have_v be_v there_o i_o must_v see_v rome_n also_o which_o purpose_n he_o execute_v act._n 20._o take_v his_o leave_n at_o ephesus_n and_o be_v afterward_o come_v into_o achaia_n he_o have_v counsel_n to_o return_v through_o macedonia_n and_o so_o at_o length_n from_o philippi_n he_o begin_v his_o navigation_n towards_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o jerusalem_n be_v carry_v prisoner_n to_o rome_n act._n 28._o he_o write_v from_o thence_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n or_o rather_o in_o his_o second_o apprehension_n about_o 10_o year_n after_o the_o first_o in_o it_o he_o confirm_v they_o as_o he_o do_v *_o the_o ephesian_n also_o about_o the_o same_o time_n against_o the_o tentation_n that_o they_o may_v have_v in_o hear_v that_o he_o be_v execute_v 3._o therefore_o he_o first_o say_v 26._o and_o i_o will_v have_v you_o know_v brethren_n that_o the_o thing_n about_o i_o be_v come_v to_o the_o more_o furtherance_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o my_o band_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o christ_n in_o all_o the_o court_n etc._n etc._n second_o he_o signify_v that_o his_o desire_n be_v to_o he_o dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n but_o yet_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v discomfort_a that_o he_o hope_v to_o come_v again_o to_o they_o whereof_o notwithstanding_o 17._o that_o he_o have_v yet_o no_o certainty_n he_o signify_v in_o say_v i_o hope_v to_o send_v timothee_n unto_o you_o immediate_o as_o i_o shall_v see_v the_o thing_n that_o concern_v i_o three_o therefore_o he_o prepare_v they_o against_o the_o worst_a say_v i_o hope_v to_o come_v again_o to_o you_o but_o and_o if_o i_o be_v immolate_a upon_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o service_n of_o your_o faith_n i_o rejoice_v and_o congratulate_v with_o you_o all_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n do_v you_o also_o rejoice_v and_o congratulate_v with_o i_o moreover_o he_o partly_o warn_v they_o as_o he_o have_v do_v before_o of_o those_o judaical_a falseapostle_n who_o preach_v circumcision_n &_o moses_n la_o to_o the_o christian_a gentile_n partly_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o suffer_v persecution_n to_o live_v well_o and_o special_o to_o humble_v themselves_o one_o to_o a_o other_o rather_o than_o by_o any_o pride_n to_o break_v the_o peace_n &_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o philippian_n chap._n i._n have_v signify_v that_o he_o use_v to_o thank_v god_n for_o their_o virtue_n 9_o and_o also_o to_o pray_v for_o their_o increase_n 12_o he_o certifi_v they_o for_o their_o confirmation_n &_o comfort_n what_o good_a be_v come_v through_o his_o trouble_n at_o rome_n 24_o &_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o though_o he_o rather_o desire_v martyrdom_n but_o to_o come_v again_o unto_o they_o 27_o exhort_v they_o to_o live_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v 28_o and_o namely_o not_o to_o shrink_v for_o persecution_n verse_n 1_o paul_n and_o timothee_n the_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o all_o the_o saint_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v at_o philippi_n with_o the_o â³_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n â_o verse_n 2_o grace_n to_o you_o and_o peace_n from_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 3_o i_o give_v thanks_n to_o my_o god_n in_o all_o memory_n of_o you_o â_o verse_n 4_o always_o in_o all_o my_o prayer_n for_o all_o you_o with_o joy_n make_v petition_n â_o verse_n 5_o for_o your_o communicate_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o first_o day_n until_o now_o pentecost_n â_o verse_n 6_o trust_v this_o same_o thing_n that_o he_o which_o have_v begin_v in_o you_o a_o good_a work_n will_v perfect_v it_o unto_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 7_o as_o it_o be_v reason_n for_o i_o this_o to_o think_v for_o all_o you_o for_o that_o i_o have_v you_o in_o hart_n &_o in_o my_o band_n and_o in_o the_o defence_n and_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n all_o you_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o my_o joy_n â_o verse_n 8_o for_o god_n be_v my_o witness_v how_o i_o covet_v you_o all_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o this_o i_o pray_v that_o your_o charity_n may_v more_o and_o more_o abound_v in_o knowledge_n and_o in_o all_o understanding_n â_o verse_n 10_o that_o you_o may_v approve_v the_o better_a thing_n that_o you_o may_v be_v sincere_a and_o without_o offence_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 11_o replenish_v with_o the_o fruit_n of_o justice_n by_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o i_o will_v have_v you_o know_v brethren_n that_o the_o thing_n about_o i_o be_v come_v to_o the_o more_o furtherance_n of_o the_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 13_o so_o that_o my_o band_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o christ_n in_o all_o the_o court_n and_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n â_o verse_n 14_o that_o many_o of_o our_o brethren_n in_o our_o lord_n have_v confidence_n in_o my_o band_n be_v bold_a more_o abundant_o without_o fear_n to_o speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 15_o some_o in_o deed_n even_o for_o envy_n and_o contention_n but_o some_o also_o for_o good_a will_v preach_v christ_n â_o verse_n 16_o some_o of_o charity_n know_v that_o i_o be_o set_v unto_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o some_o of_o contention_n preach_v christ_n not_o sincere_o suppose_v that_o they_o raise_v affliction_n to_o my_o band_n â_o verse_n 18_o but_o what_o so_o that_o by_o all_o mean_n whether_o by_o occasion_n or_o by_o truth_n christ_n be_v preach_v in_o this_o also_o i_o rejoice_v yea_o &_o will_v rejoice_v â_o verse_n 19_o for_o i_o know_v that_o this_o shall_v fall_v out_o to_o i_o unto_o salvation_n by_o your_o prayer_n and_o the_o subministration_n of_o the_o
spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 20_o according_a to_o my_o expectation_n &_o hope_n because_o in_o nothing_o shall_v i_o be_v confound_v but_o in_o all_o confidence_n as_o always_o now_o also_o shall_v christ_n be_v magnify_v in_o my_o body_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o life_n or_o by_o death_n â_o verse_n 21_o for_o unto_o i_o to_o live_v be_v christ_n and_o to_o die_v be_v gain_v â_o verse_n 22_o and_o if_o to_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n this_o unto_o i_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o work_n and_o what_o i_o shall_v choose_v i_o know_v not_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o i_o be_o straiten_v of_o the_o two_o have_v desire_n to_o be_v dissolve_v &_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n a_o thing_n much_o more_o better_a â_o verse_n 24_o but_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o flesh_n necessary_a necessary_a '_o for_o you_o â_o verse_n 25_o and_o trust_v this_o i_o know_v that_o i_o shall_v abide_v and_o continue_v with_o you_o all_o unto_o your_o furtherance_n and_o joy_n of_o the_o faith_n â_o verse_n 26_o that_o your_o gratulation_n may_v abound_v in_o christ_n jesus_n in_o i_o by_o my_o come_n again_o to_o you_o â_o verse_n 27_o only_o *_o converse_n you_o worthy_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 1_o that_o whether_o when_o i_o come_v and_o see_v you_o or_o else_o be_v absent_a i_o may_v hear_v of_o you_o that_o you_o stand_v in_o one_o spirit_n of_o one_o mind_n labour_v together_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 28_o and_o in_o nothing_o be_v you_o terrify_v of_o the_o adversary_n which_o to_o they_o be_v evidence_n cause_n of_o perdition_n but_o to_o you_o of_o salvation_n &_o this_o of_o god_n â_o verse_n 29_o for_o to_o you_o ãâã_d it_o be_v give_v for_o christ_n not_o only_o that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o also_o that_o you_o suffer_v for_o he_o â_o have_v the_o same_o combat_n like_o as_o you_o have_v see_v in_o i_o and_o now_o hear_v have_v hear_v '_o of_o i_o annotation_n chap._n i._n 2._o bishop_n and_o deacons_n function_n wiclesse_a and_o other_o heretic_n will_v prove_v by_o this_o that_o priest_n be_v not_o here_o name_v and_o for_o that_o there_o can_v not_o be_v many_o bishop_n of_o this_o one_o town_n that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n which_o be_v the_o old_a heresy_n of_o aërius_n of_o which_o matter_n 5._o in_o other_o place_n for_o this_o present_v it_o be_v enough_o to_o know_v that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v not_o observe_v always_o proper_a distinct_a name_n of_o either_o function_n as_o they_o be_v quick_o afterward_o though_o they_o be_v always_o diverse_a degree_n &_o distinct_a function_n see_v s._n chrysostom_n occupâenius_n theophylactus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o grecians_n upon_o this_o place_n chap._n ii_o he_o exhori_v they_o must_v instant_o to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o humble_v themselves_o for_o that_o purpose_n one_o to_o a_o other_o â_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o marvellous_a humility_n of_o christ_n â_o special_o see_v how_o marvellous_o he_o be_v now_o exalt_v for_o it_o 13_o item_n to_o obedience_n fear_n and_o perseverance_n 17_o insinuate_a leave_v be_v shall_v afterward_n trouble_v they_o that_o be_v may_v be_v martyr_v at_o this_o time_n 19_o timothee_n he_o hope_v to_o send_v who_o he_o high_o commend_v 25_o as_o also_o epaphroditus_n who_o he_o present_o send_v verse_n 1_o if_o therefore_o there_o be_v any_o consolation_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o solace_n of_o charity_n if_o any_o society_n of_o spirit_n if_o any_o bowel_n of_o commiseration_n â_o verse_n 2_o fulfil_v my_o joy_n that_o you_o be_v of_o one_o meaning_n have_v the_o same_o charity_n of_o one_o mind_n agre_v in_o one_o â_o verse_n 3_o nothing_o by_o contention_n neither_o by_o vain_a glory_n but_o in_o humility_n 10._o *_o each_o count_v other_o better_a than_o themselves_o â_o verse_n 4_o *_o every_o one_o not_o consider_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v their_o own_o but_o those_o that_o be_v other_o man_n 3._o â_o verse_n 5_o for_o this_o think_v in_o yourselves_o 24._o which_o also_o in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 6_o who_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o no_o robbery_n himself_o to_o be_v equal_a to_o god_n â_o verse_n 7_o but_o he_o exinanit_v himself_o take_v the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n make_v into_o the_o similitude_n of_o man_n and_o in_o shape_n find_v as_o man_n cross_n â_o verse_n 8_o he_o *_o humble_a himself_o make_v obedient_a unto_o death_n 9_o even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n â_o verse_n 9_o â³_o for_o the_o which_o thing_n god_n also_o have_v exalt_v he_o and_o have_v give_v he_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o all_o name_n 11._o â_o verse_n 10_o that_o *_o in_o the_o â³_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n bow_n of_o the_o celestial_n terrestrial_o and_o infernal_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o every_o tongue_n confess_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 12_o therefore_o my_o dear_a as_o you_o have_v always_o obey_v not_o as_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o i_o only_o but_o much_o more_o now_o in_o my_o absence_n â³_o with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a work_n your_o salvation_n â_o verse_n 13_o for_o it_o be_v god_n that_o â³_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o accomplish_v according_a to_o his_o good_a will_v â_o verse_n 14_o and_o do_v you_o all_o thing_n without_o murmur_n and_o staggering_n â_o verse_n 15_o that_o you_o may_v be_v without_o blame_n and_o the_o simple_a child_n of_o god_n without_o reprehension_n in_o the_o mid_n of_o a_o crooked_a and_o perverse_a generation_n among_o who_o you_o shine_v as_o light_n in_o the_o world_n â_o verse_n 16_o contain_v the_o word_n of_o life_n lord_n to_o my_o glory_n in_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n because_o i_o have_v not_o run_v in_o vain_a nor_o in_o vain_a labour_v â_o verse_n 17_o but_o and_o if_o i_o be_v same_o immolate_a upon_o the_o â³_o sacrifice_n and_o service_n of_o your_o faith_n i_o rejoice_v and_o congratulate_v with_o you_o al._n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n do_v you_o also_o rejoice_v and_o congratulate_v with_o i_o â_o verse_n 19_o and_o i_o hope_v in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n to_o send_v timothee_n unto_o you_o quick_o that_o i_o also_o may_v be_v of_o good_a comfort_n when_o i_o know_v the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 20_o for_o i_o have_v no_o man_n so_o of_o one_o mind_n that_o with_o sincere_a affection_n be_v careful_a for_o you_o â_o verse_n 21_o for_o glory_n all_o seek_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v their_o own_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o know_v you_o a_o experiment_n of_o he_o that_o as_o a_o son_n the_o father_n so_o have_v he_o serve_v with_o i_o in_o the_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 23_o this_o man_n therefore_o i_o hope_v to_o send_v unto_o you_o immediate_o as_o i_o shall_v see_v the_o thing_n that_o concern_v i_o â_o verse_n 24_o and_o i_o trust_v in_o our_o lord_n that_o myself_o also_o shall_v come_v to_o you_o quick_o â_o verse_n 25_o but_o i_o have_v think_v it_o necessary_a to_o send_v to_o you_o epaphroditus_n my_o brother_n and_o coadiutor_n and_o fellow_n soldier_n but_o your_o apostle_n and_o minister_v of_o my_o necessity_n â_o verse_n 26_o because_o in_o deed_n he_o have_v a_o desire_n towards_o you_o all_o and_o be_v pensife_n for_o that_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o he_o be_v sick_a â_o verse_n 27_o for_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v sick_a even_o to_o death_n but_o god_n have_v mercy_n on_o he_o and_o not_o only_o on_o he_o but_o on_o i_o also_o lest_o i_o shall_v have_v sorrow_o upon_o sorrow_n â_o verse_n 28_o therefore_o i_o send_v he_o the_o more_o speedy_o that_o see_v he_o you_o may_v rejoice_v again_o and_o i_o may_v be_v without_o sorrow_n â_o verse_n 29_o receive_v he_o therefore_o with_o all_o joy_n in_o our_o lord_n and_o such_o entreat_v with_o honour_n â_o verse_n 30_o because_o for_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n he_o come_v to_o the_o point_n of_o death_n yield_v his_o life_n that_o he_o may_v fulfil_v that_o which_o on_o your_o part_n want_v towards_o my_o service_n annotation_n chap._n ii_o 9_o for_o the_o which_o merit_n caluin_n do_v so_o abhor_v the_o name_n of_o merit_n in_o christian_a man_n towards_o their_o own_o salvation_n that_o he_o wicked_o and_o unlearned_o deni_v christ_n himself_o to_o have_v deserve_v or_o merit_v any_o thing_n for_o himself_o though_o these_o word_n which_o he_o shameful_o writhe_v from_o the_o proper_a and_o plain_a sense_n to_o signify_v a_o sequel_n and_o not_o a_o cause_n of_o his_o exaltation_n
call_v canon_n precept_n and_o decree_n of_o holy_a church_n chap._n iii_o because_o he_o can_v not_o come_v himself_o as_o he_o desire_v he_o send_v timothe_n 6_o at_o who_o return_n now_o understand_v it_o as_o they_o stand_v still_o steadfast_a notwithstanding_o all_o those_o persecution_n he_o rejoice_v exceed_o to_o pray_v that_o he_o may_v see_v they_o against_o 12_o and_o for_o their_o increase_n in_o ãâã_d verse_n 1_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n forbear_v no_o long_o it_o please_v we_o to_o remain_v at_o athens_n alone_o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o we_o send_v timothee_n our_o brother_n &_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n to_o confirm_v you_o and_o exhort_v you_o for_o your_o faith_n â_o verse_n 3_o that_o no_o man_n be_v move_v in_o these_o tribulation_n for_o yourselves_o know_v that_o we_o be_v appoint_v to_o this_o â_o verse_n 4_o for_o even_o when_o we_o be_v with_o you_o we_o foretell_v you_o that_o we_o shall_v suffer_v tribulation_n as_o also_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v &_o you_o know_v â_o verse_n 5_o therefore_o i_o also_o forbear_v no_o long_o send_v to_o know_v your_o faith_n lest_o perhaps_o he_o that_o tempt_v have_v tempt_v you_o &_o our_o labour_n be_v make_v vain_a 5._o â_o verse_n 6_o but_o now_o *_o timothee_n come_v unto_o we_o from_o you_o &_o report_v to_o we_o your_o faith_n &_o charity_n and_o that_o you_o have_v a_o good_a remembrance_n of_o we_o always_o desire_v to_o see_v we_o as_o we_o also_o you_o â_o verse_n 7_o therefore_o we_o be_v comfort_v brethren_n in_o you_o in_o all_o our_o necessity_n &_o tribulation_n by_o your_o faith_n â_o verse_n 8_o because_o now_o we_o live_v if_o you_o stand_v in_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 9_o for_o what_o thanks_n give_v can_v we_o render_v to_o god_n for_o you_o in_o all_o joy_n wherewith_o we_o rejoice_v for_o you_o before_o our_o god_n â_o verse_n 10_o night_n and_o day_n more_o abundant_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v accomplish_v see_v your_o face_n and_o may_v accomplish_v those_o thing_n that_o want_n of_o your_o faith_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o god_n himself_o and_o our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n direct_v our_o way_n to_o you_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o our_o lord_n multiply_v you_o and_o make_v your_o charity_n abound_v one_o to_o a_o other_o &_o towards_o all_o man_n as_o we_o also_o in_o you_o â_o verse_n 13_o to_o confirm_v your_o heart_n without_o blame_n in_o holiness_n before_o god_n and_o our_o father_n in_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o all_o his_o saint_n amen_n chap._n four_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o live_v as_o he_o teach_v they_o and_o namely_o to_o abstain_v from_o all_o fornication_n 9_o to_o love_n one_o a_o other_o 11_o to_o meddle_v only_o with_o their_o own_o matter_n 12_o to_o behave_v themselves_o well_o towards_o the_o infidel_n 13_o touch_v their_o friend_n depart_v he_o comfort_v they_o showing_z that_o they_o shall_v meet_v again_o as_o the_o resurrection_n and_o be_v with_o christ_n for_o ever_o verse_n 1_o for_o the_o rest_n therefore_o lent_n brethren_n we_o desire_v &_o beseech_v you_o in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n that_o as_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o we_o how_o you_o ought_v to_o walk_v and_o to_o please_v god_n as_o also_o you_o do_v walk_v that_o you_o abound_v more_o â_o verse_n 2_o for_o you_o know_v what_o precept_n i_o have_v give_v to_o you_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o this_o be_v the_o will_v of_o god_n your_o sanctification_n that_o you_o abstain_v from_o fornication_n â_o verse_n 4_o that_o every_o one_o may_v know_v to_o possess_v his_o vessel_n in_o sanctification_n and_o honour_n â_o verse_n 5_o not_o in_o the_o passion_n of_o lust_n as_o also_o the_o gentile_n that_o know_v not_o god_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o that_o no_o man_n overgot_v nor_o circumvent_v his_o brother_n in_o business_n because_o our_o lord_n be_v revenger_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n as_o we_o have_v foretell_v you_o &_o have_v testify_v â_o verse_n 7_o for_o god_n have_v not_o call_v we_o into_o uncleanness_n but_o into_o sanctification_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 8_o therefore_o he_o that_o despise_v these_o thing_n despise_v â³_o not_o man_n but_o god_n who_o also_o have_v give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o us._n â_o verse_n 9_o but_o concern_v the_o charity_n of_o the_o brotherhod_n fraternity_n we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o write_v to_o you_o 17._o â_o for_o *_o yourselves_o have_v learn_v of_o god_n to_o love_v one_o a_o other_o 1_o â_o verse_n 10_o yea_o and_o you_o do_v it_o towards_o all_o the_o brethren_n in_o all_o macedonia_n but_o we_o desire_v you_o brethren_n that_o you_o justification_n abound_v more_o â_o verse_n 11_o &_o that_o you_o employ_v your_o endeavour_n to_o be_v quiet_a &_o that_o you_o do_v your_o own_o business_n &_o work_n with_o your_o own_o hand_n as_o we_o have_v command_v you_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o that_o you_o walk_v honest_o towards_o they_o that_o be_v without_o and_o need_v nothing_o of_o any_o man_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o we_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a deposition_n brethren_n concern_v they_o that_o â³_o sleep_v that_o you_o be_v not_o sorrowful_a as_o also_o other_o that_o have_v no_o hope_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o jesus_n die_v and_o rise_v again_o so_o also_o god_n they_o that_o have_v sleep_v by_o jesus_n will_v bring_v with_o he_o 23._o â_o verse_n 15_o for_o this_o we_o say_v to_o you_o in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n *_o that_o judgement_n we_o which_o live_v which_o be_v remain_v in_o the_o advent_a of_o our_o lord_n shall_v not_o prevent_v they_o that_o have_v sleep_v â_o verse_n 16_o for_o our_o lord_n himself_o in_o commandment_n and_o in_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o *_o archangel_n and_o in_o the_o trumpet_n of_o god_n will_v descend_v from_o heaven_n 52._o and_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v again_o first_o â_o verse_n 17_o then_o we_o that_o live_v that_o be_v leave_v withal_o shall_v be_v take_v up_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v christ_n into_o the_o air_n and_o so_o always_o we_o shall_v be_v with_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 18_o therefore_o comfort_v you_o one_o a_o other_o in_o these_o word_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n four_o 8._o not_o man_n but_o god_n church_n he_o that_o despise_v the_o church_n or_o her_o lawful_a pastor_n precept_n offend_v no_o less_o than_o if_o he_o contemn_v god_n express_v commandment_n for_o they_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v count_v among_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n only_o 13._o sleep_n some_o heretic_n perverse_o infer_v of_o this_o that_o the_o fowl_n do_v sleep_v till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n where_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o body_n only_o chap._n v._n to_o talk_v of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n it_o not_o necessary_a but_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o against_o that_o time_n so_o sedaine_a and_o so_o terrible_a to_o the_o unprepared_a 12_o he_o beseech_v the_o laiety_n to_o be_v obedient_a 14_o and_o the_o clergia_n to_o be_v vigilant_a with_o many_o short_a precept_n i_o verse_n 1_o and_o of_o the_o time_n and_o momente_n brethren_n you_o need_v not_o that_o we_o write_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 2_o for_o yourselves_o know_v perfect_o that_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v so_o come_v 10_o as_o *_o a_n thief_n in_o the_o night_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o when_o they_o shall_v say_v peace_n &_o security_n then_o shall_v sudden_a destruction_n come_v upon_o they_o 15._o as_o the_o pain_n to_o she_o that_o be_v with_o child_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v â_o verse_n 4_o but_o you_o brethren_n be_v not_o in_o darkness_n that_o the_o same_o day_n may_v as_o a_o thief_n overtake_v you_o â_o verse_n 5_o for_o all_o you_o be_v the_o child_n of_o light_n and_o child_n of_o the_o day_n we_o be_v not_o of_o the_o night_n nor_o of_o darkness_n â_o verse_n 6_o therefore_o let_v we_o not_o sleep_v as_o also_o other_o but_o let_v we_o watch_n and_o be_v sober_a â_o verse_n 7_o for_o they_o that_o sleep_n sleep_v in_o the_o night_n &_o they_o that_o be_v drink_v be_v drink_v in_o the_o night_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o we_o that_o be_v of_o the_o day_n 17._o be_v sober_a *_o have_v on_o the_o breastplate_n of_o faith_n and_o name_v charity_n and_o a_o helmet_n the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n â_o verse_n 9_o for_o god_n have_v not_o appoint_v we_o unto_o wrath_n but_o unto_o the_o purchase_n of_o salvation_n by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 10_o who_o die_v for_o we_o that_o whether_o we_o watch_n or_o sleep_v we_o may_v live_v together_o with_o he_o â_o verse_n 11_o for_o the_o
which_o cause_n comfort_v one_o a_o other_o &_o edify_v one_o a_o other_o as_o also_o you_o do_v â_o verse_n 12_o and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n that_o you_o will_v know_v they_o that_o labour_n among_o you_o and_o that_o govern_v you_o in_o our_o lord_n and_o admonish_v you_o â_o verse_n 13_o that_o you_o have_v they_o more_o aboudant_o in_o charity_n for_o their_o work_n have_v peace_n with_o they_o â_o verse_n 14_o lent_n and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n 9_o admonish_v the_o unquiet_a comfort_v the_o weak-minded_n bear_v up_o the_o weak_a be_v patient_a to_o al._n â_o verse_n 15_o see_v that_o *_o none_n render_v evil_a for_o evil_a to_o any_o man_n but_o always_o that_o which_o be_v good_a pursue_v towards_o each_o other_o 1._o and_o towards_o al._n â_o verse_n 16_o always_o rejoice_v â_o verse_n 17_o probam_fw-la pray_v *_o without_o intermission_n â_o verse_n 18_o in_o all_o thing_n give_v thanks_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_v of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n in_o all_o you_o â_o verse_n 19_o the_o spirit_n extinguish_v not_o â_o verse_n 20_o prophecy_n despise_v not_o â_o verse_n 21_o but_o â³_o prove_v all_o thing_n hold_v that_o which_o be_v good_a â_o verse_n 22_o from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_a refrain_v yourselves_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n himself_o sanctify_v you_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n and_o body_n without_o blame_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 24_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v call_v you_o who_o also_o will_v do_v it_o â_o verse_n 25_o brethren_n pray_v for_o us._n â_o verse_n 26_o salute_v all_o the_o brethren_n in_o a_o holy_a kiss_n â_o verse_n 27_o i_o adjure_v you_o by_o our_o lord_n that_o this_o epistle_n be_v read_v to_o all_o the_o holy_a brethren_n â_o verse_n 28_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o you_o amen_n annotat_fw-la chap._n v._n 10_o but_o proous_a spirit_n though_o we_o may_v not_o extinguish_v the_o spirit_n nor_o contemmne_v the_o prophet_n yet_o we_o must_v beware_v we_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o geve_v to_o light_a credit_n to_o every_o one_o that_o vaunt_v himself_o of_o the_o spirit_n as_o arch-heretike_n ever_o do_v we_o must_v try_v thââ_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v guile_n â_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o the_o second_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o have_v in_o the_o title_n as_o the_o first_o paul_n and_o silvanus_n and_o timothee_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o place_n to_o wit_n at_o corinth_n where_o they_o remain_v 11._o a_o year_n and_o six_o month_n &_o straight_o upon_o their_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o epistle_n first_o he_o thank_v god_n for_o their_o increase_n and_o perseuêrance_n comfort_v they_o again_o in_o those_o persecution_n and_o pray_v for_o their_o accomplisment_n second_o he_o assure_v they_o that_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v not_o at_o hand_n put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n what_o he_o tell_v they_o thereof_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n when_o he_o be_v present_a as_o therefore_o he_o bid_v they_o afterward_o 15._o to_o hold_v his_o tradition_n unwrite_v no_o less_o than_o the_o write_v to_o wit_n that_o all_o those_o persecution_n and_o heresy_n raise_v then_o and_o afterward_o against_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v but_o the_o mystery_n of_o antichrist_n and_o not_o antichrist_n himself_o but_o that_o there_o shall_v come_v at_o length_n a_o plain_a apostasy_n &_o they_o the_o whole_a before_o run_v mystery_n be_v once_o perfect_o wrought_v shall_v follow_v the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n himself_o in_o person_n as_o after_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n come_v himself_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n and_o then_o at_o length_n after_o all_o this_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n shall_v be_v as_o hand_n and_o not_o before_o whatsoever_o pretence_n of_o vision_n or_o of_o some_o speech_n of_o i_o say_v s._n paul_n any_o make_v to_o seduce_v you_o withal_o or_o of_o my_o former_a epistle_n or_o any_o other_o for_o which_o cause_n also_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o epistle_n he_o bid_v they_o to_o know_v his_o hand_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n in_o every_o epistle_n last_o he_o reque_v their_o prayer_n and_o require_v they_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o tradition_n namely_o that_o the_o poor_a which_o be_v able_a get_v their_o own_o live_n with_o work_v as_o he_o also_o give_v they_o example_n though_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v thereto_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o chap._n i._n he_o thank_v god_n for_o their_o increase_n in_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o constancy_n in_o persecution_n assure_v they_o that_o they_o merit_v thereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o their_o persecutor_n do_v damnation_n 11_o and_o also_o pray_v for_o their_o accomplishment_n verse_n 1_o paul_n and_o silvanus_n and_o timothee_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o in_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 2_o grace_n to_o you_o and_o peace_n from_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 3_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v thanks_n always_o to_o god_n for_o you_o brethren_n so_o as_o meet_v be_v because_o your_o faith_n increase_v exceed_o and_o the_o charity_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o abound_v towards_o each_o other_o â_o verse_n 4_o so_o that_o we_o ourselves_o also_o glory_n in_o you_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o your_o patience_n and_o faith_n in_o all_o your_o persecution_n and_o tribulation_n which_o you_o sustain_v â_o verse_n 5_o for_o a_o example_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o merit_n you_o may_v be_v ãâã_d count_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o the_o which_o also_o you_o suffer_v â_o verse_n 6_o if_o yet_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o repay_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o vex_v you_o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o to_o you_o that_o be_v vex_v rest_n with_o we_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n from_o heaven_n with_o the_o angel_n of_o his_o power_n 16._o â_o verse_n 8_o in_o flame_n of_o fire_n give_v revenge_n to_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n &_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 9_o who_o shall_v suffer_v eternal_a pain_n in_o destruction_n from_o the_o face_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n â_o verse_n 10_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v same_o glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v make_v marvellous_a in_o all_o they_o that_o have_v believe_v because_o our_o testimony_n concern_v you_o be_v credit_v in_o that_o day_n â_o verse_n 11_o wherein_o also_o we_o pray_v always_o for_o you_o that_o our_o god_n ãâã_d make_v you_o worthy_a of_o his_o vocation_n and_o accomplish_v all_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o goodness_n &_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n in_o power_n â_o verse_n 12_o that_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o you_o and_o you_o in_o he_o according_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n chap._n ii_o he_o require_v they_o in_o no_o case_n to_o think_v that_o domesday_n be_v at_o hand_n â_o repeat_n unto_o they_o that_o there_o must_v before_o come_v first_o a_o revolt_n second_o the_o revelation_n also_o of_o antichrist_n himself_o in_o person_n and_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o permit_v any_o god_n to_o be_v worship_v but_o only_o himself_o that_o also_o with_o his_o lie_v wonder_v he_o shall_v win_v to_o he_o the_o incredulous_a jew_n but_o christ_n shall_v come_v then_o immediate_o in_o majesty_n and_o destroy_v he_o and_o he_o 13_o therefore_o he_o thank_v god_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o 15_o and_o bid_v they_o stick_v to_o hiâ_n tradition_n both_o write_v and_o unwrite_v &_o pray_v god_n to_o confirm_v they_o verse_n 1_o and_o we_o desire_v you_o advent_a brethren_z by_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o our_o congregation_n into_o he_o â_o verse_n two_o that_o you_o be_v not_o easy_o move_v from_o your_o sense_n nor_o be_v terrify_v neither_o by_o spirit_n nor_o by_o word_n nor_o by_o epistle_n as_o send_v by_o we_o â³_o as_o though_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n â_o verse_n 3_o let_v no_o man_n seduce_v you_o by_o any_o mean_n for_o â³_o unless_o there_o come_v ãâã_d a_o revolt_n first_o and_z â³_o
the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v reveal_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n â_o verse_n 4_o which_o be_v a_o adversary_n &_o be_v â³_o extol_v saint_n above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o sit_v â³_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o though_o he_o be_v god_n â_o verse_n 5_o remember_v you_o not_o that_o when_o i_o be_v yet_o with_o you_o i_o tell_v you_o these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o now_o â³_o what_o let_v you_o know_v that_o he_o may_v be_v reveal_v in_o his_o time_n â_o verse_n 7_o for_o now_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n work_v only_o that_o he_o which_o now_o hold_v do_v hold_v until_o he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o then_o that_o wicked_a one_o shall_v be_v reveal_v *_o who_o our_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v kill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n 4._o &_o shall_v destroy_v with_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o advent_n he_o â_o verse_n 9_o who_o come_a be_v according_a to_o the_o operation_n of_o satan_n â³_o in_o all_o power_n and_o lie_v sign_n and_o wonder_v â_o verse_n 10_o and_o in_o all_o seduce_a of_o iniquity_n to_o they_o that_o perish_v for_o that_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o charity_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v â_o verse_n 11_o therefore_o 24._o god_n will_v send_v they_o the_o operation_n of_o error_n to_o believe_v lie_v â_o verse_n 12_o that_o all_o may_v be_v judge_v which_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o truth_n but_o have_v consent_v to_o iniquity_n â_o verse_n 13_o but_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n always_o for_o you_o brethren_n belove_v of_o god_n that_o he_o have_v choose_v you_o firstfruit_n unto_o salvation_n in_o sanctification_n of_o spirit_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o truth_n â_o verse_n 14_o into_o the_o which_o also_o he_o have_v call_v you_o by_o our_o gospel_n unto_o the_o purchase_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 15_o therefore_o brethren_n stand_v and_o hold_v ãâã_d the_o â³_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o and_o god_n &_o our_o father_n which_o have_v love_v we_o and_o have_v give_v eternal_a consolation_n and_o good_a hope_n in_o grace_n â_o verse_n 17_o ãâã_d 6._o exhort_v your_o heart_n and_o confirm_v you_o in_o every_o good_a work_n and_o word_n annotation_n chap._n ii_o â_o aâ_n though_o the_o day_n secret_n the_o curiosity_n of_o man_n feed_v by_o satan_n deceit_n have_v seek_v to_o know_v and_o to_o give_v out_o to_o the_o world_n such_o thing_n as_o god_n will_v not_o impart_v to_o he_o nor_o be_v necessary_a or_o profitable_a for_o he_o to_o know_v so_o far_o that_o both_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o often_o afterward_o some_o have_v feign_a revelation_n some_o false_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n some_o presume_v to_o calculate_v and_o conject_v by_o the_o star_n and_o give_v forth_o to_o the_o world_n a_o certain_a time_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n all_o which_o seducer_n be_v here_o note_v in_o the_o person_n of_o some_o that_o be_v about_o to_o deceive_v the_o thessalonian_o therein_o and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 80_o epistle_n ad_fw-la hesychium_n prove_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v by_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o day_n year_n or_o age_n that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n or_o the_o second_o advent_n shall_v be_v â_o unless_o there_o come_v a_o revolt_n first_o though_o we_o can_v not_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o moment_n hour_n or_o any_o certain_a time_n of_o our_o lord_n come_v antichrist_n yet_o he_o warrant_v we_o that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v before_o certain_a thing_n be_v fulfil_v which_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o course_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o permission_n before_o which_o be_v diverse_a whereof_o in_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v forewarn_v here_o he_o warn_v we_o of_o two_o special_o of_o a_o revolt_n defection_n or_o a_o apostasy_n and_o of_o the_o come_n or_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n which_o two_o pertain_v in_o effect_n both_o to_o one_o either_o depend_v of_o the_o other_o and_o shall_v fall_v as_o it_o may_v be_v think_v near_o together_o and_o therefore_o s_n augustine_n make_v they_o but_o one_o thing_n this_o apostasy_n or_o revolt_n by_o the_o judgement_n in_o manner_n of_o all_o ancient_a writer_n be_v the_o general_a forsake_v &_o fall_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n so_o tertullian_n li._n the_o resur_n carnis_fw-la s._n hierom_n q_o 11_o add_v algasiam_n s._n chrysostom_n ho._n 4._o and_o s._n ambrose_n upon_o this_o place_n s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la li._n 20_o c._n 19_o all_o which_o father_n and_o the_o rest_n *_o caluin_n presumpâkously_o condemn_v of_o error_n and_o folly_n herein_o locum_fw-la for_o that_o their_o exposition_n agree_v not_o with_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n blasphemous_a fiction_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v antichrist_n father_n to_o establish_v which_o false_a impiety_n they_o interpret_v this_o revolt_n or_o apostasy_n to_o be_v a_o general_a revolt_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n from_o god_n who_o house_n or_o building_n they_o say_v be_v sudden_o destroy_v and_o lay_v many_o year_n ruin_v and_o rule_v only_o by_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n so_o faith_n the_o foresay_a archheretic_n here_o though_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o defence_n and_o as_o the_o matter_n else_o where_o require_v he_o seem_v as_o all_o their_o fashion_n be_v to_o speak_v in_o other_o place_n quite_o contrary_a but_o with_o such_o colour_n and_o collusion_n of_o word_n that_o neither_o other_o man_n nor_o himself_o can_v tell_v what_o he_o will_v have_v or_o say_v and_o his_o father_n wicleffe_n and_o luther_n his_o fellow_n and_o follower_n illyricus_n beza_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n fall_v from_o christ_n so_o various_a among_o themselves_o and_o so_o contrary_a to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v horrible_a to_o see_v their_o confusion_n and_o a_o pitieful_a case_n that_o any_o reasonable_a man_n will_v follow_v such_o companion_n to_o evident_a perdition_n but_o concern_v âhis_v error_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o church_n defection_n or_o revolt_n god_n it_o be_v refute_v sufficient_o by_o s._n augustine_n against_o the_o donatist_n in_o many_o place_n where_o he_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o fail_v to_o the_o world_n end_n no_o not_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n affirm_v they_o to_o deny_v christ_n and_o to_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o glory_n &_o inheritance_n buy_v with_o his_o blood_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n may_v fail_v or_o perish_v li._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ec._n c._n 12._o 13._o de_fw-fr civit._n li._n 20._o c._n 8._o in_o psal_n 85_o ad_fw-la illud_fw-la tu_fw-la soâu_fw-la deus_fw-la magnus_fw-la ps_n 70_o conc._n 2._o &_o psal_n 60._o de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 8._o s._n hierom_n refute_v the_o same_o wicked_a heresy_n in_o the_o 6._o luciferian_o prove_v against_o they_o that_o they_o make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o poor_a miserable_a christ_n that_o imagine_v the_o church_n his_o body_n may_v either_o perish_v or_o be_v drive_v to_o any_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n both_o of_o they_o answer_n to_o the_o heretic_n argument_n ground_v on_o scripture_n false_o understand_v which_o be_v to_o long_o here_o to_o rehearse_v it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o christian_a reader_n to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o old_a deceit_n and_o excuse_n of_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o forsake_v god_n church_n that_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v or_o remain_v hide_v or_o in_o themselves_o only_o and_o in_o those_o place_n where_o they_o and_o their_o follower_n dwell_o to_o know_v also_o that_o this_o be_v reprove_v by_o the_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v against_o christ_n honour_n power_n providence_n and_o promise_n if_o the_o adversary_n have_v say_v that_o this_o revolt_n which_o the_o apostle_n foretell_v shall_v come_v before_o the_o world_n end_n 18._o be_v mean_v of_o great_a number_n of_o heretic_n &_o apostate_n revolt_n from_o the_o church_n they_o have_v say_v truth_n of_o themselves_o and_o such_o other_o faith_n who_o s._n john_n call_v antichristes_n and_o it_o be_v very_o like_a be_v it_o speak_v under_o the_o correction_n of_o god_n church_n and_o all_o learned_a catholic_n that_o this_o great_a defection_n or_o revolt_n shall_v not_o be_v only_o from_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o special_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o withal_o from_o most_o point_n of_o christian_a religion_n not_o that_o the_o catholic_a christian_n either_o in_o the_o time_n of_o
let_v we_o avoid_v those_o novelty_n of_o word_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n prescript_n and_o keep_v the_o old_a term_n penance_n fast_v priest_n church_n bishop_n mass_n matin_n evensong_n the_o b._n sacrament_n altar_n oblation_n host_n sacrifice_n alleluia_n amen_o lent_n palme-sunday_n chrisimas_fw-la &_o the_o very_a word_n will_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o first_o apostle_n and_o condemn_v these_o new_a apostate_n new_a faith_n and_o phrase_n 20._o false_o call_v knowledge_n call_v it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o all_o heretic_n to_o arrogate_v to_o themselves_o great_a knowledge_n and_o to_o condemn_v the_o simplicity_n of_o their_o father_n the_o holy_a doctor_n and_o the_o church_n but_o the_o apostle_n call_v their_o pretend_a skill_n a_o knowledge_n false_o so_o call_v be_v in_o truth_n high_a and_o deep_a blindness_n such_o say_v s._n irenaeus_n li._n 5_o c._n 17._o as_o forsake_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o church_n argue_v the_o holy_a priest_n of_o unskilfulnes_n not_o consider_v how_o far_o more_o worth_a a_o religious_a idiot_n be_v they_o a_o blasphemous_a and_o impudent_a sophister_n such_o as_o all_o heretic_n be_v and_o again_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o heretic_n say_v come_v o_o you_o foolish_a and_o miserable_a man_n that_o be_v common_o call_v catholic_n and_o learn_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o have_v be_v hide_v many_o age_n heretofore_o but_o be_v reveal_v and_o show_v of_o late_a etc._n etc._n see_v his_o whole_a book_n concern_v these_o matter_n the_o argument_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o timothee_n the_o chief_a scope_n of_o this_o second_o to_o timothee_n be_v to_o open_v unto_o he_o that_o his_o martyrdom_n be_v at_o hand_n which_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o plain_o before_o the_o end_n prepare_v first_o his_o mind_n with_o much_o circumstance_n because_o he_o know_v it_o will_v grieve_v he_o sore_o and_o also_o may_v be_v a_o tentation_n unto_o he_o therefore_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o trouble_n &_o of_o the_o reward_n that_o the_o one_o be_v honourable_a and_o the_o other_o most_o glorious_a and_o exhort_v he_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o the_o faith_n to_o be_v ready_a always_o to_o suffer_v for_o it_o to_o fulfil_v his_o ministry_n to_o the_o end_n as_o himself_o now_o have_v do_v he_o whereby_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v write_v at_o rome_n in_o his_o last_o apprehension_n and_o imprisonment_n there_o as_o he_o signify_v by_o these_o word_n cap._n 1_o onesiphorus_n be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o my_o chain_n but_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n careful_o seek_v i_o etc._n etc._n and_o of_o his_o martyrdom_n thus_o for_o i_o be_o now_o ready_a to_o be_v offer_v and_o the_o time_n of_o my_o resolution_n or_o death_n be_v at_o hand_n cap._n 4._o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o timothee_n chap._n i._n with_o his_o praise_n he_o covert_o exhort_v he_o not_o to_o be_v dismay_v for_o his_o trouble_n 6_o have_v grace_n give_v in_o order_n to_o help_v he_o 8_o and_o know_v for_o what_o cause_n he_o be_v persecute_v and_o namely_o with_o the_o example_n of_o onesiphorus_n verse_n 1_o paul_n a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o will_v of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 2_o to_o timothee_n my_o dear_a son_n grace_n mercy_n peace_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 3_o i_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n who_o i_o serve_v from_o my_o progenitour_n in_o a_o pure_a conscience_n that_o without_o intermission_n i_o have_v a_o memory_n of_o thou_o in_o my_o prayer_n night_n and_o day_n â_o verse_n 4_o desire_v to_o see_v thou_o mindful_a of_o thy_o tear_n that_o i_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o joy_n â_o verse_n 5_o calling_n to_o mind_n that_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o not_o feign_a which_o also_o dwell_v first_o â³_o in_o thy_o grandmother_n loïs_n and_o thy_o mother_n eunîce_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o in_o thou_o also_o â_o verse_n 6_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n i_o admonish_v thou_o that_o thou_o resuscitate_a the_o 25._o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o my_o hand_n â_o verse_n 7_o for_o god_n have_v not_o give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n but_o of_o power_n and_o love_n and_o sobriety_n â_o verse_n 8_o be_v not_o therefore_o ashamed_a of_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o lord_n nor_o of_o i_o his_o prisoner_n but_o travail_n with_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 9_o who_o have_v deliver_v and_o call_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a call_n 5._o *_o not_o according_a to_o our_o work_n but_o according_a to_o his_o purpose_n and_o grace_n â_o which_o be_v give_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n *_o before_o the_o secular_a time_n â_o verse_n 10_o but_o it_o be_v manifest_v now_o by_o the_o illumination_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v destroy_v death_n &_o illuminate_v life_n and_o incorruption_n by_o the_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 11_o wherein_o *_o i_o be_o appoint_v a_o preacher_n and_o apostle_n and_o master_n of_o the_o gentile_n 7._o â_o verse_n 12_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n also_o i_o suffer_v these_o thing_n but_o i_o be_o not_o confound_v for_o i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v believe_v &_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v my_o â³_o depositum_fw-la unto_o that_o day_n â_o verse_n 13_o have_v thou_o â³_o a_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o in_o faith_n &_o write_n ãâã_d in_o the_o love_n in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 14_o keep_v the_o good_a depositum_fw-la by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o dwell_v in_o us._n â_o verse_n 15_o thou_o know_a this_n that_o all_o which_o be_v in_o asia_n be_v avert_v from_o i_o of_o who_o be_v phigelus_fw-la and_o hermogenes_n â_o verse_n 16_o our_o lord_n give_v mercy_n to_o *_o the_n house_n of_o onesiphorus_n 19_o because_o he_o have_v often_o refresh_v i_o and_o have_v ever_o not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o my_o chain_n â_o verse_n 17_o but_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n he_o seek_v i_o careful_o and_o find_v i_o â_o verse_n 18_o â³_o our_o lord_n grant_v he_o to_o find_v mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o that_o day_n and_o how_o many_o thing_n he_o minister_v to_o i_o at_o ephesus_n thou_o know_a better_a annotation_n chap._n i._n 5._o in_o thy_o grandmother_n though_o god_n show_v mercy_n to_o many_o that_o be_v of_o incredulous_a heretical_a or_o ill_a parent_n faith_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o goodly_a benediction_n of_o god_n to_o have_v good_a education_n and_o to_o have_v good_a faithful_a progenitor_n and_o catholic_a parent_n and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o forsake_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o father_n that_o be_v catholic_n or_o contrary_a to_o our_o education_n in_o the_o church_n to_o follow_v strange_a doctrine_n abandon_v not_o only_a our_o next_o natural_a parent_n faith_n but_o the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o our_o progenitor_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o and_o if_o to_o follow_v the_o faith_n of_o mother_n and_o grandmother_n only_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v then_o but_o new_o plant_v be_v so_o commendable_a even_o in_o a_o bishop_n how_o much_o more_o be_v it_o now_o laudable_a to_o cleave_v fast_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o so_o many_o our_o progenitor_n and_o age_n that_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o christian_a religion_n which_o they_o first_o receive_v our_o protestant_n in_o their_o great_a wisdom_n laugh_v at_o good_a simple_a man_n when_o they_o talk_v of_o their_o father_n faith_n count_v but_o s._n hierom_n 8._o i_o be_o a_o christian_n laudable_a say_v he_o and_o bear_v of_o christian_a parent_n and_o carry_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o my_o forehead_n and_o again_o ep_a 65._o c._n 3._o until_o this_o day_n the_o christian_a world_n have_v be_v without_o this_o doctrine_n that_o faith_n will_v i_o hold_v fast_o be_v a_o old_a man_n wherein_o i_o be_v bear_v a_o child_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n set_v we_o often_o to_o school_n to_o our_o father_n 43._o ask_v thy_o father_n and_o they_o will_v show_v thou_o thy_o ancestor_n and_o they_o will_v tell_v thou_o and_o again_o our_o father_n have_v show_v unto_o us._n and_o common_o the_o true_a god_n be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o of_o their_o forefather_n dan._n 2._o 3._o and_o false_a god_n and_o new_a doctrine_n or_o opinion_n be_v name_v new_a and_o fresh_a such_o as_o their_o father_n worship_v not_o deut._n 32._o final_o s._n paul_n both_o here_o and_o 24._o often_o else_o allege_v for_o his_o defence_n and_o commendation_n that_o he_o be_v of_o faithful_a progenitor_n
and_o it_o be_v a_o case_n that_o heretic_n can_v not_o light_o brag_v of_o no_o one_o sect_n common_o during_o so_o long_a without_o intermission_n 11._o that_o they_o can_v have_v many_o progenitor_n of_o the_o say_a sect_n which_o be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o true_a and_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a our_o catholic_a faith_n to_o be_v false_a suppose_v the_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v true_a 12._o depositum_fw-la a_o great_a comfort_n to_o all_o christian_n reward_v that_o every_o of_o their_o good_a deed_n and_o suffering_n for_o christ_n and_o all_o the_o worldly_a loss_n sustain_v for_o defence_n or_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n he_o extant_a with_o god_n and_o keep_v as_o depositum_fw-la to_o be_v repay_v or_o receive_v again_o in_o heaven_n which_o if_o the_o worlding_n believe_v or_o consider_v they_o will_v not_o so_o much_o marvel_v to_o see_v catholic_a man_n so_o willing_o to_o lose_v land_n liberty_n credit_n life_n and_o all_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o the_o church_n faith_n 13._o a_o form_n the_o apostle_n do_v set_v down_o a_o platform_n of_o faith_n doctrine_n &_o phrase_n of_o catholic_a speech_n and_o preach_v &_o that_o not_o so_o much_o by_o writing_n as_o here_o we_o see_v as_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o which_o he_o refer_v timothee_n over_o and_o above_o his_o epistle_n unto_o he_o and_o how_o precise_o christian_a doctor_n ought_v to_o keep_v the_o form_n of_o word_n ancient_o appropriate_v to_o the_o mystery_n and_o matter_n of_o our_o religion_n word_n s._n augustine_n express_v in_o these_o word_n li._n 10_o the_o civet_n c._n 23._o philosopher_n speak_v with_o freedom_n of_o word_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o must_v speak_v according_a to_o a_o certain_a rule_n lest_o licentious_a liberty_n of_o word_n breed_v a_o impious_a opinion_n of_o the_o thing_n also_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o same_o trinity_n person_n essence_n consubstantial_a transubstantiation_n mass_n sacrament_n and_o such_o like_a be_v verba_fw-la sana_fw-la as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v sound_a word_n give_v to_o express_v certain_a high_a truth_n in_o religion_n partly_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o founder_n of_o our_o religion_n under_o christ_n and_o partly_o very_o apt_o invent_v by_o holy_a counsel_n and_o father_n to_o express_v as_o near_o as_o can_v be_v the_o high_a inestable_a or_o unspeakable_a verity_n of_o some_o point_n and_o to_o stop_v the_o heretic_n audacity_n and_o invention_n of_o new_a word_n and_o profane_a speech_n in_o such_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n warn_v timothee_n to_o avoid_v 1_o ep_n c._n 6_o 10._o and_o 2_o ep_n 2_o 16._o see_v the_o annotation_n there_o 18._o our_o lord_n prisoner_n to_o have_v this_o prayer_n of_o a_o apostle_n or_o any_o priest_n or_o poor_a cath._n man_n so_o relieve_v give_v the_o great_a hope_n at_o the_o day_n of_o our_o death_n or_o general_a judgement_n that_o can_v be_v and_o it_o be_v worth_a all_o the_o land_n honour_n and_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n chap._n ii_o he_o exhort_v he_o to_o labour_v diligent_o in_o his_o office_n consider_v the_o reward_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o denial_n of_o they_o that_o deny_v he_o 14_o not_o to_o contend_v but_o to_o shun_v heretic_n neither_o to_o be_v move_v to_o see_v some_o subvert_v consider_v that_o the_o elect_v continue_v catholic_n and_o that_o in_o the_o church_n be_v of_o all_o sort_n 24_o yet_o withal_o sweetness_n to_o reclaim_v the_o deceive_v verse_n 1_o thou_o therefore_o my_o son_n be_v strong_a in_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 2_o &_o the_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o by_o many_o witness_n these_o commend_v to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v fit_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o â_o verse_n 3_o labour_v thou_o as_o a_o good_a soldier_n of_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 4_o â³_o no_o man_n be_v a_o soldier_n to_o god_n entangle_v himself_o with_o secular_a business_n that_o he_o may_v please_v he_o to_o who_o he_o have_v approve_v himself_o â_o verse_n 5_o for_o he_o also_o that_o strive_v for_o the_o mastery_n be_v not_o crown_v unless_o he_o strive_v lawful_o â_o verse_n 6_o the_o husbandman_n that_o labour_v must_v first_o take_v of_o the_o fruit_n â_o verse_n 7_o understand_v what_o i_o say_v for_o our_o lord_n will_v give_v thou_o in_o all_o thing_n understand_v â_o verse_n 8_o be_v mindful_a that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o my_o gospel_n â_o verse_n 9_o wherein_o i_o labour_v even_o unto_o band_n as_o a_o malefactor_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o tie_v â_o verse_n 10_o therefore_o endeavour_n i_o sustain_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o elect_a that_o they_o also_o may_v obtain_v the_o salvation_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n with_o heavenly_a glory_n â_o verse_n 11_o a_o faithful_a say_n for_o if_o we_o be_v dead_a with_o he_o we_o shall_v live_v also_o together_o â_o verse_n 12_o if_o we_o shall_v sustain_v 3._o we_o shall_v also_o reign_v together_o *_o if_o we_o shall_v deny_v he_o also_o will_v deny_v us._n â_o verse_n 13_o *_o if_o we_o believe_v not_o he_o continue_v faithful_a he_o can_v not_o deny_v himself_o â_o verse_n 14_o these_o thing_n admonish_v testify_v before_o our_o lord_n contend_v not_o in_o word_n for_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o nothing_o but_o for_o the_o subversion_n of_o they_o that_o hear_v â_o verse_n 15_o careful_o provide_v to_o present_v thyself_o approve_v to_o god_n a_o workman_n not_o to_o be_v confound_v â³_o right_o handle_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n â_o verse_n 16_o but_o 20._o profane_a and_o vain_a speech_n avoid_v for_o they_o do_v much_o grow_v to_o impiety_n â_o verse_n 17_o &_o â³_o their_o speech_n spread_v as_o a_o canker_n of_o who_o be_v hymenaeus_n and_o philêtus_n â_o verse_n 18_o who_o have_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v do_v already_o and_o have_v subvert_v the_o faith_n of_o some_o â_o verse_n 19_o but_o the_o sure_a foundation_n of_o god_n stand_v have_v this_o seal_n our_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o and_o let_v every_o one_o depart_n from_o iniquity_n that_o name_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 20_o but_o â³_o in_o a_o great_a house_n there_o be_v not_o only_a vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o of_o silver_n but_o also_o of_o wood_n and_o of_o earth_n and_o certain_a in_o deed_n unto_o honour_n but_o certain_a unto_o contumely_n â_o verse_n 21_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v â³_o cleanse_v himself_o from_o these_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o vessel_n unto_o honour_n sanctify_a &_o profitable_a to_o our_o lord_n prepare_v to_o every_o good_a work_n â_o verse_n 22_o but_o youthful_a desire_n flee_v and_o pursue_v justice_n faith_n charity_n &_o peace_n with_o they_o that_o invocate_v our_o lord_n from_o a_o pure_a hart_n 9_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o *_o foolish_a and_o unlearned_a question_n avoid_v know_v that_o they_o engender_v brawl_n â_o verse_n 24_o but_o the_o servant_n of_o our_o lord_n must_v not_o wrangle_v but_o be_v mild_a towards_o all_o man_n apt_a to_o teach_v patient_a â_o verse_n 25_o with_o modesty_n admonish_v they_o that_o resist_v the_o truth_n lest_o sometime_o will_n god_n give_v they_o repentance_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n â_o verse_n 26_o and_o they_o recover_v themselves_o from_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o who_o they_o be_v hold_v captive_a at_o he_o will_v annotation_n chap._n ii_o 4_o no_o man_n be_v a_o soldier_n function_n first_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 7._o make_v marriage_n &_o the_o needful_a care_n solicitude_n and_o distraction_n thereupon_o ever_o depend_v special_a impediment_n of_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v employ_v themselves_o whole_o to_o god_n service_n as_o bishop_n &_o priest_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v he_o that_o be_v with_o a_o wife_n say_v he_o be_v careful_a for_o the_o world_n how_o to_o please_v his_o wife_n and_o be_v distract_v or_o divide_v 2_o cor._n 7._o second_o the_o practice_n of_o physic_n merchandise_n or_o any_o other_o profane_a faculty_n and_o trade_n of_o life_n to_o gather_v riches_n and_o much_o more_o to_o be_v give_v to_o hunt_v hawk_v gameve_v show_n interlude_n or_o the_o like_a pastime_n be_v here_o forbid_a three_o the_o service_n of_o prince_n and_o manifold_a base_a office_n do_v to_o they_o for_o to_o obtain_v dignity_n and_o promotion_n cause_n be_v disagreable_a to_o priestly_a function_n not_o so_o to_o be_v their_o chaplain_n for_o his_o purpose_n to_o preach_v unto_o they_o to_o hear_v their_o confession_n to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o they_o to_o say_v divine_a service_n before_o they_o and_o such_o other_o spiritual_a duty_n for_o all_o such_o service_n do_v
other_o but_o not_o all_o that_o suffer_v persecution_n be_v holy_a as_o all_o malefactor_n the_o church_n and_o catholic_a prince_n persecute_v heretic_n and_o be_v persecute_v of_o they_o again_o as_o s._n augustine_n often_o declare_v see_v ep_n 48._o 13._o prosper_n though_o heresy_n and_o the_o author_n of_o they_o be_v after_o a_o while_n discover_v &_o by_o little_a and_o little_o forsake_v general_o of_o the_o honest_a discrete_a and_o man_n careful_a of_o their_o own_o salvation_n yet_o their_o author_n and_o other_o great_a sinner_n proceed_v from_o one_o error_n and_o heresy_n to_o a_o other_o and_o final_o to_o plain_a atheism_n and_o all_o devilish_a disorder_n 16._o all_o scripture_n beside_o the_o apostle_n teach_v and_o tradition_n the_o read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v a_o great_a defence_n and_o help_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o special_o of_o a_o bishop_n not_o only_o to_o avoid_v and_o condemn_v all_o heresy_n scripture_n but_o to_o the_o guide_n of_o a_o man_n in_o all_o justice_n good_a life_n and_o work_n which_o commendation_n be_v not_o here_o give_v to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n only_o whereof_o he_o here_o speak_v not_o as_o be_v yet_o for_o a_o great_a part_n not_o write_v but_o to_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n also_o yea_o and_o to_o every_o book_n of_o it_o for_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o nor_o any_o part_n of_o they_o but_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o the_o end_n aforesaid_a if_o it_o be_v read_v and_o understand_v according_a to_o the_o same_o spirit_n wherewith_o it_o be_v write_v the_o heretic_n upon_o this_o commendation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n sufficient_a pretend_v very_o simple_o in_o good_a sooth_n that_o therefore_o nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o justice_n and_o salvation_n but_o scripture_n as_o though_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v profitable_a or_o necessary_a to_o any_o effect_n exclude_v all_o other_o help_n and_o be_v only_o enough_o to_o attain_v the_o same_o by_o which_o reason_n a_o man_n may_v as_o well_o prove_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v enough_o and_o so_o exclude_v the_o new_a or_o any_o one_o piece_n of_o all_o the_o old_a and_o thereby_o exclude_v the_o rest_n for_o he_o affirm_v every_o scripture_n to_o have_v the_o foresay_a utility_n and_o they_o may_v see_v in_o the_o very_a next_o line_n before_o that_o he_o require_v his_o constant_a perseuêrance_n in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v he_o over_o and_o above_o that_o he_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o he_o have_v read_v from_o his_o infancy_n but_o can_v not_o thereby_o learn_v all_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n therein_o neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n affirm_v here_o that_o he_o have_v his_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n by_o read_v only_o without_o help_n of_o master_n and_o teacher_n as_o the_o adversary_n hereupon_o to_o commit_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o every_o man_n presumption_n do_v gather_v but_o affirm_v only_o that_o timothee_n know_v the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o have_v study_v they_o by_o hear_v good_a reader_n and_o teacher_n as_o s._n paul_n himself_o do_v of_o gamaliel_n and_o the_o like_a and_o as_o all_o christian_n student_n do_v that_o be_v train_v up_o from_o their_o youth_n in_o catholic_a university_n in_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n chap._n four_o he_o require_v he_o to_o be_v earnest_a while_o he_o may_v because_o the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o they_o will_v not_o abide_v catholic_a preach_v 5_o and_o to_o fulfil_v his_o course_n as_o himself_o now_o have_v do_v 9_o and_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o with_o speed_n because_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o train_n be_v disperse_v and_o he_o draw_v now_o to_o heaven_n verse_n 1_o i_o testify_v before_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v judge_v the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a 4._o and_o by_o his_o advent_n and_o his_o kingdom_n â_o verse_n 2_o preach_v the_o word_n urge_v in_o season_n out_o of_o season_n reprove_v beseech_v rebuke_v in_o all_o patience_n and_o doctrine_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o â³_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n when_o they_o will_v not_o bear_v âound_v doctrine_n but_o according_a to_o their_o own_o desire_n they_o will_v heap_v to_o themselves_o master_n have_v itch_a ear_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o from_o the_o truth_n certes_o they_o will_v avert_v their_o hear_n and_o to_o fable_n they_o will_v be_v convert_v â_o verse_n 5_o but_o be_v thou_o vigilant_a labour_n in_o all_o thing_n do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n fulfil_v thy_o ministry_n be_v sober_a â_o verse_n 6_o for_o i_o be_o even_o now_o metaphor_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v &_o the_o time_n of_o my_o resolution_n be_v at_o hand_n â_o verse_n 7_o i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n i_o have_v consummate_v my_o course_n i_o have_v keep_v the_o faith_n â_o verse_n 8_o concern_v the_o rest_n there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o â³_o a_o crown_n of_o justice_n which_o our_o lord_n will_v render_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n a_o just_a judge_n and_o not_o only_o to_o i_o but_o to_o they_o also_o that_o love_n his_o come_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 9_o make_v haste_n to_o come_v to_o i_o quick_o â_o verse_n 10_o for_o demas_n have_v leave_v i_o love_v this_o world_n and_o be_v go_v to_o thessalonica_n crescens_n into_o galatia_n 14_o titus_n into_o dalmatia_n â_o verse_n 11_o *_o luke_n only_o be_v with_o i_o take_v mark_n and_o bring_v he_o with_o thou_o for_o he_o be_v profitable_a to_o i_o for_o the_o ministry_n â_o verse_n 12_o but_o tychicus_n i_o have_v send_v to_o ephesus_n â_o verse_n 13_o the_o cloak_n that_o i_o leave_v at_o troas_n with_o carpus_n come_v bring_v with_o thou_o and_o the_o book_n especial_o the_o parchment_n â_o verse_n 14_o alexander_n the_o coppersmith_n have_v show_v i_o much_o evil_a our_o lord_n will_v reward_n he_o according_a to_o his_o work_n â_o verse_n 15_o who_o do_v thou_o also_o avoid_v for_o he_o have_v great_o resist_v our_o word_n â_o verse_n 16_o in_o my_o first_o answer_n no_o man_n be_v with_o i_o but_o all_o do_v forsake_v i_o be_v it_o not_o impute_v to_o they_o â_o verse_n 17_o but_o our_o lord_n stand_v to_o i_o and_o strengthen_v i_o that_o by_o i_o the_o preach_n may_v be_v accomplish_v and_o all_o gentile_n may_v hear_v and_o i_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n â_o verse_n 18_o our_o lord_n deliver_v â_o have_v deliver_v '_o i_o from_o all_o evil_a work_n and_o will_v save_v i_o unto_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o &_o ever_o amen_n â_o verse_n 19_o salute_v prisca_n and_o aquila_n 16._o and_o *_o the_n house_n of_o onesiphorus_n â_o verse_n 20_o erastus_n remain_v at_o corinth_n and_o trophimus_n i_o leave_v sick_a at_o milêtum_n â_o verse_n 21_o make_v haste_n to_o come_v before_o winter_n eubûlus_fw-la and_o pudens_n and_o pope_n linus_n and_o claudia_n and_o all_o the_o brethren_n salute_v thou_o â_o verse_n 22_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o thy_o spirit_n grace_n be_v with_o you_o amen_n annotation_n chap._n four_o 3._o there_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n if_o ever_o this_o time_n come_v as_o needs_o it_o must_v that_o the_o apostle_n foresee_v and_o foretell_v now_o it_o be_v undoubted_o preacher_n for_o the_o property_n fall_v so_o just_a in_o every_o point_n upon_o our_o new_a master_n and_o their_o disciple_n that_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v pourter_v out_o rather_o than_o prophesy_v of_o never_o be_v there_o such_o delicate_a doctor_n that_o can_v so_o pleasant_o claw_v and_o so_o sweet_o rub_v the_o itch_a ear_n of_o their_o hearer_n as_o these_o which_o have_v a_o doctrine_n frame_v for_o every_o man_n phamsie_n lust_n like_v and_o desire_n 10._o the_o people_n not_o so_o fast_o cry_v speak_v placentia_fw-la thing_n that_o please_v but_o the_o master_n as_o fast_o warrant_v they_o to_o do_v placentia_fw-la 8._o acrowne_v of_o justice_n this_o place_n convince_v for_o the_o catholic_n meritorious_a that_o all_o good_a work_n do_v by_o god_n grace_n after_o the_o first_o justification_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o meritorious_a and_o full_o worthy_a of_o everlasting_a life_n and_o that_o thereupon_o heaven_n be_v the_o due_a and_o just_a stipend_n crown_n or_o recompense_n which_o god_n by_o his_o justice_n owe_v to_o the_o person_n so_o work_v by_o his_o grace_n for_o he_o render_v or_o repai_v heaven_n as_o a_o just_a judge_n mercy_n and_o not_o only_o as_o a_o merciful_a give_v and_o the_o crown_n which_o he_o pai_v be_v not_o only_o of_o mercy_n or_o favour_n or_o grace_n but_o also_o of_o justice_n it_o be_v his_o merciful_a favour_n and_o grace_n that_o we_o work_v well_o &_o merit_v heaven_n it_o be_v his_o justice_n for_o those_o merit_n to_o give_v we_o
christ_n in_o so_o easy_a and_o perfect_a penance_n and_o cleanse_n of_o sin_n as_o that_o first_o sacrament_n of_o generation_n do_v yield_v which_o apply_v christ_n death_n in_o such_o ample_a manner_n to_o the_o receiver_n that_o it_o take_v away_o all_o pain_n due_a for_o sin_n before_o commit_v and_o therefore_o require_v no_o further_a penance_n afterward_o for_o the_o sin_n before_o commit_v all_o be_v wash_v away_o by_o the_o force_n of_o that_o sacrament_n due_o take_v s._n augustine_n call_v the_o remission_n in_o baptism_n magnam_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la a_o great_a pardon_n enchirid._n c._n 64._o the_o apostle_n therefore_o warn_v they_o whatsoever_o that_o if_o they_o fall_v from_o their_o faith_n and_o from_o christ_n grace_n and_o la_o which_o they_o once_o receive_v in_o their_o baptism_n they_o may_v not_o look_v to_o have_v any_o more_o that_o first_o great_a and_o large_a remedy_n apply_v unto_o they_o nor_o no_o man_n else_o that_o sin_v after_o baptism_n 6._o though_o the_o other_o penance_n which_o be_v call_v the_o second_o table_n after_o shipwreck_n which_o be_v a_o more_o painful_a medicine_n for_o sin_n then_o baptism_n require_v much_o fast_n pray_v and_o other_o affliction_n corporal_a be_v open_v not_o only_o to_o other_o sinner_n but_o to_o all_o once_o baptize_v heretic_n or_o oppugner_n of_o the_o truth_n malicious_o and_o of_o purpose_n or_o what_o way_n so_o ever_o during_o this_o life_n see_v s._n cypriah_n ep_v 52._o s._n ambrose_n upon_o this_o place_n s._n augustine_n cont_n ep_v parm._n li._n 2._o c._n 13._o and_o ep_v 50._o s._n damascene_fw-la li._n 4._o c._n 10._o 10._o god_n be_v not_o unjust_a work_n it_o be_v a_o world_n to_o see_v what_o wring_v &_o writhe_v the_o protestant_n make_v to_o shift_v themselves_o from_o the_o evidence_n of_o these_o word_n which_o make_v it_o most_o clear_a to_o all_o not_o blind_v in_o pride_n and_o contention_n that_o good_a work_n be_v moritorious_a and_o the_o very_a cause_n of_o salvation_n so_o far_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v unjust_a if_o he_o render_v not_o heaven_n for_o the_o same_o revera_fw-la grandis_fw-la iniustitia_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v s._n hierom_n si_fw-la tantùm_fw-la peocata_fw-la puniret_fw-la &_o bona_fw-la opera_fw-la non_fw-la susciperet_fw-la that_o be_v in_o deed_n great_a be_v god_n injustice_n â_o if_o he_o will_v only_o punish_v sin_n and_o will_v not_o receive_v good_a work_n li._n 2._o cont_n jovin_n c._n 2._o chap._n vii_o to_o prove_v the_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n incomparable_o to_o excel_v the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n and_o therefore_o that_o levitical_a priesthood_n now_o to_o cease_v and_o that_o la_o also_o with_o it_o he_o scan_v every_o word_n of_o the_o verse_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n our_o lord_n have_v swear_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n verse_n 1_o for_o this_o â³_o melchisedec_n the_o king_n of_o salem_n priest_n of_o the_o god_n most_o high_a 18._o *_o who_o meet_v abraham_n return_v from_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o king_n and_o bless_v he_o â_o verse_n 2_o to_o who_o also_o abraham_n divide_v tithe_n of_o all_o first_o in_o deed_n by_o interpretation_n see_v the_o king_n of_o justice_n &_o then_o also_o king_n of_o salem_n which_o be_v to_o say_v king_n of_o peace_n â_o verse_n 3_o â³_o without_o father_n without_o mother_n without_o genealogy_n have_v neither_o beginning_n of_o day_n nor_o end_n of_o life_n but_o liken_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n continue_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o â³_o behold_v how_o great_a this_o man_n be_v to_o who_o also_o abraham_n the_o patriarch_n give_v â³_o tithe_n of_o the_o principal_a thing_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o certes_o *_o they_o of_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n that_o take_v the_o priesthood_n 4._o have_v commandment_n to_o take_v tithe_n of_o the_o people_n according_a to_o the_o law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o their_o brethren_n albeit_o themselves_o also_o issue_v out_o of_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 6_o but_o he_o who_o generation_n be_v not_o number_v among_o they_o take_v tithe_n of_o abraham_n and_o bless_v he_o that_o have_v the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 7_o but_o without_o all_o contradiction_n that_o which_o be_v less_o â³_o be_v bless_a of_o the_o better_a â_o verse_n 8_o and_o here_o in_o deed_n ever_o man_n that_o die_v receive_v tithe_n but_o there_o he_o have_v witness_v that_o he_o live_v â_o verse_n 9_o and_o that_o it_o may_v so_o be_v say_v by_o abraham_n levi_n also_o which_o receive_v tithe_n be_v tithe_v â_o verse_n 10_o for_o as_o yet_o he_o be_v in_o his_o father_n loin_n when_o melchisedec_n meet_v he_o â_o verse_n 11_o if_o then_o consummation_n be_v by_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n for_o under_o it_o the_o people_n receive_v the_o law_n â³_o what_o necessity_n be_v there_o yet_o a_o other_o priest_n to_o rise_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n and_o not_o to_o be_v call_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o the_o priesthood_n be_v â³_o translate_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o translation_n of_o the_o law_n also_o be_v make_v â_o verse_n 13_o for_o he_o on_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v be_v of_o a_o other_o tribe_n of_o the_o which_o none_o attend_v on_o the_o altar_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o our_o lord_n spring_v of_o juda_n in_o the_o which_o tribe_n moses_n speak_v nothing_o of_o priesthood_n priest_n '_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v much_o more_o evident_a if_o according_a to_o the_o similitude_n of_o melchisedec_n there_o arise_v a_o other_o priest_n â_o verse_n 16_o which_o be_v not_o make_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o carnal_a commandment_n but_o according_a to_o the_o power_n of_o life_n indissoluble_a â_o verse_n 17_o for_o he_o witness_v that_o thou_o be_v â³_o a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n 4._o â_o verse_n 18_o reprobation_n certes_o be_v make_v â³_o of_o the_o former_a commandment_n because_o of_o the_o weakness_n and_o unprofitablenesse_n thereof_o â_o verse_n 19_o for_o the_o law_n bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n of_o a_o better_a hope_n by_o the_o which_o we_o approach_v to_o god_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o without_o a_o oath_n the_o other_o true_o without_o a_o oath_n be_v make_v priest_n 4._o â_o verse_n 21_o but_o this_o â³_o with_o a_o oath_n by_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o our_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o repent_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 22_o by_o so_o much_o be_v jesus_n make_v a_o surety_n of_o a_o better_a testament_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o the_o other_o in_o deed_n be_v make_v priest_n bishop_n â³_o be_v many_o because_o that_o by_o death_n they_o be_v prohibit_v to_o continue_v â_o verse_n 24_o but_o this_o for_o that_o he_o continue_v for_o ever_o have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n â_o verse_n 25_o whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v also_o for_o ever_o go_v go_v '_o by_o himself_o to_o god_n father_n always_o live_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n â_o verse_n 26_o for_o it_o be_v seemly_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n holy_a innocent_a impolluted_a separate_v from_o sinner_n and_o make_v high_a than_o the_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 27_o which_o have_v not_o necessity_n daily_o as_o the_o priest_n first_o *_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n to_o offer_v host_n 6._o then_o for_o the_o people_n for_o â³_o this_o he_o do_v once_o in_o offer_v himself_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 28_o for_o the_o law_n appoint_v priest_n they_o that_o have_v infirmity_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n which_o be_v after_o the_o law_n the_o son_n for_o ever_o perfect_v annotation_n chap._n vii_o 1._o melchisedeâ_n the_o excellency_n of_o this_o person_n be_v so_o great_a that_o some_o of_o the_o antiquity_n take_v he_o to_o be_v a_o angel_n and_o some_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o opinion_n not_o only_o the_o hebrews_n that_o avouch_v he_o to_o be_v sem_fw-mi the_o son_n of_o noë_n but_o also_o the_o chief_a father_n of_o the_o christian_n do_v condemn_v not_o doubt_v but_o he_o be_v a_o mere_a man_n and_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o king_n whosoever_o he_o be_v for_o else_o he_o can_v not_o in_o office_n and_o order_n and_o sacrifice_n have_v be_v so_o perfect_a a_o type_n and_o resemblance_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o in_o this_o chapter_n and_o other_o be_v show_v 3._o without_o father_n point_n not_o that_o he_o be_v without_o father_n and_o mother_n say_v s._n hierom_n ep_v 126_o for_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o without_o father_n according_a to_o his_o divinity_n not_o without_o mother_n in_o
he_o have_v now_o give_v and_o of_o the_o blood_n which_o he_o have_v shed_v in_o illis_fw-la praenuntiabarut_fw-fr occidendus_fw-la in_fw-la hoc_fw-la annuntiatur_fw-la occisus_fw-la in_o they_o he_o be_v forshew_v as_o to_o be_v kill_v in_o these_o he_o be_v show_v as_o kill_v and_o s._n gregory_n naziaââââ_n say_v oral_n in_o morbum_fw-la that_o the_o priest_n in_o this_o sacrifice_n immiscet_fw-la se_fw-la magnis_fw-la chrisi_n passionibus_fw-la s._n ambrose_n li._n 1._o offic._n c._n 48._o offertur_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o imagine_v quasi_fw-la recipiens_fw-la passionem_fw-la alexander_n the_o first_o ep_v ãâã_d orthodox_n nu_fw-la 4._o ãâã_d 1._o conc._n cvius_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la conficitur_fw-la passio_fw-la etiam_fw-la celebratur_fw-la s._n gregory_n ho._n 37_o in_o euang._n so_o often_o as_o we_o offer_v the_o host_n of_o his_o passion_n so_o often_o we_o remowe_v his_o passion_n and_o he_o suffete_v for_o we_o again_o in_o mystery_n and_o isychius_n li._n 26._o â_o in_o levit._fw-la post_fw-la mâd_fw-la by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o onely-begotten_a many_o thing_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o to_o wit_n the_o remission_n or_o pardon_v of_o all_o mankind_n and_o the_o singular_a introduction_n or_o bring_v in_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o say_a father_n and_o other_o altar_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n and_o oblation_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o on_o the_o cross_n hebr._n call_v this_o the_o unblouddy_a sacrifice_n as_o *_o caluin_n himself_o confess_v but_o answer_v they_o in_o the_o pride_n of_o heretical_a spirit_n with_o these_o word_n nihil_fw-la moror_fw-la quòd_fw-la siâ_n loquantur_fw-la uttusti_fw-la scriptores_fw-la that_o be_v i_o pass_v not_o for_o it_o that_o the_o ancient_a writer_n do_v so_o speak_v call_v the_o distinction_n of_o bloody_a and_o unblouddy_a sacrifice_n father_n scholastical_a and_o frivolous_a and_o diabolicum_fw-la commentââm_fw-la a_o devilish_a devise_n with_o such_o ignorant_a and_o blasphemous_a man_n we_o have_v to_o do_v that_o think_v they_o understand_v the_o scripture_n better_o than_o all_o the_o father_n chap._n x._o because_o in_o the_o yearly_a feast_n of_o expiation_n be_v only_o a_o commoration_n of_o sin_n therefore_o in_o place_n of_o all_o those_o old_a sacrifice_n the_o psalm_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o oblation_n of_o christ_n body_n 10_o which_o he_o offer_v blouddy_o but_o once_o the_o levitical_a priest_n offer_v so_o every_o day_n because_o that_o once_o be_v sufficient_a for_o ever_o 15_o in_o that_o it_o purchase_v as_o the_o prophet_n also_o witness_v remission_n of_o sin_n 19_o after_o all_o this_o he_o prosecute_v and_o exhort_v they_o unto_o persevirance_n partly_o with_o the_o open_n of_o heaven_n by_o our_o highpriest_n 26_o partly_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o damnation_n if_o they_o fall_v again_o 32_o bid_v they_o remember_v how_o much_o they_o have_v suffer_v already_o and_o not_o lose_v their_o reward_n verse_n 1_o for_o the_o la_o have_v â³_o a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v 14._o not_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n every_o year_n with_o the_o self_n same_o host_n which_o they_o offer_v incessant_o can_v never_o make_v the_o comer_n thereto_o perfect_a â_o verse_n 2_o otherwise_o â³_o they_o shall_v have_v cease_v to_o be_v offer_v because_o the_o worshipper_n once_o cleanse_v shall_v have_v no_o conscience_n of_o sin_n any_o long_o â_o verse_n 3_o but_o in_o they_o there_o be_v make_v a_o commemotation_n of_o sin_n every_o year_n â_o verse_n 4_o for_o it_o be_v â³_o impossible_a that_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o ox_n and_o goat_n sin_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o 7._o â_o verse_n 5_o therefore_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v â³_o host_n and_o oblation_n thou_o will_v not_o â³_o but_o a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o â_o verse_n 6_o holocaustes_n and_o 2d_o for_o sin_n do_v not_o please_v thou_o â_o verse_n 7_o then_o say_v i_o behold_v i_o come_v in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o book_n it_o be_v write_v of_o i_o that_o i_o may_v do_v thy_o will_v o_o god_n â_o verse_n 8_o say_v before_o because_o host_n and_o oblation_n &_o holocauste_n &_o for_o sin_n thou_o will_v not_o â³_o neither_o do_v they_o please_v thou_o which_o be_v offer_v according_a to_o the_o la_o â_o verse_n 9_o then_o say_v i_o behold_v i_o come_v that_o i_o may_v do_v thy_o will_v o_o god_n he_o take_v away_o the_o first_o that_o he_o may_v establish_v that_o that_o follow_v â_o verse_n 10_o in_o the_o which_o will_v we_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o every_o priest_n in_o deed_n be_v ready_a daily_a minister_a and_o â³_o often_o offer_v the_o same_o host_n 109._o which_o can_v never_o take_v away_o sin_n â_o verse_n 12_o but_o this_o man_n offer_v one_o host_n for_o sin_n 25._o for_o ever_o *_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 13_o hence_o forth_o expect_v until_o his_o enemy_n be_v put_v the_o footstool_n of_o his_o foot_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o by_o one_o oblation_n have_v he_o consummate_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v â_o verse_n 15_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o do_v testify_v to_o us._n for_o after_o that_o he_o say_v 34._o â_o verse_n 16_o and_o this_o be_v the_o testament_n which_o i_o will_v make_v to_o they_o after_o those_o day_n 8._o say_v our_o lord_n give_v law_n heaven_n in_o their_o heart_n &_o in_o their_o mind_n will_v i_o superscribe_v they_o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o their_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n i_o will_v now_o remember_v no_o more_o â_o verse_n 18_o but_o where_o there_o be_v remission_n of_o these_o â³_o now_o there_o be_v not_o a_o oblation_n for_o sin_n â_o verse_n 19_o have_v therefore_o brethren_n confidence_n in_o the_o enter_v of_o he_o holies_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 20_o which_o he_o have_v dedicate_v to_o we_o a_o new_a and_o live_a way_n by_o the_o vele_n that_o be_v his_o flesh_n ãâã_d heaven_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o a_o high_a priest_n over_o the_o house_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 22_o let_v we_o approach_v with_o a_o true_a hart_n in_o fullness_n of_o faith_n have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o evil_a consciencel_n and_o our_o body_n wash_v with_o clean_a water_n â_o verse_n 23_o let_v we_o hold_v the_o confession_n of_o our_o hope_n undecline_v for_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v â_o verse_n 24_o and_o let_v we_o consider_v one_o a_o other_o unto_o the_o provocation_n of_o charity_n and_o of_o good_a work_n â_o verse_n 25_o not_o forsake_v our_o assembly_n as_o some_o be_v accustom_v but_o comfort_v and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o you_o see_v the_o day_n approach_v 4_o â_o verse_n 26_o *_o for_o â³_o if_o we_o sin_v willing_o after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n receive_v now_o there_o be_v not_o leave_v a_o host_n for_o sin_n â_o verse_n 27_o but_o a_o certain_a terrible_a expectation_n of_o judgement_n and_o rage_n of_o fire_n which_o shall_v consume_v the_o adversary_n â_o verse_n 28_o a_o man_n make_v the_o la_o of_o moses_n frustrate_a 17._o without_o any_o mercy_n *_o die_v under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n â_o verse_n 29_o death_n how_o much_o more_o think_v you_o do_v he_o deserve_v worse_a punishement_n which_o have_v tread_v the_o son_n of_o god_n under_o foot_n and_o esteem_v â³_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o testament_n pollute_v wherein_o he_o be_v sanctify_v and_o have_v do_v contumely_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n â_o verse_n 30_o for_o we_o know_v he_o that_o say_v 19_o revenge_n to_o i_o i_o will_v repay_v and_o again_o that_o our_o lord_n will_v judge_v his_o people_n â_o verse_n 31_o â³_o it_o be_v horrible_a to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n 14._o â_o verse_n 32_o but_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o old_a day_n martyr_n wherein_o be_v illuminate_v you_o sustain_v a_o great_a fight_n of_o passion_n â_o verse_n 33_o and_o on_o the_o one_o part_n certes_o by_o reproach_n and_o tribulation_n make_v a_o spectacle_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n make_v companion_n of_o they_o that_o converse_v in_o such_o sort_n â_o verse_n 34_o for_o â³_o you_o both_o have_v compassion_n on_o they_o that_o be_v in_o bond_n and_o the_o spoil_n of_o your_o own_o good_n you_o take_v â³_o with_o joy_n know_v that_o you_o have_v a_o better_a and_o a_o permanent_a substance_n â_o verse_n 35_o do_v not_o therefore_o lose_v your_o reward_n confidence_n which_o have_v a_o great_a remuneration_n â_o verse_n 36_o for_o patience_n be_v necessary_a for_o you_o 12._o that_o do_v the_o will_v of_o god_n you_o may_v receive_v the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 37_o for_o *_o yet_o a_o little_a and_o a_o very_a little_a
say_v yet_o once_o and_o i_o will_v move_v not_o only_o the_o earth_n but_o heaven_n also_o â_o verse_n 27_o and_o in_o that_o he_o say_v yet_o once_o he_o declare_v the_o translation_n of_o movable_a thing_n as_o be_v make_v that_o those_o thing_n may_v remain_v which_o be_v unmoveable_a â_o verse_n 28_o therefore_o receive_v a_o unmoveable_a kingdom_n we_o have_v grace_n by_o the_o which_o ãâã_d let_v we_o serve_v please_v god_n with_o fear_n &_o reverence_n â_o verse_n 29_o for_o *_o our_o god_n be_v a_o consume_a fire_n 24._o annotation_n chap._n xii_o 6._o he_o scourge_v purgatory_n by_o this_o we_o prove_v that_o god_n often_o punish_v the_o sin_n even_o of_o his_o love_a child_n though_o not_o with_o eternal_a damnation_n yet_o with_o temporal_a chastisement_n and_o correction_n &_o that_o he_o do_v not_o always_o together_o with_o the_o remission_n of_o deadly_a sin_n &_o eternal_a punishment_n exempt_v the_o offender_n receive_v to_o his_o grace_n from_o all_o fatherly_a correction_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o the_o next_o neither_o have_v the_o heretic_n of_o this_o time_n any_o reason_n or_o scripture_n in_o the_o world_n why_o they_o shall_v take_v away_o god_n chastisement_n of_o his_o child_n in_o the_o next_o life_n more_o than_o in_o this_o world_n 17._o he_o find_v not_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v that_o esau_n can_v not_o find_v remission_n of_o his_o sin_n at_o god_n hand_n but_o that_o have_v once_o sell_v and_o yield_v up_o the_o right_n of_o his_o first-birth_n to_o his_o young_a brother_n it_o be_v to_o late_o to_o be_v sorry_a for_o his_o unaduised_a bargain_n chap._n xiii_o he_o command_v unto_o they_o mutual_a love_n 2_o hospitality_n 3_o compassion_n 4_o chastity_n 5_o contentation_n 7_o imitation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o catholic_a prelate_n and_o martyr_n not_o harken_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o heretic_n nor_o fear_v the_o cast_n out_o of_o the_o jew_n synagogus_fw-la 17_o and_o obedience_n to_o their_o present_a pastor_n 18_o and_o so_o with_o request_v their_o prayer_n and_o pray_v for_o they_o he_o end_v the_o epistle_n verse_n 1_o let_v ãâã_d the_o charity_n of_o the_o fraternity_n abide_v in_o you_o 10._o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o â_o hospitality_n do_v not_o forget_v 4._o for_o by_o this_o 3._o certain_a being_n not_o ware_v *_o have_v receive_a angel_n to_o harbour_v â_o verse_n 3_o remember_v they_o in_o bond_n as_o if_o you_o be_v bind_v with_o they_o and_o they_o that_o labour_n as_o yourselves_o also_o remain_v in_o body_n â_o verse_n 4_o â_o marriage_n honourable_a in_o all_o and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a for_o fornicatour_n &_o advouterer_n god_n will_v judge_v â_o verse_n 5_o let_v your_o manner_n be_v without_o avarice_n content_v with_o thing_n present_a 31._o for_o he_o say_v i_o will_v not_o leave_v thou_o neither_o will_v i_o forsake_v thou_o 1._o â_o verse_n 6_o so_o that_o we_o do_v confident_o say_v our_o lord_n be_v my_o helper_n 6._o i_o will_v not_o fear_v what_o man_n shall_v do_v to_o i_o â_o verse_n 7_o â_o remember_v your_o prelate_n bishop_n which_o have_v speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o you_o the_o end_n of_o who_o conversation_n behold_v imitate_v their_o faith_n â_o verse_n 8_o jesus_n christ_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n the_o same_o also_o for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 9_o with_o doctrine_n various_a &_o strange_a doctrine_n be_v not_o lead_v away_o for_o it_o be_v best_o that_o the_o hart_n be_v establish_v with_o grace_n â_o not_o with_o meat_n which_o have_v not_o profit_v those_o that_o walk_v in_o they_o â_o verse_n 10_o â_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o eat_v which_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n 27._o â_o verse_n 11_o for_o *_o the_o body_n of_o those_o beast_n who_o blood_n for_o sin_n be_v carry_v into_o the_o holies_n by_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v burn_v without_o the_o camp_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o the_o which_o thing_n jesus_n also_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v the_o people_n by_o his_o own_o blood_n suffer_v without_o the_o gate_n â_o verse_n 13_o let_v we_o go_v forth_o therefore_o to_o he_o without_o the_o camp_n carry_v his_o reproach_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o we_o have_v not_o here_o a_o permanent_a city_n but_o we_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v â_o verse_n 15_o by_o he_o therefore_o let_v we_o offer_v â_o the_o host_n of_o praise_n always_o to_o god_n 3._o that_o be_v to_o say_v *_o the_o fruit_n of_o lip_n confess_v to_o his_o name_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o beneficence_n and_o communication_n do_v not_o forget_v for_o with_o such_o host_n â_o god_n be_v promerited_a â_o verse_n 17_o â_o obey_v your_o prelate_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o for_o they_o watch_n as_o be_v to_o render_v account_n for_o your_o soul_n â¢_o that_o they_o may_v do_v this_o with_o joy_n and_o not_o mourn_v for_o this_o be_v not_o expedient_a for_o you_o â_o verse_n 18_o pray_v for_o we_o for_o we_o have_v confidence_n that_o we_o have_v a_o good_a conscience_n willing_a to_o converse_v well_o in_o all_o â_o verse_n 19_o and_o i_o beseech_v you_o the_o more_o to_o do_v this_o that_o i_o may_v the_o more_o speedy_o be_v restore_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 20_o and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n which_o bring_v out_o from_o the_o dead_a the_o great_a pastor_n of_o the_o sheep_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o eternal_a testament_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 21_o goodness_n vos_fw-la fit_n you_o in_o all_o goodness_n that_o you_o may_v do_v his_o will_v do_v in_o you_o that_o which_o may_v please_v before_o he_o by_o jesus_n christ_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o i_o desire_v you_o brethren_n that_o you_o suffer_v the_o word_n of_o consolation_n for_o in_o very_o few_o word_n have_v i_o write_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 23_o know_v you_o our_o brother_n timothee_n to_o be_v dismiss_v with_o who_o if_o he_o come_v the_o soon_o i_o will_v see_v you_o â_o verse_n 24_o salute_v all_o your_o prelate_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n the_o brethren_n of_o italy_n salute_v you_o â_o verse_n 25_o grace_n be_v with_o you_o al._n amen_o annotation_n chap._n xiii_o 2._o hospitality_n hospitality_n hospitality_n that_o be_v receive_v and_o harbour_v of_o poor_a pilgrim_n persecute_v and_o desolate_a person_n harbour_v be_v so_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o so_o honourable_a that_o oftentimes_o it_o have_v be_v man_n good_a hap_n to_o harbour_v angle_n in_o steed_n of_o poor_a folk_n unaware_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v ever_o a_o great_a benediction_n to_o they_o and_o their_o family_n as_o we_o see_v by_o abraham_n and_o lot_n gen._n 18._o &_o 19_o and_o the_o like_a fall_v also_o to_o s._n gregory_n as_o io._n diaconus_fw-la write_v to_o who_o ordinary_a table_n of_o poor_a man_n not_o only_o angel_n but_o christ_n also_o come_v in_o pilgrim_n weed_n in_o vit_fw-mi li._n 1._o c._n 10._o &_o li._n 2._o c._n 22_o 23._o whereof_o if_o we_o have_v not_o example_n and_o warrant_n by_o s._n paul_n word_n in_o this_o place_n and_o many_o other_o express_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n these_o scornful_a miscreant_n of_o this_o time_n make_v so_o little_a account_n both_o of_o good_a work_n and_o such_o miraculous_a entrance_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o angel_n into_o holy_a man_n harbour_n will_v make_v this_o also_o seem_v fabulous_a as_o they_o do_v other_o like_a thing_n 4._o marriage_n honourable_a not_o the_o apostle_n say_v a_o holy_a doctor_n say_v marriage_n honourable_a in_o all_o and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a and_o therefore_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o that_o they_o be_v not_o marry_v think_v not_o the_o good_a of_o marriage_n to_o be_v a_o fault_n but_o yet_o they_o doubt_v not_o perpetual_a continency_n to_o be_v better_o they_o good_a marriage_n special_o in_o this_o time_n when_o it_o be_v say_v of_o continency_n he_o that_o can_v take_v let_v he_o take_v de_fw-fr fid_fw-we ad_fw-la pet._n 6._o 3._o apud_fw-la aug._n in_o fine_a mark_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n concern_v matrimony_n that_o it_o be_v honourable_a and_o so_o honourable_a that_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a sacrament_n but_o yet_o 38._o inferior_a to_o virginity_n and_o perpetual_a continency_n honourable_a in_o all_o that_o be_v all_o such_o as_o may_v lawful_o marry_v and_o be_v lawful_o marry_v not_o in_o brother_n and_o sister_n not_o in_o person_n that_o have_v vow_v the_o contrary_a to_o who_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v damnable_a 1._o tim._n 5._o v._n 11._o and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v read_v thus_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a but_o to_o see_v how_o the_o protestant_n in_o all_o their_o translation_n
law_n but_o if_o thou_o judge_v the_o law_n thou_o be_v not_o a_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n but_o a_o judge_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o there_o be_v one_o lawmaker_n and_o judge_v that_o can_v destroy_v and_o deliver_v 4._o â_o verse_n 13_o but_o thou_o *_o what_o be_v thou_o that_o iudge_v thy_o neighbour_n behold_v now_o you_o that_o say_v to_o day_n or_o to_o morrow_v we_o will_v go_v into_o that_o city_n and_o there_o certes_o will_v spend_v a_o year_n and_o will_v traffic_v and_o make_v our_o gain_n â_o verse_n 14_o who_o be_v ignorant_a what_o shall_v be_v on_o the_o morrow_n for_o what_o be_v your_o life_n it_o be_v a_o vapour_n appear_v for_o a_o little_a while_n and_o afterward_o it_o shall_v vanish_v away_o â_o verse_n 15_o for_o that_o you_o shall_v say_v not_o if_o our_o lord_n will_v and_o if_o we_o shall_v live_v we_o will_v do_v this_o or_o that_o â_o verse_n 16_o but_o now_o you_o rejoice_v in_o your_o arrogancy_n all_o such_o rejoice_a be_v wicked_a â_o verse_n 17_o to_o one_o therefore_o know_v to_o do_v good_a and_o not_o do_v it_o to_o he_o it_o be_v sin_n annotation_n chap._n four_o 8._o purify_v your_o heart_n man_n we_o see_v here_o make_v himself_o clean_o and_o purge_v his_o own_o hart_n thereunto_o which_o derogate_v nothing_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o protestant_n think_v we_o derogate_v from_o christ_n passion_n when_o we_o attribute_v such_o effect_n to_o our_o own_o work_n or_o to_o other_o secundarie_n help_v and_o cause_n chap._n v._n by_o the_o damnation_n to_o come_v upon_o the_o unmerciful_a scotfree_a he_o exhort_v the_o persecute_v to_o patience_n and_o by_o their_o own_o reward_n and_o by_o example_n 12_o not_o to_o swear_v at_o all_o ãâã_d ãâã_d talk_n talk_v â_o in_o affliction_n to_o pray_v in_o prosperity_n to_o sing_v in_o sickness_n to_o call_v for_o the_o priest_n and_o that_o they_o pray_v over_o they_o and_o anoile_v they_o with_o oil_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o sick_a person_n confess_v their_o sin_n 19_o final_o how_o meritorious_a it_o be_v to_o convert_v the_o err_a unto_o the_o catholic_a faith_n or_o the_o sinner_n to_o amendment_n of_o life_n verse_n 1_o go_v to_o now_o you_o scotfree_a man_n weep_v man_n howl_a in_o your_o misery_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 2_o your_o riches_n be_v corrupt_a and_o your_o garment_n be_v eat_v of_o moth_n â_o verse_n 3_o your_o gold_n and_o silver_n be_v rust_v and_o their_o just_a shall_v be_v for_o a_o testimony_n to_o you_o and_o shall_v eat_v your_o flesh_n as_o fire_n you_o have_v store_v to_o yourselves_o wrath_n in_o the_o last_o day_n â_o verse_n 4_o behold_v â³_o the_o hire_v of_o the_o workman_n that_o have_v reap_v your_o field_n which_o be_v defraud_v of_o you_o crieth_z and_o their_o cry_n have_v enter_v into_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o sabbath_n â_o verse_n 5_o you_o have_v make_v merry_a upon_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o riotousness_n you_o have_v nourish_v your_o heart_n in_o the_o day_n of_o slaughter_n â_o verse_n 6_o you_o have_v condemn_v present_v and_o slay_v the_o just_a one_o and_o he_o resist_v you_o not_o â_o verse_n 7_o be_v patient_a therefore_o brethren_n until_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n behold_v the_o husband_n man_n expect_v the_o precious_a fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n patient_o bear_v till_o he_o receive_v rain_n the_o timely_a and_o the_o lateward_n â_o verse_n 8_o be_v you_o also_o patient_a and_o confirm_v your_o heart_n because_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n hand_n will_v approach_v '_o â_o verse_n 9_o grudge_v not_o brethren_n one_o against_o a_o other_o that_o you_o be_v not_o judge_v behold_v the_o judge_n stand_v before_o the_o gate_n â_o verse_n 10_o take_v a_o example_n brethren_n of_o labour_n and_o patience_n the_o prophet_n which_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 11_o behold_v we_o account_v they_o bless_v that_o have_v suffer_v the_o sufferance_n of_o job_n you_o have_v hear_v and_o the_o end_n of_o our_o lord_n you_o have_v see_v because_o our_o lord_n be_v merciful_a and_o pitieful_a 34_o â_o verse_n 12_o but_o before_o all_o thing_n my_o brethren_n *_o â³_o swear_v not_o neither_o by_o heaven_n nor_o by_o earth_n nor_o other_o oath_n whatsoever_o but_o let_v your_o talk_n be_v yea_o yea_o no_o no_o that_o you_o fall_v not_o under_o judgement_n sick_a â_o verse_n 13_o be_v any_o of_o you_o in_o heaviness_n let_v he_o pray_v be_v he_o of_o a_o cheerful_a hart_n let_v he_o sing_v â_o verse_n 14_o be_v any_o man_n sick_a among_o you_o â³_o let_v he_o bring_v in_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v over_o he_o 13_o *_o â³_o anoil_a he_o with_o oil_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o â³_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n â³_o shall_v save_v the_o sick_a and_o our_o lord_n â³_o shall_v lift_v he_o up_o and_o if_o he_o be_v in_o sin_n â³_o they_o shall_v be_v remit_v he_o â_o verse_n 16_o day_n â³_o confess_v therefore_o your_o sin_n one_o to_o a_o other_o &_o pray_v one_o for_o a_o other_o that_o you_o may_v be_v save_v â¢_o for_o the_o continual_a prayer_n of_o a_o just_a man_n avail_v much_o confession_n â_o verse_n 17_o *_o elias_n be_v a_o man_n like_o unto_o we_o passable_a 17._o and_o with_o prayer_n â³_o he_o pray_v that_o it_o may_v not_o rain_v upon_o the_o earth_n 48._o and_o it_o rain_v not_o for_o three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n 25_o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o *_o he_o pray_v again_o 41._o and_o the_o heaven_n give_v rain_v and_o the_o earth_n yield_v her_o fruit_n â_o verse_n 19_o my_o brethren_n if_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n &_o a_o man_n convert_v he_o â_o verse_n 20_o he_o must_v know_v that_o he_o which_o make_v a_o sinner_n to_o be_v convert_v from_o the_o error_n of_o his_o way_n â³_o shall_v save_v his_o soul_n from_o death_n and_o grace_n cover_v a_o multitude_n of_o sin_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n v._n 4._o the_o hire_n heaven_n to_o withhold_v from_o the_o poor_a or_o labourer_n the_o hire_n or_o wage_n that_o be_v due_a or_o promise_v to_o he_o for_o his_o service_n or_o work_v do_v be_v a_o great_a iniquity_n and_o one_o of_o those_o five_o sin_n which_o in_o holy_a write_v be_v say_v to_o call_v for_o vengeance_n at_o god_n hand_n as_o we_o see_v here_o they_o be_v call_v in_o the_o catechism_n sin_n cry_v to_o heaven_n the_o other_o four_o be_v murder_n gen._n 18_o v._n 20._o usury_n exod._n 22._o v._o 27._o the_o sin_n against_o nature_n gen._n 18._o v._n 20._o the_o oppression_n and_o vexation_n of_o widow_n pupille_v stranger_n and_o such_o like_a ib._n &_o exod._n 3._o v._o 9_o 12._o swear_v not_o not_o he_o forbid_v not_o all_o oath_n as_o the_o anabaptist_n false_o say_v for_o in_o justice_n and_o judgement_n we_o may_v be_v by_o our_o lawful_a magistrate_n put_v to_o swear_v and_o may_v lawful_o take_v a_o oath_n as_o also_o for_o the_o advantage_v of_o any_o necessary_a truth_n when_o time_n and_o place_n require_v but_o the_o custom_n of_o swear_v and_o all_o vain_a light_n and_o unnecessary_a oath_n in_o our_o daily_a speech_n do_v displease_v god_n high_o and_o be_v here_o forbid_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o also_o by_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 5._o 14._o let_v he_o bring_v in_o the_o priest_n priesthood_n the_o protestant_n for_o their_o special_a hatred_n of_o the_o holy_a order_n of_o priesthood_n as_o else_o where_o often_o so_o here_o they_o corrupt_v the_o text_n evident_o translate_n presbyteros_fw-la elder_n as_o though_o the_o apostle_n have_v mean_v man_n of_o age_n and_o not_o such_o as_o be_v by_o holy_a office_n priest_n s._n chrysostom_n who_o know_v the_o sense_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a use_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n judgement_n better_a than_o any_o protestant_a alive_a take_v it_o plain_o for_o sacerdotes_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la that_o be_v priests_z li._n 3_o de_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la prope_fw-la initium_fw-la and_o if_o they_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o word_n of_o office_n with_o they_o also_o though_o they_o call_v they_o elder_n and_o not_o priest_n then_o we_o demand_v whether_o the_o apostle_n mean_v here_o man_n of_o that_o function_n which_o they_o in_o their_o new_a church_n call_v elder_n if_o they_o say_v no_o as_o they_o must_v needs_o for_o elder_n with_o their_o be_v not_o depute_v special_o to_o public_a pray_v or_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n here_o require_v to_o be_v send_v for_o than_o they_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o their_o elder_n answer_n not_o to_o the_o function_n of_o those_o which_o in_o
conversation_n and_o godliness_n â_o verse_n 12_o expect_v and_o haste_v unto_o the_o come_n of_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o which_o the_o heaven_n burn_v shall_v be_v resolve_v 1._o and_o the_o element_n shall_v melt_v with_o the_o heat_n of_o fire_n â_o verse_n 13_o but_o we_o expect_v *_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n in_o which_o justice_n inhabit_v â_o verse_n 14_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n my_o dear_a expect_v these_o thing_n labour_v earnest_o to_o be_v find_v immaculate_a and_o unspotted_a to_o he_o in_o peace_n 4._o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o *_o the_n longanimitie_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v you_o account_v salvation_n as_o also_o our_o most_o dear_a brother_n paul_n according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v he_o have_v write_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 16_o as_o also_o in_o all_o epistle_n speak_v in_o they_o of_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o which_o be_v â_o certain_a thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o the_o unlearned_a and_o unstable_a deprave_v as_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n â_o verse_n 17_o you_o therefore_o brethren_n foreknow_v take_v heed_n lest_o lead_v aside_o by_o the_o error_n of_o the_o unwise_a you_o fall_v away_o from_o your_o own_o steadfastness_n â_o verse_n 18_o but_o grow_v in_o grace_n and_o in_o knowledge_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n to_o he_o be_v glory_n both_o now_o and_o unto_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n amen_n annotation_n chap._n iii_o 16._o certain_a thing_n hard_o scripture_n this_o be_v a_o plain_a text_n to_o convince_v the_o protestant_n who_o as_o all_o heretic_n light_o do_v and_o do_v from_o the_o beginning_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a to_o understand_v and_o therefore_o may_v be_v not_o only_o read_v safe_o but_o also_o expound_v bold_o of_o all_o the_o people_n as_o well_o unlearned_a as_o learned_a and_o consequent_o every_o one_o by_o himself_o and_o his_o private_a spirit_n without_o respect_n of_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o learned_a father_n or_o expectation_n of_o the_o church_n their_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n judgement_n may_v determine_v and_o make_v choice_n of_o such_o sense_n as_o himself_o like_v or_o think_v agreeable_a for_o this_o be_v partly_o their_o say_n partly_o the_o necessary_a sequel_n of_o their_o foolish_a opinion_n which_o admit_v nothing_o but_o the_o bare_a scripture_n and_o luther_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o plain_a than_o all_o the_o father_n commentary_n and_o so_o all_o to_o be_v superfluous_a but_o the_o bible_n praâfat_n assert_v art_n damnat_fw-la against_o all_o which_o devilish_a &_o seditious_a arrogancy_n tend_v to_o make_v the_o people_n esteem_v themselves_o learned_a or_o sufficient_a without_o their_o pastor_n and_o spiritual_a ruler_n help_v to_o guide_v themselves_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n &_o doubt_n in_o religion_n faith_n the_o holy_a apostle_n here_o tell_v and_o forewarn_v the_o faithful_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o difficulty_n &_o special_o s._n paul_n epistle_n of_o all_o other_o part_n of_o holy_a write_v and_o that_o ignorant_a man_n âad_v unstable_a or_o fantastical_a fellow_n puff_v to_o &_o fro_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o doctrine_n and_o heresy_n abuse_n pervert_v and_o misconstrue_v they_o to_o their_o own_o damnation_n and_o 14_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o the_o special_a difficulty_n in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n which_o ignorant_a and_o evil_a man_n do_v so_o pervert_v and_o which_o s._n peter_n mean_v be_v his_o hard_a speech_n and_o much_o commendation_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o he_o say_v do_v justify_v which_o the_o ignorant_a even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o much_o more_o now_o have_v and_o do_v so_o misconstrue_v as_o though_o he_o have_v mean_v that_o only_a faith_n without_o good_a work_n can_v justify_v or_o save_v a_o man_n against_o which_o wicked_a collection_n and_o abuse_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n the_o say_a father_n faith_n all_o these_o canonical_a or_o catholic_a epistle_n be_v write_v but_o the_o haeretike_n here_o to_o shift_v of_o the_o matter_n and_o to_o creep_v out_o after_o their_o fashion_n answer_n thing_n that_o s._n peter_n say_v not_o s._n paul_n epistle_n be_v hard_a but_o that_o many_o thing_n in_o they_o be_v hard_a which_o may_v be_v to_o the_o catholic_n a_o example_n of_o their_o sophistical_a evasion_n from_o the_o evidence_n of_o god_n word_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o say_v such_o a_o author_n or_o writer_n be_v hard_a and_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o that_o writer_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v for_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o the_o argument_n and_o matter_n be_v high_a and_o past_a vulgar_a capacity_n as_o that_o of_o praedestination_n reprobation_n vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o justify_v faith_n or_o whether_o his_o manner_n of_o stile_n and_o writing_n be_v obscure_a all_o prove_v that_o his_o epistle_n be_v hard_a and_o other_o scripture_n also_o because_o s._n peter_n here_o affirm_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o difficulty_n in_o they_o epistle_n whether_o in_o the_o style_n or_o in_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o matter_n the_o ignorant_a and_o unstable_a such_o as_o heretic_n be_v do_v pervert_v his_o write_n as_o also_o other_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o damnation_n whereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a dangerous_a thing_n for_o such_o as_o be_v ignorant_a or_o for_o wild_a wit_v fellow_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n for_o such_o condition_a man_n be_v they_o that_o become_v heretic_n and_o through_o ignorance_n pride_n and_o private_a fantasy_n meet_v with_o hard_a place_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n or_o other_o scripture_n breed_v heresy_n and_o that_o not_o only_o the_o thing_n treat_v of_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o that_o the_o very_a manner_n of_o writing_n and_o endite_v thereof_o be_v high_a and_o hard_o and_o purposely_o by_o god_n providence_n appoint_v to_o be_v write_v in_o such_o sort_n see_v s._n augustine_n li._n 2_o the_o doct_n christ_n c._n 6._o and_o ep_v 119._o s._n ambrose_n ep_v 44_o in_o principio_fw-la s._n hierom_n to_o paulinus_n ep_v 103_o c._n 5._o 6._o 7._o who_o also_o ep_n 65._o c._n 1._o say_v hard_o that_o in_o his_o old_a age_n when_o he_o shall_v rather_o have_v teach_v then_o be_v teach_v he_o go_v as_o far_o as_o alexandria_n only_o to_o hear_v didymus_n and_o to_o have_v his_o help_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o confess_v with_o great_a thanks_n to_o the_o say_v didymus_n that_o he_o learn_v of_o he_o that_o which_o before_o he_o know_v not_o 118._o david_n say_v give_v i_o understanding_n and_o i_o will_v search_v thy_o la_o the_o eunuch_n in_o the_o act_n say_v 8._o how_o can_v i_o understand_v with_o out_o a_o interpreter_n the_o apostle_n till_o christ_n open_v their_o sense_n to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n 45._o can_v not_o understand_v they_o the_o holy_a doctor_n by_o continual_a study_n watch_v fast_a and_o pray_v have_v much_o a_o do_v to_o understand_v they_o that_o great_a clerk_n s._n augustine_n confess_v in_o the_o foresay_a epistle_n 119._o c._n 21._o that_o there_o be_v many_o more_o thing_n that_o he_o understand_v not_o then_o that_o he_o understand_v the_o heretic_n say_v the_o father_n do_v common_o err_v and_o how_o can_v such_o great_a wise_a learned_a man_n be_v deceive_v in_o read_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n if_o they_o be_v not_o hard_a and_o if_o they_o be_v hard_o to_o they_o how_o be_v they_o easy_a to_o these_o new_a master_n the_o haeretike_n final_o why_o do_v they_o write_v so_o many_o new_a gloss_n scholte_n commentary_n as_o a_o cart_n can_v carry_v why_o do_v luther_n zuinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o their_o companion_n agree_v no_o better_o upon_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o they_o be_v not_o hard_a whereat_o stumble_v all_o the_o old_a heretic_n &_o the_o new_a arîus_a macedonius_n vigilantius_n nestorius_n eutyches_n berengarius_fw-la wicleffe_n protestant_n puritan_n anabaptist_n and_o the_o rest_n but_o at_o the_o hardness_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v hard_o then_o to_o understand_v and_o heretic_n pervert_v they_o to_o their_o own_o damnation_n the_o argument_n of_o s._n john_n three_o epistle_n of_o s._n john_n be_v say_v in_o the_o argument_n before_o his_o gospel_n now_o here_o follow_v his_o three_o epistle_n one_o to_o all_o catholic_n though_o 39_o some_o ancient_n do_v call_v it_o ad_fw-la parthos_n the_o other_o two_o be_v very_o short_a unto_o a_o certain_a lady_n &_o to_o one_o gaius_n the_o effect_n of_o all_o be_v to_o witness_v unto_o they_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o to_o exhort_v they_o to_o continue_v still_o in_o it_o also_o to_o love_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o neither_o to_o become_v heretic_n
and_o be_v no_o doubt_n much_o more_o now_o in_o all_o haeretike_n all_o be_v precursor_n of_o that_o great_a antichrist_n which_o shall_v come_v towards_o the_o late_a end_n 3._o that_o dissolve_v christ_n to_o dissolve_v loose_a or_o separate_v jesus_n a_o sunder_o be_v proper_a to_o all_o those_o old_a heretic_n that_o teach_v either_o against_o his_o divinity_n or_o humanity_n or_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o person_n be_v of_o two_o nature_n as_o cerinthus_n ebion_n nestorius_n eutyches_n manes_n or_o manichaeus_n cerdon_n apelles_n apollinaris_n and_o the_o like_a and_o this_o be_v one_o place_n by_o which_o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o common_a greek_a copy_n be_v not_o ever_o authentical_a heretic_n and_o that_o our_o old_a approve_a translation_n may_v not_o always_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o greek_a that_o now_o be_v which_o the_o protestant_n only_o follow_v but_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v presuppose_v when_o our_o old_a latin_a text_n differ_v plain_o from_o the_o greek_a that_o in_o old_a time_n either_o all_o or_o the_o more_o approve_a greek_n read_v be_v otherwise_o and_o that_o often_o the_o say_a greeke_n be_v corrupt_v then_o or_o since_o by_o heretic_n or_o otherwise_o for_o of_o the_o greek_n s._n irenaeus_n li._n 3._o c._n 18_o among_o the_o latin_a father_n s._n augustine_n tract_n 6._o in_o fine_a s._n leo_n ep_n 10._o c._n 5_o and_o venerable_a bede_n do_v read_v as_o we_o do_v and_o this_o read_n make_v more_o against_o the_o say_a heretic_n then_o that_o which_o the_o common_a greek_a now_o have_v to_o wit_n every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v not_o christ_n to_o have_v come_v in_o flesh_n be_v not_o of_o god_n which_o be_v also_o in_o effect_n say_v before_o vers_fw-la 2._o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v corrupt_v and_o alter_v by_o heretic_n see_v the_o word_n of_o socrates_n also_o a_o greek_a writer_n very_o agreeable_a to_o this_o purpose_n 3â_n nestorius_n say_v he_o be_v eloquent_a by_o nature_n which_o be_v often_o in_o heretic_n account_v himself_o therefore_o learned_a &_o disdain_v to_o study_v the_o old_a interpreter_n count_v himself_o better_a then_o they_o all_o be_v ignorant_a that_o in_o s._n johns_n catholic_a epistle_n old_a greeke_n copy_n have_v every_o one_o that_o dissolve_v jesus_n be_v not_o of_o god._n so_o say_v he_o add_v moreover_o that_o such_o as_o will_v separate_v the_o divinity_n from_o the_o dispensation_n of_o christ_n humanity_n take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a copy_n this_o sense_n for_o which_o the_o old_a expositor_n note_v that_o these_o which_o will_v loose_v jesus_n have_v corrupt_v this_o epistle_n see_v also_o the_o tripartite_a li._n 12._o c._n 4._o 6._o in_o this_o we_o know_v teacher_n this_o be_v the_o most_o sure_a &_o general_a mark_n to_o know_v the_o true_a spirit_n and_o prophet_n from_o the_o false_a that_o those_o which_o be_v of_o god_n will_v hear_v and_o obey_v their_o apostle_n and_o lawful_a pastor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o other_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n will_v not_o hear_v either_o apostle_n pastor_n or_o church_n but_o be_v their_o own_o judge_n 17._o that_o we_o may_v have_v confidence_n confidence_n call_v in_o latin_a fiducia_n salvation_n be_v neither_o alone_a with_o faith_n nor_o a_o persuasion_n infallible_a that_o make_v a_o man_n no_o less_o secure_a and_o certain_a of_o his_o salvation_n then_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o protestant_n false_o teach_v but_o it_o be_v only_o a_o hope_n well_o corroborate_v confirm_v and_o strengthen_v upon_o the_o promise_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o party_n merit_n and_o the_o word_n both_o follow_v &_o go_v before_o prove_v also_o evident_o against_o the_o protestant_n that_o our_o confidence_n and_o hope_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n depend_v not_o only_o upon_o our_o apprehension_n of_o christ_n merit_n by_o faith_n or_o upon_o his_o grace_n and_o mercy_n but_o also_o upon_o our_o conformity_n to_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n in_o charity_n and_o good_a work_n 10._o and_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n peter_n when_o he_o say_v labour_n that_o by_o good_a work_n you_o may_v make_v sure_a your_o vocation_n and_o election_n and_o s._n paul_n meaning_n when_o he_o say_v i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n 7._o there_o be_v lay_v up_o for_o i_o a_o crown_n of_o justice_n which_o our_o lord_n will_v render_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n a_o just_a judge_n 18._o fear_n be_v not_o in_o charity_n charity_n the_o heretic_n very_o false_o understand_v this_o place_n so_o that_o christian_a godly_a man_n ought_v to_o have_v no_o doubt_n mistrust_v or_o fear_v of_o hell_n and_o damnation_n which_o be_v most_o evident_o against_o the_o scripture_n commend_v every_o where_n unto_o we_o the_o awe_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o his_o judgement_n fear_v he_o say_v our_o saviour_n mat._n 10_o that_o can_v cast_v body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n and_o psal_n 118._o pearse_n my_o flesh_n with_o thy_o fear_n which_o fear_n of_o god_n judgement_n cause_v s._n paul_n &_o all_o good_a man_n to_o chastise_v their_o body_n 9_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v reprobate_a and_o damn_a 28._o and_o the_o wise_a man_n for_o this_o cause_n affirm_v he_o to_o be_v happy_a that_o be_v ever_o fearful_a and_o holy_a job_n faith_n 9_o i_o fear_v all_o my_o work_n and_o the_o apostle_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a work_n your_o salvation_n 2._o which_o kind_n of_o fear_n be_v even_o in_o the_o just_a man_n and_o most_o full_a of_o charity_n consist_v well_o with_o the_o same_o virtue_n and_o be_v call_v filialis_fw-la be_v timer_n because_o it_o be_v such_o as_o the_o good_a child_n ought_v to_o have_v towards_o his_o father_n but_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o fear_n which_o stand_v not_o with_o charity_n charity_n and_o be_v clean_o against_o hope_n also_o that_o which_o bring_v such_o perplexity_n and_o auxietie_n of_o conscience_n that_o it_o induce_v a_o man_n to_o mistrust_v or_o despair_v of_o god_n mercy_n that_o servile_a fear_n also_o which_o make_v a_o man_n often_o to_o leave_v sin_v and_o to_o do_v the_o external_a work_n of_o justice_n not_o for_o any_o love_n or_o delight_n he_o have_v in_o god_n or_o his_o law_n ill_a but_o only_o for_o fear_v of_o damnation_n though_o it_o be_v not_o ill_a in_o itself_o but_o very_o profitable_a as_o that_o which_o help_v towards_o the_o love_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o stand_v not_o with_o charity_n neither_o but_o be_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o lessen_v and_o at_o length_n quite_o drive_v out_o by_o charity_n of_o these_o kind_n of_o fear_n then_o the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o as_o some_o expound_v of_o the_o fear_n of_o man_n also_o of_o which_o our_o saviour_n say_v fear_v not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n 10._o chap._n v._n they_o that_o love_n god_n must_v love_v his_o natural_a son_n jesus_n and_o his_o son_n by_o adoption_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n which_o to_o the_o regenerate_a be_v light_n 4_o but_o not_o unless_o they_o continue_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n namely_o of_o this_o article_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o able_a to_o give_v we_o life_n everlasting_a 14_o and_o all_o our_o petition_n 16_o and_o our_o prayer_n for_o all_o our_o brethren_n that_o sin_n not_o unto_o death_n die_v in_o their_o mortal_a sin_n by_o impenitence_n last_o of_o all_o he_o warn_v they_o not_o to_o communicate_v with_o idol_n verse_n 1_o whosoever_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o every_o one_o that_o love_v he_o which_o beget_v love_v he_o also_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o he_o â_o verse_n 2_o in_o this_o we_o know_v that_o we_o love_v the_o child_n of_o god_n when_o as_o we_o love_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o this_o be_v the_o charity_n of_o god_n that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n *_o and_o â³_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o heavy_a 30._o â_o verse_n 4_o because_o all_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sunday_n overcom_v the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n which_o overcom_v the_o world_n our_o faith_n â_o verse_n 5_o who_o be_v he_o *_o that_o overcom_v the_o world_n 57_o but_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 6_o this_o be_v he_o that_o come_v by_o water_n and_o blood_n jesus_n christ_n not_o in_o water_n only_o but_o in_o water_n and_o blood_n and_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n which_o testify_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o truth_n â_o verse_n 7_o for_o there_o be_v â³_o three_o which_o give_v testimony_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o
his_o elect_a that_o cry_v to_o he_o day_n and_o night_n i_o say_v to_o you_o he_o will_v quick_o revenge_v they_o and_o if_o god_n do_v not_o hear_v the_o saint_n sometime_n nor_o grant_v their_o request_n be_v it_o therefore_o consequent_a that_o they_o do_v not_o or_o may_v not_o pray_v then_o christ_n himself_o shall_v not_o have_v pray_v his_o father_n to_o remove_v the_o bitter_a cup_n of_o death_n from_o he_o because_o that_o petition_n be_v not_o grant_v 10._o reveng_a thou_o not_o revenge_n they_o do_v not_o desire_v revenge_n upon_o their_o enemy_n for_o hatred_n but_o of_o charity_n and_o zeal_n of_o god_n honour_n pray_v that_o his_o enemy_n and_o the_o persecutor_n of_o his_o church_n and_o saint_n that_o will_v not_o repent_v may_v be_v confound_v and_o that_o our_o lord_n will_v accelerate_v his_o general_a judgement_n that_o so_o they_o may_v attain_v the_o perfect_a crown_n of_o glory_n promise_v unto_o they_o both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n which_o be_v to_o desire_v the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n which_o then_o shall_v triumph_v perfect_o and_o full_o over_o the_o persecutor_n that_o so_o cruel_o handle_v the_o body_n of_o the_o elect_a which_o shall_v then_o appear_v glorious_a to_o the_o enemy_n confusion_n 11._o till_o their_o fellow_n servant_n be_v complete_a there_o be_v a_o certain_a number_n that_o god_n have_v ordain_v to_o die_v for_o the_o testimony_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o catholic_a faith_n for_o conformity_n of_o the_o member_n to_o the_o head_n christ_n our_o chief_a martyr_n and_o till_o that_o number_n be_v accomplish_v the_o general_a condemnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a persecutor_n shall_v not_o come_v nor_o the_o general_a reward_n of_o the_o elect_a chap._n vii_o the_o earth_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v 3_o they_o be_v command_v to_o save_v they_o that_o be_v sign_v in_o their_o forehead_n 4_o which_o be_v describe_v and_o number_v both_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n blessing_n god_n 13_o of_o they_o that_o be_v clothe_v in_o white_a stole_n or_o long_a robe_n verse_n 1_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o see_v four_o angel_n stand_v upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n hold_v the_o four_o wind_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o blow_v upon_o the_o land_n nor_o upon_o the_o sea_n nor_o on_o any_o tree_n â_o verse_n 2_o day_n and_o i_o see_v a_o other_o angel_n ascend_v from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n have_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o live_a god_n &_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o the_o four_o angel_n to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v to_o hurt_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n â_o verse_n 3_o saying_n hurt_v not_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n nor_o the_o tree_n till_o io._n we_o sign_n the_o servant_n of_o our_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o i_o hear_v the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o be_v sign_v a_o hundred_o forty_o four_o thousand_o be_v sign_v 144000._o of_o every_o tribe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israël_n â_o verse_n 5_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o reuben_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o god_n innumerable_a twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v â_o verse_n 6_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o aser_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o nephthali_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o manasses_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v â_o verse_n 7_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o simeon_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o issachar_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v â_o verse_n 8_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o zabulon_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o joseph_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n twelue_fw-mi thousand_o sign_v â_o verse_n 9_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o see_v gentile_n a_o great_a multitude_n which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o tribe_n and_o people_n &_o tongue_n stand_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lamb_n clothe_v in_o white_a robe_n and_o victory_n palm_n in_o their_o hand_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o they_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_n voice_n say_v salvation_n to_o our_o god_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o all_o the_o angel_n stand_v in_o the_o circuit_n of_o the_o throne_n and_o of_o the_o senior_n and_o of_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o they_o fall_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o throne_n upon_o their_o face_n and_o adore_v god_n â_o verse_n 12_o saying_n amen_n benediction_n and_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n &_o thanksgiving_n honour_n and_o power_n and_o strength_n to_o our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o one_o of_o the_o senior_n answer_v martyr_n &_o say_v to_o i_o these_o that_o be_v clothe_v in_o the_o white_a robe_n who_o be_v they_o &_o whence_o come_v they_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o i_o say_v to_o he_o my_o lord_n thou_o know_a and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o these_o be_v they_o which_o be_v come_v out_o of_o great_a tribulation_n and_o have_v wash_v their_o robe_n and_o make_v they_o white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n martyr_n â_o verse_n 15_o therefore_o they_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o they_o serve_v he_o day_n and_o night_n in_o his_o temple_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n shall_v dwell_n over_o they_o 10._o â_o verse_n 16_o *_o they_o shall_v no_o more_o hunger_n nor_o thirst_n neither_o shall_v the_o sun_n fall_v upon_o they_o nor_o any_o heat_n â_o verse_n 17_o because_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o throne_n shall_v rule_v they_o and_o shall_v conduct_v they_o to_o the_o live_a fountain_n of_o water_n 8._o and_o *_o god_n will_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n 4._o â¢_o chap._n viii_o 1_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v open_v there_o appear_v angel_n with_o trempet_n 5_o and_o when_o a_o other_o angel_n pour_v out_o fire_n take_v from_o the_o altar_n upon_o the_o earth_n there_o follow_v diverse_a tempest_n 7_o in_o like_a manner_n while_o four_o angel_n of_o the_o seven_o sound_v their_o trempet_n there_o fall_v sundry_a plague_n verse_n 1_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o seven_o seal_n vision_z there_o be_v make_v silence_n in_o heaven_n as_o it_o be_v half_o a_o hour_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o i_o see_v seven_o angel_n stand_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v give_v to_o they_o seven_o trumpet_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o a_o other_o angel_n come_v and_o stand_v allude_v before_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censar_n and_o there_o be_v give_v to_o he_o many_o incense_v that_o he_o shall_v give_v of_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o saint_n upon_o the_o altar_n of_o gold_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o incense_v 12._o of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n ascend_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n before_o god_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o the_o angel_n take_v the_o censar_n and_o fill_v it_o of_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o cast_v it_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o there_o be_v make_v thunder_n &_o voice_n and_o lightning_n and_o a_o great_a earthquake_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o seven_o trumpet_n prepare_v themselves_o to_o sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o the_o first_o angel_n sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n and_o there_o be_v make_v hail_n and_o fire_n mingle_v in_o blood_n and_o it_o be_v cast_v on_o the_o earth_n &_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v burn_v &_o the_o three_o part_n of_o tree_n be_v burn_v and_o all_o green_a grass_n be_v burn_v â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o second_o angel_n sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mountain_n burn_v with_o fire_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v make_v blood_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o those_o creature_n die_v which_o have_v life_n in_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o ship_n perish_v â_o verse_n 10_o and_o the_o three_o angel_n sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n and_o a_o great_a star_n fall_v from_o heaven_n burn_v as_o it_o be_v a_o torch_n and_o it_o fall_v on_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o flood_n and_o on_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o star_n be_v call_v wormewod_fw-la and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o water_n be_v make_v into_o worm_n will_v and_o many_o man_n die_v of_o the_o water_n because_o they_o be_v make_v bitter_a â_o verse_n 12_o
those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o it_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v time_n no_o more_o â_o verse_n 7_o but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n when_o the_o trumpet_n shall_v begin_v to_o sound_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v consummate_a as_o he_o have_v evangelize_v by_o his_o servant_n the_o prophet_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n again_o speak_v with_o i_o and_o say_v go_v and_o take_v the_o book_n that_o be_v open_v of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o upon_o the_o land_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o i_o go_v to_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v give_v i_o the_o book_n 1_o and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o *_o take_v the_o book_n and_o meditation_n devour_v it_o and_o it_o shall_v make_v thy_o belly_n to_o be_v bitter_a but_o in_o thy_o mouth_n it_o shall_v be_v tribulation_n sweet_a as_o it_o be_v honey_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o i_o take_v the_o book_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n and_o denour_v it_o &_o it_o be_v in_o my_o mouth_n as_o it_o be_v honey_n sweet_a and_o when_o i_o have_v devour_v it_o my_o belly_n be_v make_v bitter_a â_o verse_n 11_o and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o thou_o must_v again_o prophesy_v to_o nation_n and_o people_n and_o tongue_n and_o many_o king_n chap._n xi_o s._n john_n measure_v the_o temple_n 3_o hear_v of_o two_o witness_n that_o shall_v preach_v 7_o who_o the_o beast_n come_v up_o from_o the_o sea_n shall_v kill_v 12_o but_o they_o rise_v again_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n 13_o and_o seven_o thousand_o person_n be_v slay_v with_o a_o earthquake_n 15_o and_o as_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n the_o sour_a and_o twenty_o senior_n give_v praise_n and_o thanks_n to_o god_n verse_n 1_o and_o there_o be_v give_v i_o a_o reed_n like_o unto_o a_o rod_n and_o it_o be_v say_v to_o i_o arise_v and_o measure_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o that_o adore_v in_o it_o â_o verse_n 2_o but_o the_o court_n which_o be_v without_o the_o temple_n cast_v forth_o &_o measure_v not_o that_o because_o it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o gentile_n &_o they_o shall_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n persecution_n two_o and_o forty_o month_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o i_o will_v give_v to_o â³_o my_o two_o witness_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o sixty_o day_n clothe_v with_o facke-clothe_n â_o verse_n 4_o these_o be_v the_o two_o olive_n tree_n and_o the_o two_o candlestick_n that_o stand_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v hurt_v they_o fire_n shall_v come_v forth_o out_o of_o their_o mouth_n and_o shall_v devour_v their_o enemy_n and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v hurt_v they_o so_o must_v he_o be_v slay_v â_o verse_n 6_o these_o have_v power_n to_o shut_v heaven_n that_o it_o rain_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o prophecy_n and_o they_o have_v power_n over_o the_o water_n to_o turn_v they_o into_o blood_n and_o to_o strike_v the_o earth_n with_o all_o plague_n as_o often_o as_o they_o will_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n the_o antichrist_n beast_n which_o ascend_v from_o the_o depth_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o they_o and_o shall_v overcome_v they_o and_o kill_v they_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o their_o body_n shall_v lie_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o world_n great_a city_n which_o be_v call_v spiritual_o sodom_n and_o egypt_n where_o their_o lord_n also_o be_v crucify_v â_o verse_n 9_o and_o there_o shall_v of_o tribe_n and_o people_n and_o tongue_n and_o gentile_n see_v their_o body_n for_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a and_o they_o shall_v not_o suffer_v their_o body_n to_o be_v lay_v in_o monument_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v be_v glad_a upon_o they_o and_o make_v merry_a and_o shall_v send_v gift_n one_o to_o a_o other_o because_o these_o two_o prophet_n torment_v they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o after_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a the_o spirit_n of_o life_n from_o god_n enter_v into_o they_o and_o they_o stand_v upon_o their_o foot_n and_o great_a fear_n fall_v upon_o they_o that_o see_v they_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o they_o hear_v a_o loud_a voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v to_o they_o come_v up_o hither_o and_o they_o go_v up_o into_o heaven_n in_o a_o cloud_n and_o their_o enemy_n see_v they_o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o in_o that_o hour_n there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a earthquake_n and_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n fall_v and_o there_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o earthquake_n name_v of_o man_n seven_o thousand_o and_o the_o rest_n be_v cast_v into_o a_o fear_n and_o give_v glory_n to_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 14_o the_o second_o woe_n be_v go_v and_o behold_v the_o three_o woe_n will_v come_v quick_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n sound_v with_o a_o trumpet_n and_o there_o be_v make_v loud_a voice_n in_o heaven_n say_v ever_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v make_v our_o lord_n &_o his_o christ_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o seniors_n which_o sit_v on_o their_o seat_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n fall_v on_o their_o face_n and_o adore_v god_n â_o verse_n 17_o saying_n we_o thank_v thou_o lord_n god_n omnipotent_a which_o art_n and_o which_o waste_v and_o which_o shall_v come_v because_o thou_o have_v receive_v thy_o great_a power_n and_o have_v reign_v â_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o gentile_n be_v angry_a and_o thy_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v judge_v and_o life_n to_o tender_a reward_n to_o thy_o servant_n the_o prophet_n and_o saint_n and_o to_o they_o that_o fear_v thy_o name_n â³_o little_a and_o great_a and_o to_o destroy_v they_o that_o have_v corrupt_v the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v open_v in_o heaven_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o his_o testament_n be_v see_v in_o his_o temple_n and_o there_o be_v make_v lightning_n and_o voice_n and_o a_o earthquake_n and_o great_a hail_n annotation_n chap._n xi_o 3._o my_o two_o witness_n enoch_n and_o elias_n antichrist_n as_o it_o be_v common_o expound_v for_o that_o elias_n shall_v come_v again_o before_o the_o late_a day_n it_o be_v a_o most_o notorious_a know_v thing_n to_o use_v s._n augustine_n word_n in_o the_o mouth_n and_o heart_n of_o faithful_a man_n see_v li._n 20_o de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la c._n 29._o tract_n 4_o in_o joan._n and_o both_o of_o enoch_n and_o elias_n lib._n 1_o de_fw-la pec_fw-la merit_n c._n 3._o so_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o latin_a doctor_n as_o s._n hierom_n ad_fw-la pammach_n ep_v 61_o c._n 11._o &_o in_o psal_n 20._o s._n ambrose_n in_o psal_n 45._o s._n hilary_n 20_o can_n in_o mat._n prospet_fw-fr li._n ultimâ_n de_fw-fr promissionibus_fw-la c._n 13._o s_o gregory_n li._n 14._o moral_a c._n 11._o &_o he_o 12_o in_o ezech._n beda_n in_o 9_o marci_n the_o greek_a father_n also_o as_o s._n chrysostom_n he_o 58_o in_o mat._n &_o ho._n 4_o in_o 2_o thessaly_n &_o ho._n 21_o in_o genes_n &_o ho._n 22_o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la hebr._n theophylacte_n and_o occumenius_n in_o 17_o matthai_n s._n damascene_fw-la li._n 4_o de_fw-la orthodoxa_fw-la fide_fw-la c._n 27._o furthermore_o that_o they_o live_v also_o in_o paradise_n it_o be_v partly_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n ecclici_n 44._o 16._o where_o it_o be_v plain_o say_v of_o enoch_n that_o he_o be_v translate_v into_o paradise_n as_o all_o our_o latin_a exemplar_n do_v read_v and_o of_o elias_n that_o he_o be_v take_v up_o alive_a it_o be_v evident_a 4_o reg._n 2._o and_o s._n irenaeus_n say_v it_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o be_v both_o there_o li._n 5_o in_o initio_fw-la dicunt_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la discipuli_fw-la so_o say_v the_o priest_n or_o ancient_n that_o be_v the_o scholar_n of_o the_o apostle_n see_v s._n justine_n q._n 85_o ad_fw-la orthodoxos_fw-la final_o that_o they_o shall_v return_v into_o the_o company_n of_o man_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o preach_v against_o antichrist_n and_o to_o inutie_n both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n to_o penance_n and_o so_o be_v martyr_v as_o this_o place_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n seem_v plain_a so_o we_o have_v in_o part_n other_o testimony_n hereof_o malac._n 4._o ecclci_fw-la 44_o 16._o 48_o 10._o mat._n 17_o 11._o see_v also_o hippolytus_n book_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n
of_o the_o last_o judgement_n power_n but_o of_o the_o see_v or_o consistory_n of_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n and_o of_o the_o prelate_n themselves_o by_o who_o the_o church_n be_v now_o govern_v as_o the_o judgement_n here_o give_v can_v be_v take_v no_o otherwise_o better_a then_o of_o that_o which_o be_v say_v by_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 18._o whatsoever_o you_o bind_v in_o earth_n 5._o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v with_o out_o 4._o and_o the_o soul_n only_o he_o mean_v say_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v the_o soul_n of_o martyr_n that_o they_o shall_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n during_o those_o thousand_o year_n which_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a be_v in_o heaven_n without_o their_o body_n and_o reign_v with_o christ_n for_o the_o soul_n say_v he_o of_o the_o godly_a depart_v be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v even_o now_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o else_o there_o shall_v be_v keep_v no_o memory_n of_o they_o as_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n in_o the_o communicate_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n neither_o shall_v it_o avail_v to_o hasten_v to_o baptism_n in_o the_o peril_n of_o death_n for_o fear_n of_o end_v our_o life_n without_o it_o nor_o to_o hasten_v to_o be_v reconcile_v if_o we_o fortune_n for_o penence_n or_o of_o ill_a conscience_n to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o same_o body_n and_o why_o be_v all_o these_o thing_n do_v but_o for_o that_o the_o faithful_a depart_v also_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o though_o for_o a_o example_n the_o martyr_n be_v only_o name_v here_o yet_o it_o be_v meanâ_n of_o other_o also_o that_o die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n 5._o the_o rest_n live_v not_o time_n the_o rest_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o happy_a number_n aforesaid_a but_o live_v and_o die_v in_o sin_n reign_v not_o with_o christ_n in_o their_o soul_n during_o this_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o be_v dead_a in_o soul_n spiritual_o and_o in_o body_n natural_o till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n s._n august_n ibidem_fw-la 3._o this_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n as_o there_o be_v two_o regeneration_n one_o by_o faith_n which_o be_v now_o in_o baptism_n and_o a_o other_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n when_o at_o the_o late_a day_n the_o body_n shall_v be_v make_v immortal_a and_o incorruptible_a only_o so_o there_o be_v two_o resurrection_n the_o one_o now_o of_o the_o soul_n to_o salvation_n when_o they_o die_v in_o grace_n which_o be_v call_v the_o first_o the_o other_o of_o the_o body_n at_o the_o late_a day_n s._n august_n liâ_n 20_o de_fw-fr civiâ_n c._n 6._o 6._o they_o shall_v be_v priest_n it_o be_v not_o speak_v say_v s._n augustine_n li._n 20_o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 10_o of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n only_a unpropre_o which_o be_v proper_o now_o in_o the_o church_n call_v priest_n but_o as_o we_o call_v all_o christian_n for_o the_o mystical_a chrism_n or_o ointment_n â_o so_o all_o priest_n because_o they_o be_v the_o member_n of_o one_o priest_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v a_o holy_a people_n a_o kingly_a priesthood_n which_o word_n be_v notable_a for_o their_o learning_n that_o think_v there_o be_v none_o proper_o call_v priest_n now_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n no_o otherwise_o then_o all_o christian_a man_n and_o woman_n and_o a_o confusion_n to_o they_o that_o therefore_o have_v turn_v the_o name_n priest_n into_o minister_n 7._o satan_n shall_v be_v loose_v augustine_n in_o the_o whole_a 8_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v 20_o book_n de_fw-la civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o s._n augustine_n be_v a_o notable_a commentary_n of_o these_o word_n where_o first_o he_o declare_v that_o neither_o this_o bind_n nor_o lose_v of_o satan_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o seduce_v or_o not_o seduce_v the_o church_n of_o god_n prove_v that_o whether_o he_o be_v bind_v or_o loose_v he_o can_v never_o seduce_v the_o same_o the_o same_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o be_v loose_v even_o as_o since_o it_o be_v institute_v the_o same_o have_v it_o be_v &_o shall_v be_v at_o all_o time_n in_o her_o child_n that_o succeed_v each_o other_o by_o birth_n &_o death_n and_o a_o little_a after_o this_o i_o think_v be_v therefore_o to_o be_v mention_v leave_v any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o during_o the_o little_a time_n wherein_o the_o devil_n shall_v be_v loose_v the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n he_o either_o not_o find_v it_o here_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v leâ_n loose_a or_o consume_v it_o when_o be_v shall_v by_o all_o mean_n persecute_v the_o same_o second_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o devil_n to_o be_v bind_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o not_o to_o be_v permit_v by_o god_n to_o exercise_v all_o his_o force_n or_o fraud_n in_o tentation_n as_o to_o be_v loose_v be_v to_o be_v suffer_v by_o god_n for_o a_o small_a time_n that_o be_v for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a to_o practice_v and_o prove_v all_o his_o power_n and_o art_n of_o tentation_n against_o the_o church_n and_o her_o child_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o prevail_v against_o they_o three_o this_o doctor_n show_v by_o what_o great_a mercy_n our_o lord_n have_v tie_v satan_n and_o abridge_v his_o power_n during_o the_o whole_a millenarie_a or_o thousand_o year_n which_o be_v all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n until_o then_o &_o with_o what_o wisdom_n he_o permit_v he_o to_o break_v loose_a that_o little_a time_n of_o three_o year_n and_o six_o month_n antichrist_n towards_o the_o late_a day_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n last_o he_o show_v what_o kind_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v most_o subject_a to_o the_o devil_n seduction_n even_o such_o as_o now_o by_o tentation_n of_o heretic_n go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o shall_v avoid_v it_o by_o all_o which_o we_o may_v confute_v diverse_a false_a exposition_n of_o old_a &_o late_a heretic_n chiliast_n first_o the_o ancient_a sect_n of_o the_o millenaries_n that_o ground_v upon_o these_o thousand_o year_n name_v by_o the_o prophet_n this_o heresy_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o year_n after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n in_o which_o we_o shall_v reign_v with_o christ_n in_o this_o world_n in_o our_o body_n in_o all_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n corporal_a of_o meat_n drink_n and_o such_o like_a which_o they_o call_v the_o first_o resurrection_n of_o which_o heresy_n cerinthus_n be_v the_o author_n epiph._n haer_fw-mi 77._o in_o fine_a hiero._n comment_n in_o c._n 19_o mat._n august_n har_z 8_o ad_fw-la quodvulâ_n deum_fw-la eusâbius_n also_o li._n 3_o historia_fw-la c._n 33_o show_v that_o some_o principal_a man_n be_v in_o part_n though_o after_o a_o more_o honest_a manner_n concern_v those_o corporal_a delicacy_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n by_o misconstruction_n of_o these_o word_n of_o s._n john_n hard_o whereby_o we_o learn_v and_o all_o the_o world_n may_v perceive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v hard_a when_o so_o great_a clerk_n do_v err_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o security_n but_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o church_n allow_v of_o the_o late_a heretic_n also_o by_o the_o say_v s._n augustine_n word_n be_v full_o refute_v affirm_v not_o only_a that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v seduce_v in_o that_o great_a persecution_n of_o the_o devil_n lose_v antichrist_n but_o that_o it_o have_v be_v seduce_v even_o a_o great_a piece_n of_o this_o time_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v hold_v that_o the_o very_a true_a church_n may_v err_v or_o fall_v from_o truth_n to_o error_n and_o idolatry_n yea_o which_o be_v more_o blasphemy_n that_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v antichrist_n himself_o and_o the_o very_a church_n under_o he_o the_o whooâe_n of_o babylon_n and_o that_o this_o antichrist_n which_o the_o scripture_n in_o so_o many_o place_n and_o here_o plain_o by_o s._n augustine_n exposition_n testify_v shall_v reign_v but_o a_o small_a time_n and_o that_o towards_o the_o last_o judgement_n have_v be_v reveal_v long_o sithence_o to_o be_v the_o pope_n himself_o christ_n own_o vicar_n and_o that_o he_o have_v persecute_v the_o saint_n of_o their_o sect_n for_o these_o thousand_o year_n at_o the_o least_o which_o be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o make_v the_o devil_n to_o be_v loose_a and_o antichrist_n to_o reign_v the_o whole_a thousand_o year_n or_o the_o most_o part_n thereof_o that_o be_v almost_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o church_n state_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v against_o this_o and_o other_o scripture_n evident_o appoint_v that_o to_o be_v the_o time_n of_o
fast_n 17._o the_o church_n fast_n foresignify_v by_o christ_n himself_o 23_o mar_v s._n john_n baptist_n and_o his_o disciple_n fast_v 24._o fear_n many_o kind_n of_o fear_n 685._o the_o iustent_a man_n do_v fear_n 685._o see_v in_o f_o special_a faith_n and_o the_o word_n salvation_n servile_a fear_v not_o ill_a though_o not_o sufficient_a 685._o 362_o mark_fw-mi fear_v of_o hell_n profitable_a 173_o mark_fw-mi feast_n or_o festival_n day_n â_o pag._n 7._o nu_fw-la 16._o pag._n 250._o nu_fw-la 22._o p._n 295._o 335._o 507._o 638._o 668._o 700._o prefigurate_v by_o the_o jew_n feast_n 239._o mark_fw-mi scripture_n gross_o abuse_v by_o the_o protestant_n against_o the_o church_n festivity_n and_o holiday_n pa._n 418._o 507._o 540._o easter_n whit-suntide_a 295._o 353._o 467_o mark_fw-mi 507._o 700._o sunday_n 353._o 467_o mark_fw-mi 507._o 700._o 250._o 211_o mark_fw-mi call_v die_v dominica_n because_o of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n 274_o m._n 700._o 701._o great_a grace_n give_v upon_o these_o solemn_a day_n 701._o free_a will_v pag._n 32_o mark_fw-mi 47._o 55._o nu_fw-la 11._o pag._n 58._o nu_fw-la 16._o pag._n 72._o mark_fw-mi 74._o nu_fw-la 34._o pag._n 142._o 169._o nu_fw-la 30._o pag._n 219._o 236._o 370._o 387._o nu_fw-la pag._n 399._o nu_fw-la 15._o 19_o pag._n 406._o 407._o nu_fw-la 21._o pag._n 409._o 466._o 477._o 482._o 530._o 568._o nu_fw-la 4._o pag._n 590._o 650._o nu_fw-la 8._o 179_o mark_fw-mi 704._o 706_o mark_fw-mi 509_o mark_fw-mi 589_o mark_fw-mi man_n free_a will_v work_v with_o god_n grace_n 477._o 464_o mark_fw-mi 680_o mark_fw-mi 329_o ma._n 466._o 519_o m._n 649_o m._n 650._o god_n and_o his_o grace_n force_v no_o man_n pag._n 58._o nu_fw-la 16._o pag._n 236._o nu_fw-la 44._o 400_o mark_fw-mi god_n grace_n make_v man_n will_v more_o free_v 243_o mark_fw-mi 706_o m._n predestination_n reprobation_n concupiscence_n take_v not_o away_o free_a will_v pag._n 370._o 399._o 406._o 407._o 329_o mark_fw-mi 404_o mark_fw-mi 509_o mark_fw-mi the_o jew_n blindness_n and_o reprobation_n be_v through_o their_o own_o free_a will_v 179_o mark_fw-mi 255_o mark_fw-mi 329._o mark_fw-mi 372_o mark_fw-mi 405_o mark_fw-mi so_o be_v their_o betray_n and_o crucify_a of_o christ_n and_o judas_n treason_n 296._o the_o refuse_v of_o the_o gospel_n when_o it_o be_v preach_v 408._o mark_fw-mi g_o god_n not_o author_n of_o sin_n pag._n 17._o 36_o mark_fw-mi 37._o 97._o 142._o nu_fw-la 34._o pag._n 296._o nu_fw-la 23._o pag._n 385._o 387._o nu_fw-la 4._o pag._n 390._o 406._o 412._o 643._o 188_o mark_fw-mi 255_o ma._n 704._o 730_o mark_fw-mi 404_o mark_fw-mi 642_o mark_fw-mi see_v reprobation_n free_a will_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o place_n that_o sound_v as_o though_o god_n be_v author_n of_o sin_n 37._o 97._o 255_o mark_fw-mi 296._o 730_o mark_fw-mi 308_o mark_fw-mi 390._o 554_o mark_fw-mi how_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v by_o god_n determination_n 296._o 300._o mark_fw-mi gospel_n it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o write_v word_n pag._n 109._o nu_fw-la 35._o pag._n 384._o 486._o 549_o m._n see_v tradition_n the_o preeminence_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 477._o 615._o 618._o 620._o 623._o the_o true_a liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n 477._o 508._o 510._o 566._o nu_fw-la 9_o pag._n 643._o 659._o nu_fw-la 16._o pag._n 396_o and_o 398._o m._n he_o suffer_v for_o the_o gospel_n that_o suffer_v for_o any_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n 109._o grace_n see_v free_n will_v god_n offer_v his_o grace_n and_o man_n may_v refuse_v it_o 706._o 408_o m._n 519._o m._n 635_o m._n to_o consent_v thereunto_o be_v also_o by_o grace_n ib._n 589._o mar_v the_o valour_n of_o merit_n procee_v of_o god_n grace_n see_v merit_n a_o man_n may_v fall_v from_o grace_n once_o have_v 702._o grace_n or_o gift_n call_v gratis_o data_fw-la 455_o mark_fw-mi the_o greek_a text_n corrupt_v c_o 84._o see_v the_o preface_n h_n hallow_a or_o sanctify_v of_o creature_n pag._n 576._o the_o force_n of_o the_o same_o 577._o holy_a place_n pag._n 49._o 309._o 667_o mark_fw-mi see_v pilgrimage_n church_n the_o holy_a land_n pag._n 50._o 309._o 577._o the_o holy_a mount_n 667_o mark_fw-mi holy_a bread_n pa._n 576._o holy_a water_n pag._n 576._o holiday_n see_v feast_n holy_a thing_n not_o to_o be_v profane_v see_v sacrilege_n hell_n take_v sometime_o for_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la 296._o christ_n in_o soul_n descend_v into_o hel._n 187._o 296._o 518_o mark_fw-mi 661._o to_o deliver_v thence_o the_o father_n and_o just_a man_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 187._o the_o caluinist_n deny_v this_o article_n 83._o 661._o s._n augustine_n call_v they_o infidel_n that_o deny_v it_o 661._o 294_o mark_fw-mi their_o heretical_a translation_n for_o that_o purpose_n 296._o fear_v of_o hell_n profitable_a 173_o mark_fw-mi 362_o mark_fw-mi henoch_n see_v enoch_n heretic_n who_o be_v a_o heretic_n pag._n 599._o mark_v to_o knov_v they_o p._n 19_o 353._o 566._o 591._o 684._o go_v out_o of_o the_o cath._n church_n pag._n 337._o 519._o 520._o 574._o nu_fw-la 1._o pag._n 599._o 189_o mark_fw-mi 678_o mark_fw-mi 679._o 675._o diverse_a name_n of_o sect_n and_o sectary_n 323._o 648._o nicolaites_n a_o pattern_n of_o they_o 704._o run_v not_o send_v 61._o 154._o nu_fw-la 13._o pag._n 250._o 330._o nu_fw-la 2._o pag._n 409._o 496._o nu_fw-la 1._o pag._n 609._o nu_fw-la 4._o 248_o mark_fw-mi 489_o mark_fw-mi their_o dissension_n pag._n 31._o 32._o mark_fw-mi 67._o 94._o 339._o nu_fw-la 37._o pag._n 532._o preach_v otherwise_o &_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n receive_v 455_o mark_fw-mi 496._o 497._o 565._o 582_o mark_fw-mi hypocrisy_n and_o sweet_a word_n 70._o 154._o nu_fw-la 26._o pag._n 384._o nu_fw-la 7._o pag._n 490._o 591._o nu_fw-la 6._o 9_o p._n 593._o 669_o mark_fw-mi 716._o 421_o mark_fw-mi 489._o mark_fw-mi vanity_n in_o preach_v and_o vain_a glory_n 154._o preach_v licentiousness_n and_o liberty_n 669_o mark_fw-mi 670_o mark_fw-mi 704._o meretricious_a and_o paint_a eloquence_n 582._o nu_fw-la 17._o p._n 539_o m._n teach_v new_a doctrine_n 565._o 689._o 636_o mark_fw-mi new_a term_n and_o speech_n 584._o 585._o vaunt_v great_a knowledge_n special_o of_o the_o scripture_n 154._o 232._o 488._o nu_fw-la 4._o pag._n 566._o 585._o their_o ignorance_n ib._n and_o pag._n 121._o nu_fw-la 24._o pag._n 670_o mark_fw-mi 695._o boast_v of_o the_o spirit_n 684._o contempt_n of_o counsel_n and_o father_n pag_n 338._o 339._o 499._o 585._o nu_fw-la 20._o pag._n 625._o corrupt_v of_o scripture_n 475._o 478_o deny_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o doctor_n pag._n 645._o nu_fw-la 14._o pag._n 345._o nu_fw-la 34._o control_v of_o the_o very_a text_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o sacred_a writer_n thereof_o pa._n 139._o 205._o 314._o nu_fw-la 27._o pag._n 144_o mark_fw-mi their_o foul_a shift_n and_o wrangle_n to_o avoid_v the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n 219._o 277._o 672._o 580._o 581._o 613._o nu_fw-la 10._o pag._n 687._o 313._o slander_v the_o church_n pag._n 237._o nu_fw-la 53._o hatred_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 423._o acknowledge_v no_o judge_n of_o controversy_n p._n 472._o 499._o despise_v of_o ruler_n special_o ecclesiastical_a 693_o &_o 694_o mark_fw-mi lack_v of_o faith_n 261._o 492._o 319_o mar_v mutability_n in_o faith_n and_o inconstancy_n pag._n 471._o 591._o nu_fw-la 13._o voluptuousness_n pag._n 423._o 693_o mark_fw-mi several_a and_o secret_a conventicle_n pag._n 71._o 96_o m._n 213._o 189_o m._n 695._o synod_n 53_o nu_fw-la 20._o pag._n 339._o their_o clergy_n or_o ecclesiastical_a order_n p._n 571._o how_o heresy_n profit_v the_o church_n 450._o 680._o their_o many_o faith_n 520._o many_o analogy_n &_o rule_n of_o faith_n 414._o their_o doctrine_n fable_n 565._o they_o come_v to_o naught_o though_o support_v a_o while_n by_o never_o so_o mighty_a prince_n 303_o mar_v their_o mark_n agree_v to_o the_o protestant_n 599._o they_o may_v be_v force_v to_o the_o cath._n faith_n p._n 182._o they_o may_v be_v punish_v by_o death_n p._n 166._o nu_fw-la 53._o 731._o nu_fw-la 6._o p._n 364_o m._n 626_o m._n to_o avoid_v their_o book_n sermon_n service_n 94._o 599._o not_o to_o marry_v with_o they_o 481._o mar_v not_o to_o communicate_v with_o they_o 598._o mark_fw-mi 599._o 689._o 690._o the_o example_n of_o s._n john_n s._n polycarpe_n &_o other_o apostolic_a man_n 690._o it_o be_v to_o dony_n christ_n 27._o nu_fw-la 32._o it_o be_v damnable_a 704._o when_o and_o wherein_o it_o be_v tolerable_a to_o converse_v with_o they_o 689._o their_o book_n to_o be_v burn_v pag._n 350._o they_o be_v judge_v already_o 224._o who_o be_v easy_o seduce_v by_o they_o 716._o woman_n 591._o woman_n great_a promotour_n of_o heresy_n 568._o zeal_n against_o heretic_n 497._o 690._o 703._o 704._o arch-heretike_n signify_v by_o the_o star_n that_o sell_v from_o heaven_n 715._o m._n simon_n magus_n the_o father_n of_o they_o al._n p._n 314._o nu_fw-la 18._o their_o king_n abaddon_n that_o be_v destroyer_n 715._o they_o be_v resemble_v to_o
mat._n 26_o 17._o lu._n 22_o 7_o mt._n 26_o 17._o maundy_n thursday_n lu._n 22_o 7_o io._n 13_o 21_o ps_n 40_o â0_n mt._n 26_o 26._o luc._n 21_o 19_o 19_o all_o drink_v to_o wit_n all_o the_o twelve_o for_o more_o be_v not_o present_a whereby_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o word_n in_o s._n mat._n 26_o 27_o drink_n you_o all_o of_o this_o be_v speak_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n only_o which_o here_o be_v say_v that_o they_o all_o do_v drink_v and_o so_o it_o be_v no_o general_a commandment_n to_o all_o man_n 1._o cor._n 11_o 24._o 24._o see_v annot._n in_o mat._n c._n 26_o 29._o thursday_n night_n zâch_o 13_o 7._o mt._n 26_o 47._o luc._n 22_o 47._o io._n 18_o 3._o io._n 2_o 19_o dan._n 7_o 13._o 13._o here_o we_o may_v see_v that_o they_o be_v worthy_o reprobate_v and_o forsake_v according_a to_o our_o saviour_n prediction_n by_o the_o parable_n mar._n 12_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o you_o etc._n etc._n etc._n he_o fear_v not_o afterward_o rome_n the_o lady_n of_o the_o world_n that_o in_o the_o house_n of_o caiphaâ_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o high_a priest_n wench_n leo_n in_o natiu_fw-la pet._n &_o pau._n ser_n 1._o cost_v religious_o bestow_v upon_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n the_o real_a presence_n by_o consecration_n very_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n i'faith_o necessary_a in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n peter_n good_a friday_n mt._n 27_o 1_o lu._n 23_o 1._o io._n 18_o 28_o io._n 19_o 2._o esa_n 53_o 1â_n 1â_n thou_o that_o destroiâst_v destroiâst_v build_v build_v so_o heretic_n say_v of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v christ_n let_v he_o save_v himself_o from_o all_o injury_n ps_n 21_o 1._o 1._o see_v mat._n c._n 27_o 46_o the_o blasphemous_a exposition_n of_o caluin_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o take_v heed_n thereof_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n euseb_n ec._n hist_o li._n â_o c._n 6._o ex_fw-la josepho_n ezech._n 7_o 26._o the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n io._n 16_o 1â_n luc._n 22._o and_o 10._o execute_v law_n against_o innocent_n religious_a duty_n towards_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n mt._n 28_o 1_o the_o gospel_n upon_o easter_n day_n iu._n 24_o 1_o io._n 20_o 1._o easter_n day_n day_n peter_n be_v name_v in_o special_a as_o often_o else_o where_o for_o prerogative_n mr._n 14_o 28._o io._n 20_o 16._o luc._n 8_o 2._o lu._n 24_o 13._o lu._n 24_o 36._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o ascension_n day_n io._n 20_o 19_o mt._n 28_o 19_o â_o the_o ascension_n lu._n 25_o 51._o the_o woman_n devotion_n towards_o christ_n body_n now_o dead_a mr._n 16_o 9_o mt._n 28_o 9_o christ_n body_n under_o diverse_a form_n not_o only_o faith_n mt._n 28._o 20._o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n hier._n in_o catalago_n 2._o cor._n 8_o 8._o luk._n 1_o 2._o col._n 4_o 14._o 2._o tim._n 4_o 21._o hiero._n in_o catalogo_fw-la catalogo_fw-la constantius_n hier._n con_v vigil_n 2._o the_o heretic_n so_o count_v the_o catholic_n for_o their_o honour_v of_o saint_n and_o relic_n relic_n constantius_n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o infancy_n both_o of_o the_o precursor_n and_o of_o christ_n himself_o act._n 1_o 1._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o eve_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n 1_o par._n 24_o 10._o exo._n 3_o 17._o 17._o we_o see_v here_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v his_o duty_n within_o the_o people_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n pray_v without_o and_o that_o the_o priest_n function_n do_v profit_v they_o though_o they_o neither_o hear_v nor_o see_v his_o do_n leu._n 16_o 16._o 16._o this_o abstinence_n foretell_v and_o prescribe_v by_o the_o angel_n show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o worthy_a thing_n and_o a_o act_n of_o religion_n in_o s._n john_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o nazarite_n mal._n 4_o 6._o mt._n 11_o 14._o 14._o zacharie_n punish_v for_o doubt_v of_o the_o angel_n word_n word_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o annunciation_n of_o our_o lady_n march_z 25._o and_o on_o the_o wenesday_n of_o imber_n week_n in_o advent_a and_o for_o a_o votive_a mass_n of_o our_o lady_n in_o advent_a mt._n 1_o 18_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o ave_fw-la marie_n see_v the_o rest_n v._o 42._o esa_n 7_o 14._o dan._n 7_o 14_o 27_o 27_o she_o doubt_v not_o of_o the_o thing_n as_o zacharie_n but_o inquire_v of_o the_o mean_n mean_n at_o this_o very_a moment_n when_o the_o b._n virgin_n give_v consent_v she_o conceive_v he_o perfect_a god_n and_o perfect_a man_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o visitation_n of_o our_o lady_n jul_n 2._o and_o upon_o the_o imber_n friday_n in_o advent_a advent_a john_n the_o baptist_n be_v yet_o in_o his_o mother_n womb_n rejoice_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o mother_n magnificat_fw-la at_o evensong_n evensong_n have_v the_o protestant_n have_v always_o generation_n to_o fulfil_v this_o prophecy_n ordo_fw-la they_o call_v she_o bless_v that_o derogate_v what_o they_o can_v from_o her_o grace_n blessing_n and_o all_o her_o honour_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o nativity_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n jun._n 24._o call_v midsummer_n day_n lu._n 1_o 13._o benedictus_fw-la at_o laudes_fw-la gen._n 22_o 6._o mal._n 3_o 1._o zac._n 3._o 9_o 6_o 12._o mal._n 4_o 2._o 2._o mark_v that_o he_o be_v a_o voluntary_a eremite_n and_o choose_v to_o be_v solitary_a from_o a_o child_n till_o he_o be_v to_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n in_o so_o much_o that_o antiquity_n count_v he_o the_o first_o eremite_n heir_n in_o vit_fw-fr pauli_n sacred_a writer_n and_o holy_a counsel_n the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n 2_o mach._n 2_o &_o 15._o true_a justification_n by_o observe_v the_o commandment_n corrupt_a translation_n of_o heretic_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d beza_n in_o annot._n no._n test_n 1556._o the_o continency_n of_o priest_n often_o say_v of_o the_o ave_fw-la marie_n liturg._n s._n jacobs_n &_o chrys_n corrupt_a translation_n of_o heretic_n s._n athan._n de_fw-fr s._n deip._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d s._n ephrem_fw-la in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr laud._n b._n virg_n ambro_n in_o 1_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d luc._n li._n 2._o high_a ep_n 140_o in_o exp_n ps_n 44._o our_o b._n lady_n vow_v virginity_n christ_n come_v of_o both_o tribe_n juda_n and_o levi._n the_o bless_a virgin_n marie_n her_o excellency_n her_o honour_n in_o all_o the_o world_n mystery_n and_o signification_n in_o name_n what_o name_v to_o be_v give_v in_o baptism_n c._n the_o bapt_a in_o fine_a true_a justice_n not_o imputative_a the_o heretic_n control_v both_o greek_a and_o latin_a text_n beza_n the_o gospel_n at_o the_o first_o mass_n upon_o christmas_n day_n in_o the_o year_n from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n 5199_o from_o noës_n flood_n 2957_o from_o the_o nativity_n of_o abraham_n 2015_o from_o moses_n and_o the_o come_n forth_o of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n 1510_o from_o david_n anoint_a king_n 1032_o from_o the_o first_o olympias_n 800_o from_o the_o build_n of_o rome_n 752_o hebdomada_fw-la 63_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n c._n 9_o that_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 440_o or_o there_o about_o in_o the_o sixth_o age_n of_o the_o world_n when_o there_o be_v universal_a peace_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o eternal_a god_n and_o son_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n mean_v to_o consecrate_v and_o sanctify_v the_o world_n with_o his_o most_o blessed_a come_n be_v conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nine_o month_n after_o his_o conception_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v bear_v in_o bethlehem_n of_o juda_n in_o the_o year_n of_o caesar_n augustus_n 42._o vsuard_n in_o martyrol_n decemb._n 25._o according_a to_o the_o common_a ancient_a supputation_n gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la at_o mass_n mass_n the_o gospel_n at_o the_o second_o mass_n upon_o christmas_n day_n and_o for_o a_o votive_a of_o our_o lady_n from_o christmas_n to_o candlemas_n candlemas_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o circuncision_n of_o our_o lord_n jan._n 1._o gen._n 17_o 12._o lu._n 1_o 31._o 31._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o purification_n of_o our_o lady_n or_o candlemas_n day_n leu._n 12_o 6._o exo._n 13_o 2_o nu._n 8_o 16_o leu._n 12_o 8._o 8._o see_v joh._n 1_o 20_o and_o 41._o nunc_fw-la dimittiâ_n at_o complin_n complin_n simeon_n prophesy_v not_o only_o of_o christ_n but_o of_o our_o b._n lady_n of_o all_o her_o sorrow_n wherein_o she_o be_v always_o partaker_n with_o our_o saviour_n from_o his_o flight_n into_o egypt_n even_o to_o her_o death_n death_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d strong_a in_o spirit_n exo._n 23_o 15._o 34_o 17._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o first_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphanâe_n deu._n 16_o 1._o free_a will_v our_o b._n lady_n full_a of_o deep_a contemplation_n 1_o pet._n 2_o 1._o man_n ruin_n and_o damnation_n be_v of_o
everlasting_a see_v annotation_n matth._n 27_o 29_o etc._n etc._n the_o five_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o holy_a week_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o jerusalem_n mt._n 21_o 1_o mr._n 11_o 1_o io._n 12_o 15_o palm_n sunday_n sunday_n his_o disciple_n disciple_n this_o be_v fulfil_v 40_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n by_o titus_n &_o vespasianus_n when_o beside_o incredible_a misery_n of_o famine_n and_o other_o distressès_fw-fr there_o perish_v eleven_o hundred_o thousand_o and_o be_v take_v captive_n 97000_o the_o siege_n beginning_n in_o the_o very_a same_o feast_n &_o great_a solemnity_n of_o easter_n when_o they_o put_v christ_n to_o death_n euseb_n li._n 1_o hist_o c._n 6._o 1._o 8._o joseph_n li._n 7_o c._n 17._o 17._o mt._n 21_o 12._o mr._n 11_o 15._o monday_n es_fw-ge 56_o 7_o jer._n 7_o 11_o external_n devotion_n restitution_n satisfaction_n lu._n 21_o 3._o mr._n 21_o 23._o mr._n 11_o 27_o tvesday_n tvesday_n see_v annot._n mat._n c_o 21_o 23._o esa_n 5_o 1._o 1._o see_v the_o marginal_a annotation_n marc._n ãâã_d mt._n 21_o 33._o mr._n 12_o 1._o ps_n 117_o 22._o mt._n 22_o 15._o mr._n 12_o 13._o 13._o so_o duty_n must_v be_v do_v to_o prince_n that_o our_o duty_n to_o god_n be_v not_o neglect_v see_v annot_n mat._n c._n 22_o 15._o mt._n 22_o 23._o mr._n 12_o 18._o deu_fw-la 25_o 5._o 5._o the_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d impot_v also_o this_o much_o they_o that_o be_v make_v worthy_a to_o wit_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o so_o they_o be_v in_o deed_n worthy_a as_o also_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n verse_n 36._o &_o 2._o thess_n 1._o 5._o exo._n 3_o 6._o mt._n 22_o 44._o mr._n 12_o 36._o ps_n 109_o 1._o mt._n 23_o 6._o mr._n 12_o 38._o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o heaven_n or_o to_o deserve_v &_o merit_v it_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o new_a testament_n a_o 1580._o the_o dignity_n of_o saint_n mr._n 12_o 14._o mt._n 24_o 1._o mar._n 13_o 1._o 1._o this_o be_v fulfil_v 40_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o 19_o of_o august_n be_v the_o very_a month_n and_o day_n where_o in_o the_o babylonian_n burn_v it_o from_o the_o first_o building_n thereof_o by_o solomon_n 1â30_n year_n from_o the_o re-edify_n thereof_o under_o cyrus_n 639_o year_n josep_n de_fw-fr bell_n jud._n li._n 9_o cap._n 10._o tvesday_n night_n night_n many_o false-prophet_n &_o heretic_n see_v an._n mt._n 24._o mr._n 13._o 13._o the_o gospel_n for_o many_o martyr_n martyr_n great_a persecution_n of_o catholic_a man_n eze._n 32_o 7._o joel._n 3_o 15._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 1_o sunday_n in_o advent_a advent_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d see_v annot_n c._n 20_o 15._o 15._o solitariness_n or_o eremitage_n as_o s._n gregory_n nazian_n say_v be_v a_o goodly_a thing_n this_o do_v the_o mount_n carmel_n of_o elias_n teach_v johns_n desert_n &_o that_o mount_n unto_o which_o jesus_n often_o retire_v &_o be_v quiet_o alone_a with_o himself_o ser._n 26_o de_fw-la amore_fw-la pauperum_fw-la mt._n 26_o 1_o the_o passion_n according_a to_o s._n luke_n in_o these_o two_o chapter_n be_v the_o gospel_n at_o mass_n upon_o tenebre_n wenesday_n mr._n 14_o 1_o tenebre_fw-la wenesday_n mt._n 26_o 17._o mr._n 14_o 12._o maundy_n thursday_n mt._n 26_o 26._o mr._n 14_o 22._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 24._o 24._o the_o greek_a be_v here_o so_o plain_a that_o there_o be_v very_a blood_n in_o the_o chalice_n shed_v for_o we_o that_o beza_n say_v it_o be_v a_o corruption_n in_o the_o greek_a see_v the_o annota_fw-la upon_o this_o place_n mt._n 26_o 21._o mr._n 14_o 20._o io._n 13_o 18_o mt._n 20_o 25._o mr._n 10_o 42._o 42._o straight_o after_o the_o former_a love_a check_n &_o admonition_n he_o promise_v to_o they_o all_o that_o have_v be_v partaker_n with_o he_o of_o his_o misery_n in_o this_o life_n great_a prcemiââence_n in_o heaven_n than_o any_o potentate_n can_v have_v in_o this_o world_n &_o therefore_o that_o they_o need_v not_o be_v careful_a of_o dignity_n or_o supremacy_n mt._n 26_o 34._o mr._n 14_o 30._o mt._n 10_o 9_o lu._n 10_o 4._o es_fw-ge 53_o 12_o mt._n 16_o 36._o mr._n 14_o 32._o thursday_n night_n io._n 18_o 1_o the_o old_a paschal_n cease_v and_o a_o new_a be_v institute_v two_o cup_n or_o chalice_n at_o christ_n last_o supper_n mt._n 26_o 29_o the_o real_a presence_n christ_n sacrifice_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o sacrament_n at_o his_o supper_n supper_n quod_fw-la datur_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n cyril_n alex_n anathem_fw-mi ãâã_d the_o apostle_n be_v make_v priest_n &_o the_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a order_n institute_v a_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n no_o less_o than_o the_o prefigurative_a sacrifice_n be_v true_a sacrifice_n ambr._n in_o 10._o hebr._fw-la chrys_n ho._n 17_o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la hebr._n to_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o a_o thing_n and_o yet_o the_o thing_n itself_o repugn_v not_o hebr._n 9_o both_o testament_n dedicate_v in_o blood_n vers_fw-la 20._o the_o external_a religion_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n principal_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n calix_fw-la qui_fw-la the_o chalice_n which_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o chalice_n shed_v for_o we_o must_v needs_o signify_v the_o blood_n therein_o not_o wine_n and_o the_o same_o sacrifice_v beza_n condemn_v the_o gospel_n itself_o of_o falsehood_n and_o impossibility_n impossibility_n annot._n ãâã_d test_n 1556._o ambition_n peter_n faith_n shall_v never_o fail_v serm._n 2._o assump_n ad_fw-la pontif._n li._n q._n novi_fw-la test_n q._n 75._o to_o 4._o the_o roman_a faith_n of_o peter_n successor_n can_v not_o fall_v cypr._n ep_v 55._o nu_fw-la 6._o bernard_n ep_v 190._o pope_n may_v err_v personal_o not_o judicial_o or_o definitive_o deut._n 17._o aug._n ep_v 166._o in_o fine_a the_o learned_a father_n seek_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n for_o resolution_n of_o doubt_n bernardus_n ep_v 190._o chrys_n ep_v 1_o &_o 2._o cypr._n ep_v 55._o nu_fw-la 2_o good_a friday_n mt._n 27_o 1_o 11._o mr._n 15_o 1_o io._n 18_o 27._o os_fw-la 10_o 8._o 8._o behold_v behold_v this_o eclipse_n be_v see_v and_o wonder_v at_o as_o a_o thing_n above_o nature_n of_o dionysius_n areopagîta_n at_o thebes_n when_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o pagan_a diony_n ep_v ad_fw-la polycarp_n et_fw-fr ep_n ad_fw-la apollophanen_n ps_n 30_o 6._o mt._n 27_o 57_o mr._n 5_o 43_o âo_o 19_o 38_o the_o good_a thief_n pardon_v of_o due_a penance_n and_o satisfaction_n visit_v the_o sepulchre_n or_o sepulcher_n sepulcher_n that_o be_v first_o after_o the_o sabbath_n which_o be_v say_v s._n hiero._n q._n 4_o ad_fw-la hedib_n die_v dominica_n our_o lord_n day_n wherein_o he_o arise_v for_o the_o week_n be_v divide_v into_o the_o sabbath_n &_o the_o 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o 5._o 6_o of_o the_o sabbath_n &_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 16_o 2_o command_v a_o collection_n of_o money_n to_o be_v make_v on_o the_o first_o of_o the_o sabbath_n whereby_o we_o learn_v both_o the_o keep_n of_o sunday_n &_o the_o church_n count_v of_o day_n by_o the_o 2._o 3._o 4_o of_o the_o sabbath_n to_o be_v apostolical_a which_o s._n sylvester_n after_o ward_v name_v 2._o 3._o 4_o feriam_fw-la etc._n etc._n breviar_n roman_n decemb._n 31_o easter_n day_n mt._n 28_o 1_o mr._n 16_o 1_o io._n 20_o 1._o lu._n 9_o 22_o io._n 20_o 3._o mr._n 16_o 12._o the_o gospel_n upon_o monday_n in_o easter_n week_n the_o gospel_n upon_o tuesday_n in_o easter_n week_n mr._n 16_o 14._o io._n 20_o 19_o 19_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v anathema_n say_v s._n aug._n which_o preach_v that_o christ_n neither_o suffer_v nor_o rise_v again_o because_o we_o learn_v by_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o behove_v christ_n to_o suffer_v and_o to_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n so_o he_o shall_v also_o be_v anathema_n whosoever_o preach_v the_o church_n to_o be_v else_o where_o they_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o nation_n because_o by_o the_o self_n same_o gospel_n we_o learn_v in_o the_o word_n next_o follow_v and_o penance_n to_o be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n &_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o out_o all_o nation_n august_n ep_v 48._o act._n 1_o 8._o 2_o 1._o mr._n 16_o 19_o act._n 1_o 9_o ascension_n day_n the_o b._n sacrament_n in_o on_o kind_n the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ec._n c._n 10._o 10._o mt._n 24_o 14._o 14._o heb._n 7_o 6._o christ_n bless_v diverse_a way_n io._n 20_o 21._o 26._o marc._n 10_o 16._o bless_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n gen._n 48_o 14._o 14._o teriul_a de_fw-fr coron_n milit_fw-la nu_fw-la 3_o basil_n de_fw-fr sp._n sanct_n c._n 27._o 27._o this_o speech_n very_o common_a in_o this_o gospel_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o place_n here_o mark_v declare_v that_o he_o write_v to_o the_o gentile_n iren
can_v err_v or_o have_v err_v at_o any_o time_n or_o in_o any_o point_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 3_o sunday_n after_o easter_n the_o gospel_n for_o many_o martyr_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 5_o sunday_n after_o easter_n easter_n upon_o this_o the_o church_n conclude_v all_o her_o prayer_n per_fw-la christum_n dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la even_o those_o also_o that_o be_v make_v to_o saâcts_n mt._n 27_o 31._o mr._n 14_o 27._o christ_n leave_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o gospel_n upon_o ascension_n eve_o eve_o the_o father_n glorifi_v the_o son_n by_o raise_v he_o from_o death_n exalt_v he_o up_o to_o his_o right_a hand_n make_v all_o creature_n to_o bow_v down_o at_o his_o name_n and_o geve_v he_o all_o power_n and_o judgement_n the_o son_n again_o glorifi_v the_o father_n by_o make_v his_o honour_n which_o only_o in_o a_o manner_n be_v in_o jewrie_n before_o now_o know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o gospel_n in_o a_o votive_a mass_n against_o schism_n schism_n his_o petition_n be_v special_o to_o keep_v the_o apostle_n and_o his_o church_n in_o unity_n and_o from_o schism_n io._n 18_o 9_o ps_n 40_o 10._o 108_o 8._o 8._o to_o sanctify_v himself_o be_v to_o sacrifice_v himself_o by_o dedicate_a his_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n to_o his_o father_n both_o upon_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n thursday_n night_n mt._n 26_o 36._o mr._n 14._o 32._o the_o passion_n according_a to_o s._n john_n in_o these_o two_o chapter_n be_v the_o gospel_n at_o mass_n upon_o good_a friday_n lu._n 22_o 39_o so_o the_o passion_n be_v read_v in_o holy_a week_n four_o time_n according_a to_o the_o four_o evangelist_n as_o s._n augustine_n appoint_v also_o in_o his_o church_n at_o hippo._n ser._n 144._o de_fw-la tempore_fw-la mt._n 26_o 47._o mr._n 14_o 43._o luc._n 22_o 47._o io._n 17_o 12_o io._n 11_o 49._o mt._n 26_o 58._o mr_n 14_o 54._o lu._n 22_o 54._o 54._o it_o be_v all_o one_o for_o a_o man_n to_o deny_v christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n or_o a_o catholic_a or_o a_o christian_a man_n when_o he_o be_v demand_v aug._n tract_n 11â_n in_o io._n for_o so_o peter_n here_o deni_v christ_n in_o deny_v himself_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n mt._n 27_o 1_o mr._n 15_o 1_o lu._n 23_o 1_o good_a friday_n io._n 12_o 33_o mt._n 20_o 19_o mt._n 27_o 11._o mr._n 15_o 2._o lu._n 23_o 4._o 4._o it_o please_v god_n that_o christ_n who_o be_v to_o die_v both_o for_o the_o jew_n &_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v betray_v of_o the_o one_o and_o put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o other_o mt._n 27_o 15._o mr._n 15_o 6._o lu._n 23_o 17._o mt._n 27_o 27._o mr._n 15_o 16._o 16._o he_o mean_v midday_n count_v from_o sun_n rise_v for_o so_o do_v the_o scripture_n count_v the_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n mat._n 20._o mar._n 15._o luc._n 21._o io._n 4._o act._n â_o &_o âo_z mt._n 27_o 33._o mr._n 15_o 20._o lu._n 23_o 33._o 33._o these_o three_o tongue_n be_v for_o other_o cause_n most_o famous_a before_o in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v now_o also_o dedicate_v to_o god_n in_o the_o triumphans_fw-la title_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o they_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v more_o convenient_o write_v teach_v &_o preseruâd_n preseruâd_n mt._n 27._o 35._o mr._n 15_o 24._o luc._n 23_o 34._o 34._o this_o coat_n without_o seam_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n cypr._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ec._n and_o euthymius_n and_o other_o write_v that_o our_o lady_n make_v it_o ps_n â1_n 19_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o votive_a mass_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n between_o easter_n &_o whitsuntide_n whitsuntide_n the_o great_a love_n faith_n courage_n compassion_n and_o sorrow_n that_o our_o lady_n have_v who_o forsake_v not_o the_o cross_n and_o her_o son_n when_o so_o many_o be_v flee_v from_o he_o and_o his_o chief_a apostle_n deny_v he_o he_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o votive_a mass_n of_o the_o passion_n psa_fw-la 68_o 22._o exo._n 12_o 46._o zac._n 12_o 10._o 10._o mt._n 27_o 57_o mr._n 15_o 42._o lu._n 23_o 50._o io._n 3_o 1._o 7_o 50._o the_o holy_a cross_n by_o this_o you_o see_v why_o in_o catholic_a church_n marie_n and_o john_n stand_v by_o the_o rood_n li._n 2._o adu_fw-la jovinian_a the_o sacrament_n issue_v out_o of_o christ_n side_n and_o thence_o have_v their_o virtue_n exo._n 18._o num._n 30._o tract_n 9_o in_o joan._n hom._n 14_o in_o joan._n the_o church_n build_v of_o christ_n side_n as_o eve_n of_o adam_n gen._n 2_o 21._o 21._o that_o be_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n as_o some_o interpret_v it_o take_v sabbath_n as_o sometime_o it_o be_v for_o a_o week_n this_o be_v our_o sunday_n call_v die_v dominiââ_n because_o of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n see_v the_o mark_fw-mi annot_v luâ_n 24_o 1._o the_o gospel_n upon_o saturday_n ãâã_d easter_n week_n easter_n day_n mt._n 28_o 1_o mr._n 16_o 1_o lu._n 24_o 1_o luc._n 24._o 12._o 12._o the_o gospel_n upon_o thursday_n â_o easter_n week_n week_n the_o sepulcher_n of_o martyr_n say_v s._n hierom_n ep_v 17_o we_o do_v honour_v every_o where_n &_o put_v their_o holy_a ash_n to_o our_o eye_n if_o we_o may_v we_o touch_v it_o also_o with_o our_o mouth_n and_o be_v there_o some_o that_o think_v the_o monument_n wherein_o our_o lord_n be_v lay_v be_v to_o be_v neglect_v where_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n as_o often_o as_o they_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o possess_v before_o the_o say_a monument_n tremble_v and_o roar_v as_o if_o they_o stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n mt._n 28_o 1_o mr._n 16_o 5_o luc._n 24_o 4._o the_o gospel_n upon_o dominica_n in_o albis_fw-la or_o low_a sunday_n mr._n 16_o 14._o lu._n 24_o 36._o 1._o cor._n 15_o 5._o 5._o though_o he_o give_v they_o his_o peace_n hard_o before_o yet_o now_o enter_v to_o a_o new_a divine_a action_n to_o prepare_v their_o heart_n to_o grace_n and_o attention_n he_o bless_v they_o again_o the_o gospel_n upon_o s._n thomas_n the_o apostle_n day_n decemb._n 21._o low_a sunday_n sunday_n see_v the_o annotation_n on_o the_o 19_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n chapter_n they_o be_v more_o happy_a that_o believe_v without_o sensible_a argument_n or_o sight_n than_o such_o as_o be_v induce_v by_o sense_n or_o reason_n to_o believe_v io._n 21_o 25_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o b_o bacrament_n without_o space_n or_o quantity_n correspondent_a there_o unto_o be_v prove_v by_o other_o example_n i_o scripture_n heretical_a shift_n to_o avoid_v plain_a scripture_n august_n ep_v 37._o christ_n can_v dispose_v of_o his_o own_o body_n &_o other_o above_o nature_n mat._n 19_o aug._n li._n 2d_o c._n 8._o de_fw-la ciu_o dei_fw-la vbiquetary_n of_o brentiani_n christ_n show_v his_o commission_n &_o so_o give_v the_o apostle_n power_n to_o remit_v sin_n augu._n q._n no._n test_n q._n 93_o cont_n ep_v parmen_fw-la li._n 2_o c._n 11._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v here_o purposely_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o remit_v sin_n cyril_n li._n 12_o â_o 56_o in_o io._n the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n institute_v man_n be_v bind_v to_o confess_v all_o their_o mortal_a sin_n and_o that_o in_o particular_a particular_a cypr._n the_o lap_n nu_fw-la 11._o 11._o hiero._n in_o 16_o mat._n to_o retain_v sin_n the_o necessity_n of_o this_o sacrament_n hiero._n ad_fw-la demetriadem_fw-la c._n â_o to_z 1._o mat._n 18._o the_o heretic_n wrestle_v against_o plain_a scripture_n see_v the_o communion_n book_n the_o english_a minister_n hear_v confession_n and_o absolve_v li._n 3_o de_fw-fr sacerd._n priest_n power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n be_v above_o the_o power_n of_o angel_n or_o worldly_a prince_n confession_n to_o priest_n secrete_n or_o auricular_a confession_n in_o vita_fw-la d._n ambr._n prope_fw-la finen_n mt._n 18._o the_o gospel_n on_o wenseday_n in_o easter_n week_n week_n see_v in_o s._n augustine_n tract_n 122_o ãâã_d io._n the_o great_a mystery_n hereof_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o in_o s._n gregory_n hom_n 24_o in_o euang._n and_o s._n bernard_n li._n 2_o c._n 8_o de_fw-la consid_fw-la peter_n primacy_n here_o mystical_o signify_v signify_v the_o disciple_n disciple_n not_o the_o three_o apparition_n but_o the_o three_o day_n of_o his_o apparition_n for_o he_o appear_v in_o the_o very_a day_n of_o his_o resurrection_n often_o again_o upon_o low_a sunday_n than_o this_o three_o time_n and_o s._n mark_v say_v last_o he_o appear_v c._n 16_o 14_o mean_v his_o last_o apparition_n the_o first_o day_n the_o gospel_n on_o the_o one_o of_o ss_z peter_n and_o paul_n paul_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d feed_v &_o rule_n rule_n the_o gospel_n
and_o in_o other_o that_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o merit_n as_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n which_o name_n it_o have_v by_o a_o metaphor_n col._n 4_o 14_o 14_o âwil_v deliver_v 2_o timo._n 1_o 16._o 16._o this_o linus_n be_v coadiutor_n with_o &_o under_o â_o peter_n &_o so_o count_v second_o in_o the_o number_n of_o pope_n the_o apostle_n prophesy_v of_o our_o new_a delicate_a preacher_n esa_n 30._o v._n 10._o work_n meritorious_a how_o heaven_n be_v due_a both_o of_o justice_n and_o mercy_n it_o be_v not_o of_o we_o but_o of_o god_n grace_n that_o work_n be_v meritorious_a mat._n 20._o to_o such_o good_a work_n heaven_n be_v due_a to_o say_v the_o contrary_a be_v to_o derogate_v from_o god_n grace_n in_o ps_n 100_o 2_o corinth_n 8._o 2._o tim._n 1_o 9_o 1._o tim._n 3_o 2._o epimenides_n epimenides_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o church_n abstain_v from_o meat_n some_o time_n which_o be_v not_o for_o any_o uncleanness_n in_o the_o creature_n but_o for_o chasten_v their_o body_n but_o he_o mean_v the_o jewish_a superstition_n who_o now_o be_v christian_n will_v not_o cease_v to_o put_v difference_n of_o clean_a and_o unclean_a according_a to_o their_o old_a la_o see_v s._n augustine_n cont._n faust_n li._n 31._o c._n 4._o rom._n 14_o 20._o priest_n must_v be_v consecrate_v by_o bishop_n only_o the_o popular_a election_n of_o the_o clergy_n take_v away_o the_o preeminence_n of_o a_o bishop_n above_o a_o priest_n to_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o they_o be_v aërius_n heresy_n heret_fw-la translation_n bigami_fw-la exclude_v from_o holy_a order_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o the_o notable_a man_n of_o both_o testament_n that_o live_v continent_o from_o wife_n only_o the_o protestant_n complain_v that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o chastity_n chastity_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d pudicos_fw-la eph._n 6_o 5._o col._n 3_o 22._o 1._o pet._n 2_o 18._o the_o epistle_n at_o the_o first_o mass_n on_o christmas_n day_n and_o upon_o the_o circumcision_n of_o our_o lord_n lord_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d bishop_n must_v be_v stout_a and_o command_v in_o god_n cause_n and_o the_o people_n must_v in_o no_o wise_a disobey_v or_o contemn_v they_o they_o the_o epistle_n at_o the_o 2_o mass_n on_o christmas_n day_n and_o in_o the_o votive_a mass_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n between_o christmas_n and_o candlemas_n candlemas_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 2_o tim._n 1_o 9_o 9_o as_o before_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o holy_a order_n 1._o tim._n 4._o and_o 2_o tim._n 1_o so_o here_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o baptism_n give_v grace_n &_o that_o by_o it_o as_o by_o a_o instrumental_a cause_n we_o be_v save_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 2._o tim._n 2_o 23._o 23._o these_o admonition_n or_o correption_n must_v be_v give_v to_o such_o as_o err_v by_o our_o spiritual_a governor_n and_o pastor_n to_o who_o if_o they_o yield_v not_o christian_a man_n must_v avoid_v they_o they_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d praesse_n who_o be_v propre_o a_o heretic_n &_o who_o be_v not_o description_n or_o mark_n how_o to_o know_v a_o heretic_n vit_fw-fr aug._n c._n 1â_n the_o former_a mark_n agree_v to_o the_o protestant_n their_o book_n service_n &_o preach_v must_v be_v avoid_v ep._n 52._o nu_fw-la 7._o the_o church_n seek_v the_o amendment_n of_o the_o most_o obstinate_a heretic_n heretic_n cut_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n church_n faith_n and_o charity_n commend_v always_o together_o both_o necessary_a to_o make_v a_o complete_a christian_a man_n and_o to_o justification_n &_o salvation_n salvation_n the_o duty_n of_o charity_n and_o mercy_n do_v to_o christ_n prisoner_n be_v exceed_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o all_o good_a man_n col._n 4_o 9_o 9_o all_o spiritual_a man_n ought_v to_o be_v exceed_o propense_a and_o ready_a to_o procure_v man_n pardon_n and_o reconciliation_n to_o all_o penitent_n penitent_n the_o great_a debt_n &_o duty_n that_o we_o owe_v to_o such_o as_o be_v our_o spiritual_a parent_n in_o christ_n christ_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d faith_n and_o belief_n in_o saint_n 2._o tim._n 1._o 1._o tim._n 2._o 1._o pet._n 1._o 1._o yet_o be_v christ_n head_n of_o the_o gentile_n also_o so_o likewise_o his_o vicar_n s._n peter_n notwithstanding_o his_o more_o peculiar_a apostleship_n over_o the_o jew_n rom._n 5._o heb._n 1â_n heretical_a corruption_n corruption_n in_o the_o english_a bible_n of_o the_o yerâ_n 2579._o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n be_v s._n paul_n the_o epistle_n at_o the_o three_o mass_n on_o christmas_n day_n sap._n 7_o 26._o 26._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n above_o angel_n ps_n 2_o 7._o 2._o reg_fw-la 7_o 14._o ps_n 96_o 8._o ps_n 103_o 4._o ps_n 44_o 7._o ps_n 101_o 26._o ps_n 109_o 1_o 1._o cor._n 15_o 25._o 25._o the_o holy_a angel_n say_v s._n augustine_n to_o the_o society_n of_o who_o we_o aspire_v in_o this_o our_o peregrination_n as_o they_o have_v eternity_n to_o continue_v so_o also_o facility_n to_o know_v and_o felicity_n to_o rest_v for_o they_o do_v help_v we_o without_o all_o difficulty_n because_o with_o their_o spiritual_a motion_n pure_a and_o free_a they_o labour_v or_o travel_v not_o de_fw-fr civis_fw-la li._n 11._o c._n 31._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o b._n sacrament_n a_o figure_n and_o yet_o the_o true_a body_n the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n sacrament_n as_o that_o which_o run_v out_o of_o a_o break_a vessel_n or_o that_o run_v by_o be_v lose_v lose_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d mar._n 16_o 20._o ps_n 8_o 5._o 1_o cor._n 15_o eph._n 1._o pâilip_n 2_o 8._o 8._o this_o prove_v against_o the_o caluinist_n that_o christ_n by_o his_o passion_n merit_v his_o own_o glorification_n which_o they_o will_v not_o for_o shame_n deny_v of_o christ_n but_o that_o they_o be_v at_o a_o point_n to_o deny_v all_o meritorious_a work_n yea_o even_o in_o christ_n also_o and_o therefore_o they_o translate_v also_o this_o sentence_n heretical_o by_o transpose_v the_o word_n in_o the_o bible_n print_v the_o year_n 1579._o ps_n 21_o 23_o ps_n 17_o 3._o es_fw-ge 8_o 18._o ose_n 13_o 14._o 1_o cor._n 15_o 54._o 54._o the_o dignity_n of_o man_n in_o that_o christ_n take_v our_o nature_n unto_o his_o person_n in_o deity_n and_o not_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n above_o moses_n nu._n 12_o 7_o ps_n 94_o 8_o 8_o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n work_n of_o our_o creation_n in_o christ_n which_o if_o we_o hold_v not_o fast_o all_o the_o building_n be_v lose_v nu._n 14_o 37._o 21_o 23._o ps_n 94_o 11_o 11_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o evident_o here_o show_v that_o the_o sabbath_n rest_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o eternal_a repose_n in_o heaven_n who_o dare_v to_o have_v apply_v that_o scripture_n of_o god_n rest_n the_o seven_o day_n to_o that_o purpose_n or_o how_o can_v our_o adversary_n now_o reprehend_v the_o like_a application_n manifold_o use_v in_o all_o holy_a ancient_a writer_n to_o the_o like_a end_n gen._n 2_o 2._o heb._n 3_o 7._o 7._o so_o josue_n be_v call_v in_o greek_a greek_a whatsoever_o god_n threaten_v by_o his_o word_n concern_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o incredulity_n shall_v be_v execute_v be_v the_o offence_n never_o so_o secret_a deep_a or_o hide_v in_o our_o heart_n because_o god_n speech_n pass_v easy_o and_o search_v thorough_o every_o part_n power_n and_o faculty_n of_o man_n soul_n the_o epistle_n in_o a_o mass_n for_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n scripture_n abuse_v against_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o epistle_n for_o a_o bishop_n that_o be_v a_o confessor_n and_o for_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n 2_o par._n 26_o 18._o 1_o par._n 23_o 13._o ps_n 2_o 7._o ps_n 109_o 4._o the_o description_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o his_o office_n 3_o reg._n 13._o 2_o par._n 26._o 1_o reg._n 13._o the_o prince_n temporal_a authority_n how_o far_o it_o extend_v there_o be_v a_o peculiar_a order_n &_o call_v of_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n priest_n and_o sacrifice_v necessary_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n &_o nothing_o derogatory_n to_o christ_n priesthood_n or_o sacrifice_n the_o difference_n and_o excellency_n of_o christ_n priesthood_n all_o true_a priest_n and_o preacher_n must_v be_v lawful_o call_v thereto_o the_o dignity_n &_o function_n of_o priesthood_n be_v not_o to_o be_v usurp_v christ_n both_o priest_n &_o king_n but_o his_o priesthood_n more_o excellent_a of_o the_o two_o psal_n 2._o 109._o christ_n a_o priest_n as_o he_o be_v man_n not_o as_o he_o be_v god_n ãâã_d pag._n 89._o the_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n be_v the_o principal_a act_n of_o christ_n priesthood_n luc._n 23._o 46._o priest_n prayer_n more_o effectual_a christ_n priestly_a action_n notorious_a heretical_a
verse_n 41_o and_o his_o parent_n go_v every_o year_n unto_o jerusalem_n 17._o *_o at_o the_o solemn_a day_n of_o pasche_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o when_o he_o be_v twelue_v year_n old_a epiphanâe_n they_o go_v up_o into_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o festival_n day_n 1._o â_o verse_n 43_o and_o have_v end_v the_o day_n when_o they_o return_v the_o child_n jesus_n remain_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o his_o parent_n know_v it_o not_o â_o verse_n 44_o and_o think_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o company_n they_o come_v a_o day_n journey_n and_o seek_v he_o among_o their_o kinsfolk_n and_o acquaintance_n â_o verse_n 45_o and_o not_o find_v he_o they_o return_v into_o jerusalem_n seek_v he_o â_o verse_n 46_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o three_o day_n they_o find_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n sit_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o doctor_n hear_v they_o and_o ask_v they_o â_o verse_n 47_o and_o all_o be_v astonish_v that_o hear_v he_o upon_o his_o wisdom_n and_o answer_n â_o verse_n 48_o and_o see_v he_o they_o wonder_v and_o his_o mother_n say_v to_o he_o son_n why_o have_v thou_o so_o do_v to_o we_o behold_v thy_o father_n and_o i_o sorow_v do_v seek_v thou_o â_o verse_n 49_o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o what_o be_v it_o that_o you_o seek_v i_o do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o i_o must_v be_v about_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v my_o father_n â_o verse_n 50_o and_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o word_n that_o he_o speak_v unto_o they_o â_o verse_n 51_o and_o he_o go_v down_o with_o they_o and_o come_v to_o nazareth_n and_o be_v â³_o subject_a to_o they_o and_o his_o mother_n keep_v all_o these_o word_n in_o her_o hart_n â_o verse_n 52_o and_o jesus_n proceed_v in_o wisdom_n and_o age_n and_o grace_n with_o god_n and_o man_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n ii_o 14._o man_n of_o good_a wil._n will_v the_o birth_n of_o christ_n give_v not_o peace_n of_o mind_n or_o salvation_n but_o to_o such_o as_o be_v of_o good_a will_n because_o he_o work_v not_o our_o good_a against_o our_o will_n but_o our_o will_n concur_v aug._n quaest_n ad_fw-la simp_o li._n 1._o q._n 2._o to_o 4._o 19_o keep_v al._n contemplation_n our_o lady_n though_o little_a he_o speak_v of_o she_o concern_v such_o matter_n in_o the_o scripture_n because_o she_o be_v a_o woman_n and_o not_o admit_v to_o teach_v or_o dispute_v in_o public_a of_o high_a mystery_n yet_o she_o know_v all_o these_o mystery_n and_o wise_o note_v and_o contemplate_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v and_o say_v about_o christ_n from_o the_o first_o hour_n of_o his_o conception_n till_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n and_o his_o ascension_n 34._o to_o the_o ruin_n therefore_o to_o the_o ruin_n of_o some_o because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o so_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o own_o ruin_n 1._o as_o he_o be_v else_o where_o call_v a_o stumble_a stone_n because_o many_o will_v stumble_v at_o he_o and_o so_o fall_v by_o their_o own_o fault_n themselves_o other_o some_o he_o raise_v by_o his_o grace_n from_o sin_n to_o justice_n and_o so_o he_o be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o many_o the_o apostle_n use_v the_o like_a speech_n say_v we_o be_v to_o some_o the_o odour_n of_o life_n 16_o unto_o life_n to_o other_o the_o odour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n not_o that_o their_o preach_n be_v to_o cause_v death_n but_o because_o they_o that_o will_v not_o believe_v their_o preach_n wilful_o incur_v deadly_a sin_n and_o damnation_n 38._o a_o widow_n mark_v that_o widowhod_n be_v here_o mention_v to_o the_o commendation_n thereof_o even_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n also_o widowhod_n and_o the_o fruit_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o profession_n thereof_o be_v here_o commend_v 7._o to_o wit_n fast_v pray_v be_v continual_o in_o the_o temple_n even_o as_o s._n paul_n more_o at_o large_a for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n speak_v of_o widowhod_n and_o virginity_n as_o be_v profession_n more_o apt_a and_o commodious_a for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n 37._o by_o fasting_n and_o prayer_n serve_v religion_n serve_v in_o the_o greek_a be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v do_v divine_a worship_n unto_o god_n as_o by_o prayer_n so_o also_o by_o fast_v so_o that_o fast_v be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v a_o act_n of_o religion_n whereby_o we_o do_v worship_n god_n as_o we_o do_v by_o prayer_n and_o not_o use_v only_o to_o subdue_v our_o flesh_n much_o less_o as_o heretic_n will_v have_v it_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o poliicie_n 61._o subject_a to_o they_o parent_n all_o child_n may_v learn_v hereby_o that_o great_a aught_o to_o be_v their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n to_o their_o parent_n when_o christ_n himself_o be_v god_n will_v be_v subject_a to_o his_o parent_n be_v but_o his_o creature_n chap._n iii_o christ_n john_n to_o prepare_v all_o to_o christ_n as_o esay_n have_v prophesy_v of_o he_o baptize_v they_o to_o penance_n 7_o insinuate_v their_o reprobation_n and_o the_o gentile_n vocation_n 10_o teach_v also_o and_o exhort_v each_o sort_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n 15_o that_o himself_o be_v not_o christ_n will_v also_o judge_v his_o baptize_v 19_o johns_n imprisonment_n 21_o christ_n be_v himself_o also_o baptize_v of_o john_n have_v testimony_n from_o heaven_n 23_o as_o he_o who_o generation_n reduce_v we_o again_o to_o god_n verse_n 1_o and_o in_o the_o fiftenth_fw-mi year_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o tiberius_n caesar_n advent_a pontius_n pilate_n be_v governor_n of_o jewrie_n and_o herod_n be_v tetrarch_n of_o galilee_n and_o philip_n his_o brother_n tetrarch_n of_o ituréa_n and_o the_o country_n trachonîtis_n and_o lysanias_n tetrarch_n of_o abilina_fw-la â_o verse_n 2_o under_o the_o high_a priest_n annas_n and_o caiphas_n the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v make_v upon_o john_n the_o son_n of_o zacharie_n 1._o in_o the_o desert_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o *_o he_o come_v into_o all_o the_o country_n of_o jordan_n 1._o preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n penance_n unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o say_n of_o esay_n the_o prophet_n 3._o â_o verse_n 4_o a_o voice_n of_o one_o cry_v in_o the_o desert_n prepare_v the_o way_n of_o our_o lord_n make_v straight_o his_o path_n â_o verse_n 5_o every_o valley_n shall_v be_v fill_v and_o every_o mountain_n and_o hill_n shall_v be_v make_v low_a and_o crooked_a thing_n shall_v become_v straight_o and_o rough_a way_n plain_a â_o verse_n 6_o and_o all_o flesh_n shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 7_o he_o say_v therefore_o to_o the_o multitude_n that_o go_v forth_o to_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o 7._o *_o you_o viper_n brood_n who_o have_v show_v you_o to_o flee_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v â_o verse_n 8_o yield_v therefore_o satisfactory_a fruit_n worthy_a of_o penance_n and_o do_v you_o not_o begin_v to_o say_v we_o have_v abraham_n to_o our_o father_n for_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o god_n be_v able_a of_o these_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n to_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o now_o the_o axe_n be_v put_v to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n fire_n every_o tree_n therefore_o that_o yield_v not_o good_a fruit_n be_v shall_v be_v '_o cut_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o fire_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o the_o multitude_n ask_v he_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o he_o answer_v say_v unto_o they_o damnation_n he_o that_o have_v two_o coat_n let_v he_o give_v to_o he_o that_o have_v not_o and_o he_o that_o have_v meat_n let_v he_o do_v likewise_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o the_o publican_n also_o come_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o say_v to_o he_o master_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v â_o verse_n 13_o but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o do_v nothing_o more_o than_o that_o which_o be_v appoint_v you_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o the_o soldier_n also_o ask_v he_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o also_o do_v and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o vex_v not_o neither_o calumniate_v any_o man_n and_o be_v content_a with_o your_o stipend_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o christ_n the_o people_n imagine_v and_o all_o man_n think_v in_o their_o heart_n of_o john_n 11._o lest_o perhaps_o he_o be_v christ_n â_o verse_n 16_o john_n answer_v 8_o say_v unto_o all_o *_o i_o in_o deed_n baptize_v you_o with_o water_n johns_n but_o there_o 26._o shall_v come_v '_o a_o mighty_a than_o i_o who_o latchet_n of_o his_o shoe_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o unloose_v he_o shall_v baptize_v you_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o fire_n 4._o â_o verse_n 17_o who_o fan_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o he_o will_v purge_v his_o floor_n and_o will_v gather_v the_o wheat_n into_o his_o barn_n but_o
upon_o he_o so_o 23_o that_o for_o their_o cry_v the_o tribune_n command_v he_o to_o be_v scourge_v as_o which_o yet_o by_o his_o wisdom_n he_o escape_v verse_n 1_o men_n brethren_n and_o father_n hear_v what_o account_n i_o do_v render_v now_o unto_o you_o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v that_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n they_o do_v the_o more_o keep_v silence_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o say_v 39_o *_o i_o be_o a_o man_n a_o jewe_n bear_v at_o tarsus_n in_o cilicia_n but_o bring_v up_o in_o this_o city_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o gamaliel_n instruct_v according_a to_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o la_o of_o the_o father_n a_o emulátour_n of_o the_o law_n as_o also_o all_o you_o be_v this_o day_n â_o verse_n 4_o who_o *_o persecute_a this_o way_n unto_o death_n 3_o bind_v &_o deliver_v into_o custody_n man_n &_o woman_n â_o verse_n 5_o as_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v give_v i_o testimony_n 2_o and_o all_o the_o ancient_n â_o verse_n 6_o of_o who_o *_o receive_n letter_n also_o to_o the_o brethren_n i_o go_v to_o damascus_n that_o i_o may_v bring_v they_o thence_o bind_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v punish_v verse_n 7_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o i_o be_v go_v and_o draw_v nigh_o to_o damascus_n at_o midday_n sudden_o from_o heaven_n there_o shine_v round_o about_o i_o much_o light_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o fall_v on_o the_o ground_n i_o hear_v a_o voice_n say_v to_o i_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o i_o answer_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o i_o be_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n who_o thou_o persecute_v â_o verse_n 10_o and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o i_o see_v the_o light_n in_o deed_n but_o the_o voice_n they_o hear_v not_o of_o he_o that_o speak_v with_o i_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o i_o say_v what_o shall_v i_o do_v lord_n and_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o i_o arise_v and_o go_v to_o damascus_n and_o there_o it_o shall_v be_v tell_v thou_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o thou_o must_v do_v â_o verse_n 12_o and_o whereas_o i_o do_v not_o see_v for_o the_o brightness_n of_o that_o light_n be_v lead_v of_o my_o companion_n by_o the_o hand_n i_o come_v to_o damascus_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o one_o ananias_n a_o man_n according_a to_o the_o law_n have_v testimony_n of_o all_o the_o jew_n inhabitant_n â_o verse_n 14_o come_v to_o i_o and_o stand_v by_o i_o say_v to_o i_o brother_n saul_n look_v up_o and_o i_o the_o self_n same_o hour_n look_v up_o on_o he_o â_o verse_n 15_o but_o he_o say_v the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n have_v prëordain_v thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v know_v his_o will_v and_o see_v the_o just_a one_o and_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o his_o mouth_n â_o verse_n 16_o because_o thou_o shall_v be_v his_o witness_v to_o all_o man_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v â_o verse_n 17_o and_o now_o what_o tarie_v thou_o rise_v up_o and_o be_v baptize_v &_o sacrament_n wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n invocate_a his_o name_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o it_o befall_v i_o return_v into_o jerusalem_n and_o pray_v in_o the_o temple_n that_o i_o be_v in_o a_o trance_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o see_v he_o say_v unto_o i_o make_v haste_n and_o depart_v quick_o out_o of_o jerusalem_n because_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v thy_o testimony_n of_o i_o â_o verse_n 20_o and_o i_o say_v lord_n they_o know_v that_o i_o do_v cast_v into_o prison_n and_o beat_v in_o every_o synagogue_n they_o that_o believe_v in_o thou_o â_o verse_n 21_o and_o when_o the_o blood_n of_o steven_n thy_o ãâã_d witness_v be_v shed_v hereby_o i_o stand_v by_o and_o consent_v and_o keep_v the_o garment_n of_o they_o that_o kill_v he_o 38._o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o go_v for_o into_o the_o gentile_n a_o far_o will_v i_o send_v thou_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o they_o hear_v he_o until_o this_o word_n and_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n say_v away_o with_o such_o a_o one_o from_o the_o earth_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v he_o shall_v live_v â_o verse_n 24_o and_o when_o they_o cry_v out_o and_o throw_v of_o their_o garment_n and_o cast_v dust_n into_o the_o air_n â_o verse_n 24_o the_o tribune_n command_v he_o to_o be_v carry_v into_o the_o castle_n and_o to_o be_v beat_v with_o whip_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v torment_v to_o know_v for_o what_o cause_n they_o do_v so_o cry_v at_o he_o â_o verse_n 25_o and_o when_o they_o have_v bind_v he_o very_o straight_o with_o thong_n paul_n say_v to_o the_o centurion_n stand_v by_o he_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o you_o to_o whip_v a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o roman_a and_o uncondemned_a â_o verse_n 26_o which_o the_o centurion_n hear_v go_v to_o the_o tribune_n and_o tell_v he_o say_v what_o will_v thou_o do_v for_o this_o man_n be_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n â_o verse_n 27_o and_o the_o tribune_n come_v say_v to_o he_o tell_v i_o be_v thou_o a_o roman_a but_o he_o say_v yea._n â_o verse_n 28_o and_o the_o tribune_n answer_v i_o obtain_v this_o city_n with_o a_o great_a sum_n and_o paul_n say_v but_o i_o be_v also_o bear_v to_o it_o â_o verse_n 29_o immediate_o therefore_o they_o depart_v from_o he_o that_o be_v to_o torment_v he_o the_o tribune_n also_o fear_v after_o he_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n and_o because_o he_o have_v bind_v he_o â_o verse_n 30_o but_o the_o next_o day_n meaning_n to_o know_v more_o diligent_o for_o what_o cause_n he_o be_v accuse_v of_o the_o jew_n he_o loose_v he_o and_o command_v the_o ãâã_d priest_n to_o come_v together_o and_o all_o the_o council_n &_o bring_v forth_o paul_n he_o set_v he_o among_o they_o chap._n xxiii_o as_o the_o people_n in_o the_o tumult_n so_o also_o the_o very_a chief_a of_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o council_n show_v themselves_o obstinaââ_n and_o wilful_a persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o s._n paul_n person_n who_o behaviour_n towards_o they_o be_v full_o of_o constancy_n modesty_n and_o wisdom_n 11_o christ_n also_o by_o a_o vision_n encourage_v he_o and_o foretell_v that_o he_o shall_v to_o rome_n 12_o yea_o they_o conspire_v with_o 40_o man_n to_o kill_v he_o traitorous_o 1â_n but_o the_o matter_n be_v detect_v the_o roman_a tribune_n conveigh_v he_o strong_o to_o caesaréa_n verse_n 1_o and_o paul_n look_v upon_o the_o council_n say_v man_n brethren_n i_o with_o all_o good_a conscience_n have_v converse_v before_o god_n until_o this_o present_a day_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o the_o high_a priest_n ananias_n command_v they_o that_o stand_v by_o he_o to_o smite_v he_o on_o the_o mouth_n â_o verse_n 3_o then_o paul_n say_v to_o he_o io._n god_n shall_v strike_v thou_o thou_o white_v brickwall_n and_o thou_o sit_v iudge_v i_o according_a to_o the_o la_o and_o contrary_a to_o la_o do_v thou_o command_v i_o to_o be_v smite_v â_o verse_n 4_o and_o they_o that_o stand_v by_o say_v do_v thou_o revile_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o paul_n say_v â_o i_o know_v not_o brethren_z that_o he_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n for_o it_o be_v write_v 28._o the_o prince_n of_o thy_o people_n thou_o shall_v not_o misspeake_v â_o verse_n 6_o and_o paul_n know_v that_o the_o one_o part_n be_v of_o sadducee_n and_o the_o other_o of_o pharisee_n doove_n he_o cry_v out_o in_o the_o council_n man_n brethren_n *_o i_o be_o a_o pharisee_fw-mi 5._o the_o son_n of_o pharisee_n of_o the_o hope_n and_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_o i_o judge_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n there_o rise_v dissension_n between_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n 23._o and_o the_o multitude_n be_v divide_v â_o verse_n 8_o for_o the_o â_o sadducee_n say_v *_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n nor_o angel_n nor_o spirit_n but_o the_o pharisee_n confess_v both_o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a cry_n and_o certain_a of_o the_o pharisee_n rise_v up_o strive_v say_v we_o find_v no_o evil_a in_o this_o man_n what_o if_o a_o spirit_n have_v speak_v to_o he_o or_o a_o angel_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o when_o there_o be_v rise_v great_a dissension_n the_o tribune_n fear_v lest_o paul_n shall_v be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o they_o command_v the_o soldier_n to_o go_v down_o and_o to_o take_v he_o out_o of_o the_o mid_n of_o they_o and_o to_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o castle_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o the_o night_n follow_a our_o lord_n stand_v by_o he_o say_v be_v constant_a for_o as_o thou_o have_v testify_v of_o i_o in_o jerusalem_n so_o follow_v must_v thou_o testify_v at_o rome_n
also_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o when_o day_n be_v come_v certain_a of_o the_o jew_v gather_v themselves_o together_o &_o â_o vow_v themselves_o say_v that_o they_o will_v neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v till_o they_o kill_v paul_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o they_o be_v more_o than_o forty_o man_n that_o have_v make_v this_o conspiracy_n â_o verse_n 14_o who_o come_v to_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o ancient_n and_o say_v by_o execration_n we_o have_v vow_v ourselves_o that_o we_o will_v eat_v nothing_o till_o we_o kill_v paul_n â_o verse_n 15_o now_o therefore_o give_v you_o knowledge_n to_o the_o tribune_n with_o the_o council_n that_o he_o bring_v he_o forth_o to_o you_o as_o if_o you_o mean_v to_o know_v some_o more_o certainty_n touch_v he_o but_o we_o before_o he_o come_v near_o be_v ready_a for_o to_o kill_v he_o â_o verse_n 16_o which_o when_o paul_n sister_n son_n have_v hear_v of_o their_o lie_v in_o wait_n he_o come_v and_o enter_v into_o the_o castle_n and_o tell_v paul_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o paul_n call_v to_o he_o one_o of_o the_o centurion_n say_v bring_v this_o young_a man_n to_o the_o tribune_n for_o he_o have_v some_o thing_n to_o tell_v he_o â_o verse_n 18_o villainy_n and_o he_o take_v he_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o tribune_n and_o say_v the_o prisoner_n paul_n desire_v i_o to_o bring_v this_o young_a man_n unto_o thou_o have_v some_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o thou_o â_o verse_n 19_o and_o the_o tribune_n take_v he_o by_o the_o hand_n go_v aside_o with_o he_o apart_o and_o ask_v he_o what_o be_v it_o that_o thou_o have_v to_o tell_v i_o â_o verse_n 20_o and_o he_o say_v the_o jew_n have_v agree_v to_o desire_v thou_o that_o to_o morrow_v thou_o will_v bring_v forth_o paul_n into_o the_o council_n as_o though_o they_o mean_v to_o inquire_v some_o more_o certainty_n touch_v he_o â_o verse_n 21_o but_o do_v not_o thou_o credit_n they_o for_o there_o lie_v in_o wait_n for_o he_o more_o than_o forty_o man_n of_o they_o which_o have_v vow_v neither_o to_o eat_v nor_o to_o drink_v till_o they_o kill_v he_o and_o they_o be_v now_o ready_a expect_v thy_o promise_n â_o verse_n 22_o the_o tribune_n therefore_o dimiss_v the_o young_a man_n command_v that_o he_o shall_v speak_v to_o no_o man_n that_o he_o have_v notify_v these_o thing_n unto_o he_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o call_v two_o centurion_n he_o say_v to_o they_o make_v ready_a two_o hundred_o soldier_n to_o go_v as_o far_o as_o caesaréa_n and_o seventie_o horseman_n and_o lance_n two_o hundred_o from_o the_o three_o hour_n of_o the_o night_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o prepare_v beast_n that_o set_v paul_n on_o they_o may_v bring_v he_o safe_a to_o felix_n the_o precedent_n â_o verse_n 25_o for_o he_o fear_v lest_o perhaps_o the_o jew_n may_v take_v he_o away_o and_o kill_v he_o and_o himself_o afterward_o shall_v sustain_v reproach_n as_o though_o he_o will_v have_v take_v money_n â_o verse_n 26_o writing_n a_o letter_n contain_v this_o much_o claudius_n lysias_n to_o the_o most_o excellent_a precedent_n felix_n greeting_n â_o verse_n 27_o this_o man_n be_v apprehend_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o ready_a to_o be_v kill_v of_o they_o i_o come_v in_o with_o the_o band_n deliver_v he_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v a_o roman_a â_o verse_n 28_o and_o mean_v to_o know_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o object_v unto_o he_o i_o bring_v he_o down_o into_o their_o council_n â_o verse_n 29_o who_o i_o find_v to_o be_v accuse_v concern_v question_n of_o their_o la_o but_o have_v no_o crime_n worthy_a of_o death_n or_o of_o band_n â_o verse_n 30_o and_o when_o it_o be_v tell_v i_o of_o embushment_n that_o they_o have_v prepare_v against_o he_o i_o send_v he_o to_o thou_o signify_v also_o to_o the_o accuser_n to_o speak_v before_o thou_o fare_v well_o â_o verse_n 31_o and_o the_o soldier_n according_a as_o it_o be_v command_v they_o take_v paul_n bring_v he_o by_o night_n to_o antipatris_n â_o verse_n 32_o and_o the_o next_o day_n send_v away_o the_o horseman_n to_o go_v with_o he_o they_o return_v to_o the_o castle_n â_o verse_n 33_o who_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o caesaréa_n and_o have_v deliver_v the_o letter_n to_o the_o precedent_n they_o do_v set_v paul_n also_o before_o he_o â_o verse_n 34_o and_o when_o he_o have_v read_v and_o have_v ask_v of_o what_o province_n he_o be_v and_o understand_v that_o of_o cilicia_n â_o verse_n 35_o i_o will_v hear_v the_o say_v he_o when_o thy_o accuser_n be_v come_v and_o he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v keep_v in_o herod_n palace_n annotation_n chap._n xxiii_o â_o i_o know_v not_o our_o lord_n say_v s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o gospel_n when_o it_o be_v say_v to_o he_o answer_v thou_o the_o high_a priest_n ãâã_d teach_v that_o the_o honour_n of_o priesthood_n must_v be_v keep_v priesthood_n say_v nothing_o to_o the_o high_a priest_n 2._o but_o only_o purge_v his_o innocence_n say_v if_o i_o have_v speak_v evil_a bear_v witness_n of_o evil_a but_o if_o well_o why_o smite_v thou_o i_o also_o the_o bless_a apostle_n when_o it_o be_v say_v to_o he_o do_v thou_o assail_v the_o high_a priest_n so_o with_o il_fw-fr word_n speak_v not_o any_o thing_n contumelious_o against_o the_o priest_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v put_v forth_o himself_o stout_o against_o they_o which_o have_v both_o crucify_v our_o ãâã_d and_o which_o have_v now_o also_o lose_v their_o god_n and_o christ_n temple_n and_o priesthood_n but_o though_o in_o false_a and_o spoil_v priest_n yet_o consider_v the_o very_a bare_a shadow_n of_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n he_o say_v i_o know_v not_o brethren_n that_o he_o be_v high_a priest_n by_o which_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n either_o it_o maâ_n be_v think_v he_o know_v not_o in_o deed_n that_o he_o be_v in_o that_o function_n because_o he_o have_v not_o be_v of_o long_a time_n in_o those_o part_n or_o else_o that_o he_o so_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o high_a priesthood_n of_o the_o jew_n whereby_o he_o know_v this_o man_n not_o to_o be_v true_o any_o priest_n as_o also_o because_o at_o this_o time_n they_o come_v not_o orderly_o to_o it_o by_o succession_n of_o aaron_n and_o law_n of_o moses_n 51._o but_o by_o the_o roman_a emperor_n favour_n *_o as_o be_v say_v before_o tho_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o jesse_n to_o irritate_fw-la they_o he_o frame_v his_o speech_n so_o ãâã_d they_o may_v not_o take_v occasion_n of_o further_a accusation_n against_o he_o 8._o the_o sadducee_n dead_a this_o be_v the_o worst_a heresy_n among_o the_o jew_n deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o angel_n or_o spirit_n the_o resurrection_n also_o of_o the_o body_n &_o consequent_o as_o it_o may_v very_o well_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n they_o deny_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a 43._o for_o to_o offer_v or_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a &_o to_o think_v right_o &_o religious_o of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v make_v there_o sequels_fw-fr one_o of_o a_o other_o of_o this_o sect_n of_o sadducee_n be_v as_o eusebius_n write_v li._n 2._o c._n 2d_o ec._n hist_o this_o ananias_n the_o high_a priest_n that_o cause_v paul_n to_o be_v smite_v for_o their_o priesthood_n have_v now_o no_o more_o the_o protection_n of_o god_n to_o preserve_v it_o in_o truth_n and_o right_a judgement_n the_o christian_a priesthood_n be_v then_o establish_v 12._o vow_v themselves_o such_o vow_n other_o or_o execration_n as_o this_o bind_v no_o man_n before_o god_n yea_o they_o must_v in_o no_o wise_a be_v observe_v keep_v it_o be_v a_o great_a offence_n either_o to_o vow_v voluntary_o or_o to_o take_v any_o such_o thing_n upon_o a_o man_n for_o fear_n or_o by_o commandment_n for_o example_n if_o thou_o have_v rash_o by_o promise_n vow_v or_o oath_n appoint_v to_o be_v revenge_v upon_o any_o man_n thou_o bind_v not_o thyself_o thereby_o neither_o must_v thou_o keep_v thy_o promise_n if_o thou_o be_v put_v to_o a_o oath_n to_o accuse_v catholic_n for_o serve_v god_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v or_o to_o utter_v any_o innocent_a man_n to_o god_n enemy_n and_o he_o thou_o ought_v first_o to_o refuse_v such_o unlawful_a oath_n but_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o constancy_n and_o courage_n so_o to_o do_v yet_o know_v thou_o that_o such_o oath_n bind_v not_o at_o all_o in_o conscience_n and_o law_n of_o god_n but_o may_v and_o must_v be_v break_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n for_o to_o make_v or_o take_v such_o vow_n or_o oath_n be_v one_o sin_n aâd_v to_o keep_v they_o 9_o be_v a_o other_o far_o great_a as_o when_o herode_fw-la to_o keep_v his_o oath_n kill_v john_n baptist_n and_o such_o vow_n and_o oath_n to_o god_n as_o these_o be_v